summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--75886-0.txt5831
-rw-r--r--75886-h/75886-h.htm7220
-rw-r--r--75886-h/images/cover.jpgbin0 -> 89527 bytes
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
6 files changed, 13068 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/75886-0.txt b/75886-0.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d5403b2
--- /dev/null
+++ b/75886-0.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,5831 @@
+
+*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 75886 ***
+
+
+
+
+
+
+ THE MYSTERY OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+
+ THE SECRET OF JESUS’ MESSIAHSHIP AND PASSION
+
+ BY
+
+ ALBERT SCHWEITZER
+
+ Author of “The Quest of the Historical Jesus”
+
+ TRANSLATED WITH AN INTRODUCTION BY
+
+ WALTER LOWRIE
+
+ NEW YORK
+
+ DODD, MEAD AND COMPANY
+
+ 1914
+
+
+
+
+
+ DEDICATED WITH SINCERE
+
+ RESPECT AND DEVOTION TO
+
+ _Dr. H. J. Holtzmann_
+
+ BY HIS GRATEFUL PUPIL
+
+ ALBERT SCHWEITZER
+
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 003]
+
+PREFACE
+
+
+THE attempt to write a life of Jesus, commencing not at the beginning
+but in the middle, with the thought of the Passion, must of necessity
+sometime be made. Strange that it has not been made earlier, for it is
+in the air!
+
+The fact is that all presentations of the life of Jesus are
+satisfactory up to a certain point,—the inception of the thought of
+the Passion. There, however, the connection fails. Not one of them
+succeeds in rendering intelligible why Jesus now suddenly counts his
+death necessary, and in what sense he conceives it as a saving act. In
+order to establish this connection one must try the experiment of
+making the thought of the Passion the point of departure, for the sake
+of rendering the former and latter periods of the life of Jesus
+comprehensible. If we do not understand the idea of the Passion, may
+not that be due to the fact that we have formed an erroneous notion of
+the first period of the life of Jesus and so have precluded for
+ourselves in advance all possibility of attaining insight into the
+genesis of the Passion idea?
+
+The last years of research have revealed on [pg 004] what slight
+grounds our historical conception of the life of Jesus really rests.
+It cannot be concealed that we are confronted by a difficult antinomy.
+Either Jesus really took himself to be the Messiah, or (as a new
+tendency of the study now seems to suggest) this dignity was first
+ascribed to him by the early Church. In either case the “Life of
+Jesus” remains equally enigmatical.
+
+
+If Jesus really regarded himself as Messiah, how comes it that he
+acted as if he were not Messiah? How is it to be explained that his
+office and dignity seem to have nothing to do with his public
+activity? How are we to account for the fact that only after his
+public activity was ended (not to reckon the last few days at
+Jerusalem) did he disclose to his Disciples who he was, and at the
+same time enjoined upon them strict silence with regard to this
+_secret?_ It explains nothing to suggest that such conduct was
+prescribed by motives of prudence or by pedagogical considerations. In
+the Synoptical accounts where is there even the slightest hint that
+Jesus wished to educate the Disciples and the people up to a knowledge
+of his messiahship?
+
+The more one thinks about it the more clearly one recognises how
+little the assumption that Jesus took himself to be the Messiah [pg
+005] suffices to explain his “life,” inasmuch as no connection
+whatever results between his selfconsciousness and his public
+activity. It may sound banal to ask the question, but it is one which
+cannot on that account be avoided, why Jesus never tried through
+instruction to raise the people up to the new ethical conception of
+messiahship. The attempt would not have been so hopeless as one
+commonly assumes, for at that time there was a deep spiritual movement
+going on in Israel. Why did Jesus maintain persistent silence about
+his conception of messiahship?
+
+On the other hand, if one assumes that he did not take himself to be
+the Messiah, it must be explained how he came to be made Messiah after
+his death. Certainly it was not on the ground of his public activity,
+for this had nothing to do with his messiahship. But then again, what
+was the significance of the revelation of the secret of his
+messiahship to the Twelve and the confession before the high-priest?
+It is a mere act of violence to declare these scenes unhistorical. If
+one resolves upon such aggression, what is there then left of the
+whole Gospel tradition?
+
+And withal one should not forget, that if Jesus did not take himself
+to be the Messiah, this means the death blow to the Christian [pg 006]
+faith. The judgment of the early Church is not binding upon us. The
+Christian religion is founded upon the messianic consciousness of
+Jesus, whereby he himself in a signal manner sharply distinguished his
+own person from the rank of the other preachers of religious morality.
+If now he did not take himself to be the Messiah, then the whole of
+Christianity rests—to use honestly a much perverted and abused
+word—upon a “value judgment” formed by the adherents of Jesus of
+Nazareth after his death!
+
+Let us not forget that we are dealing here with an antinomy from which
+only one conclusion can be drawn, namely, that what has hitherto been
+accounted the “historical” conception of the messianic consciousness
+of Jesus is false, because it does not explain the history. Only that
+conception is historical which makes it intelligible how Jesus could
+take himself to be the Messiah without finding himself obliged to make
+this consciousness of his tell as a factor in his public ministry for
+the Kingdom of God,—rather, how he was actually compelled to make the
+messianic dignity of his person a secret! Why was his messiahship a
+secret of Jesus? To explain this means to understand his life.
+
+This new conception of the life of Jesus has [pg 007] grown out of a
+perception of the nature of this antinomy. How far it is capable of
+solving the problem may be determined by the result of further
+discussion. I publish this new view as a _sketch,_ since it belongs of
+necessity within the frame of this work on the Lord’s Supper. I hope,
+however, from the criticism of its general lines to reach greater
+clearness with regard to many exegetical details before I can think of
+giving these thoughts definitive shape in an elaborated “life of
+Jesus.”
+
+I have generally been able only to suggest the literary foundation, as
+comports with the sketchy character of this presentation. Any one,
+however, who is thoroughly familiar with this subject will readily
+perceive that behind many an assertion here made there lurks more
+detailed study of Synoptic texts than appears at the first glance.
+
+For the Synoptic question especially, the new conception of the life
+of Jesus is of great importance. From this point of view the
+composition of the Synoptists appears much simpler and clearer. The
+artificial redaction with which scholars have felt themselves
+compelled to operate is very much reduced. The Sermon on the Mount,
+the commission to the Twelve, and the eulogy of the Baptist are not
+“composite speeches,” but were for the most [pg 008] part delivered as
+they have been handed down to us. Also the form of the prophecy of the
+Passion and the Resurrection is not to be ascribed to the early
+Church, but Jesus did actually speak to his Disciples in these words
+about his future. This very simplification of the literary problem and
+the fact that the credibility of the Gospel tradition is thereby
+enhanced is of great weight for the new interpretation of the life of
+Jesus.
+
+This simplification rests, however, not upon a naïve attitude towards
+the Gospel accounts, but is brought about by insight into the laws
+whereby the early Christian conception and estimate of the person of
+Jesus conditioned the representation of his life and work. Here is a
+question which hitherto has not been treated perhaps systematically
+enough.
+
+On the one hand it is indeed certain that the early Church had a
+significant influence upon the representation of the public activity
+of Jesus. But on the other hand we have again in the very nature of
+the early Christian faith justification for the presumption that the
+Church did not alter the main lines of the account, and above all that
+it did not “fabricate facts” in the life of Jesus. For in fact the
+early Church maintained an attitude of indifference towards the life
+of Jesus as such! [pg 009] The early Christian faith had not the least
+interest in this earthly life, because the messiahship of Jesus was
+grounded upon his resurrection, not upon his earthly ministry, and the
+disciples looking forward expectantly to the coming of the Messiah in
+glory were interested in the earthly life of Jesus of Nazareth only in
+so far as it served to illustrate his sayings. There was absolutely no
+such thing as an early Christian conception of the life of Jesus, and
+the Synoptic Gospels contain nothing of the sort. They string together
+the narratives of the events of his public ministry without trying to
+make them intelligible in their sequence and connection, or to enable
+us to perceive the “development” of Jesus. Then in the course of time,
+as the eschatological expectation waned, as the emphasis upon the
+earthly appearing of Jesus as the Messiah began to preponderate, and
+thus led to a particular view (a theory) of the life of Jesus, the
+accounts of his public ministry had already assumed so fixed a form
+that they could not be affected by this process. The Fourth Gospel
+furnishes a historical picture of the life of Jesus, but it stands in
+much the same relation to the Synoptic account of the public ministry
+of Jesus as does Chronicles to the books of Samuel and Kings. The [pg
+010] difference between the Fourth Gospel and the Synoptics consists
+precisely in the fact that the former furnishes a “life of Jesus”
+whereas the Synoptics give an account of his public ministry.
+
+
+The faith of the early Church influenced by immanent laws the mode in
+which the public ministry of Jesus was represented, just as the
+Deuteronomic reform affected men’s conception of the course of events
+during the period of the judges and the Kings. It was a case of
+inevitable and unconscious shifting of the perspective. The new view
+here presented takes due account of this shifting of the perspective,
+and from this reckoning it results that the influence which the belief
+of the early Christian community exerted upon the Synoptical accounts
+does not go nearly so deep as we have hitherto been inclined to
+suppose.
+
+_Strassburg, August, 1901._
+
+[pg 011]
+
+Contents
+
+
+Author’s Preface [3]
+Translator’s Introduction [17]
+Footnotes
+CHAPTER I THE MODERN “HISTORICAL” SOLUTION
+1. Summary account of it [59]
+2. The four assumptions upon which it is based [63]
+3. The two contrasted periods (first assumption) [64]
+4. The influence of the Pauline theory of the atonement upon the
+formulation of the Synoptical prediction of the Passion (second
+assumption) [70]
+5. The Kingdom of God as an ethical entity in the Passion Idea
+(third assumption) [73]
+6. The form of the Prediction of the Passion (fourth assumption) [80]
+7. Résumé [81]
+CHAPTER II THE “DEVELOPMENT” OF JESUS
+1. The Kingdom of God as an ethical and as an eschatological fact [84]
+2. The eschatological character of the charge to the Twelve [87]
+3. The new view [92]
+CHAPTER III THE PREACHING OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+1. The new morality as repentance [94]
+2. The ethics of Jesus and modern ethics [99]
+CHAPTER IV THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+1. The parables of the secret of the Kingdom of God [106]
+2. The secret of the Kingdom of God in the address to the people
+after the mission of the Twelve [110]
+3. The secret of the Kingdom of God in the light of the Prophetic
+and Jewish expectation [112]
+4. The secret of the Kingdom of God and the assumption of a
+fortunate Galilean period [115]
+5. The secret of the Kingdom of God and the universalism of
+Jesus [117]
+6. The secret of the Kingdom of God and Jesus’ attitude towards
+the Law and the State [119]
+7. The modern element in Jesus’ eschatology [120]
+CHAPTER V The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Thought of the
+Passion [124]
+CHAPTER VI THE CHARACTER ASCRIBED TO JESUS ON THE GROUND OF HIS
+PUBLIC MINISTRY
+1. The problem and the facts [127]
+2. Jesus is Elijah through his solidarity with the Son of Man [135]
+3. Jesus is Elijah through the signs which proceed from Him [139]
+4. The victory over demons and the secret of the Kingdom of God [143]
+5. Jesus and the Baptist [145]
+6. The Baptist and Jesus [147]
+7. The blind man at Jericho and the ovation at the entrance of
+Jesus to Jerusalem [156]
+CHAPTER VII AFTER THE MISSION OF THE TWELVE LITERARY AND HISTORICAL
+PROBLEMS
+1. The voyage on the lake after the return of the Twelve [164]
+2. The supper by the seashore [168]
+3. The week at Bethsaida [174]
+CHAPTER VIII THE SECRET OF MESSIAHSHIP
+1. From the Mount of Transfiguration to Cæsarea Philippi [180]
+2. The futuristic character of Jesus’ messiahship [185]
+3. The Son of Man and the futuristic character of Jesus’
+messiahship [190]
+4. The resurrection of the dead and the futuristic character of
+Jesus’ messiahship [201]
+5. The betrayal by Judas—the last disclosure of the secret of
+messiahship [214]
+CHAPTER IX THE SECRET OF THE PASSION
+1. The pre-messianic affliction [219]
+2. The idea of the Passion in the first period [223]
+3. The “Temptation” and the divine omnipotence [226]
+4. The idea of the Passion in the second period [230]
+5. Isaiah 40-66: the secret of the Passion foretold in the
+Scripture [236]
+6. The “human” element in the secret of the Passion [240]
+7. The idea of the Passion in the primitive Church. The shifting
+of the perspective [242]
+CHAPTER X
+Summary of the Life of Jesus [253]
+Postscript [274]
+
+
+THE MYSTERY OF
+THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 017]
+
+AN INTRODUCTION
+BY THE TRANSLATOR
+
+
+1. An Account of Schweitzer’s Work and Its Reception.
+
+THE work which is here translated was published in 1901 as the
+_second_ part of a treatise entitled _Das Abendmahl._ The full title
+reads: _The Lord’s Supper in connection with the Life of Jesus and the
+History of Early Christianity._ This second part was issued separately
+and bore also the following sub-title: _Das Messianitäts und
+Leidensgeheimnis. Eine Skizze des Lebens Jesu._
+
+It implies no disparagement of Schweitzer’s novel and important study
+of the Lord’s Supper that this second part is here separated from the
+first and published by itself in English. This part is really
+independent. It has moreover a much broader scope and appeals to a far
+wider interest than does the treatise as a whole. There is reason to
+fear that, appearing as a part of a study of the Lord’s Supper and
+under that title, it might be ignored by many of the persons who most
+would desire to read it. The scant [pg 018] attention accorded at
+first to Schweitzer’s work in Germany may be ascribed in part to that
+very cause, and there appears to be no other reason to account for the
+fact that the “Sketch” has not yet been publicly noticed in England or
+America, so far as the translator is aware.
+
+It will not be denied, even by those who are least inclined to agree
+with the views of the Author, that this first work of the young
+Strassburg student did not deserve the oblivion which seemed to
+threaten it for some years after its appearance. It is manifest now
+that Schweitzer’s theory, to say the least of it, must be _reckoned_
+with by every one who would seriously study the Gospels or the Life of
+Jesus. Obviously it was not the weakness of the book, but rather its
+strong originality, and in particular the trenchant way in which it
+demolished the “liberal life of Jesus,” which accounts for the passive
+hostility with which it was greeted. In fact it contained more than
+could be readily digested at once either by a liberal or a
+conservative mind. Most of the New Testament students in Germany had
+collaborated in the fabrication of the “liberal life of Jesus” and
+they could not patiently endure to see their work destroyed. Those
+among us who fancy that German [pg 019] professors are bloodless
+beings who live in an atmosphere purified of passion and prejudice,
+need to be informed that on the contrary they are human, all too
+human. The animosities of party and school and the jealousies of the
+cathedra have been proverbial for generations. The reception accorded
+to Schweitzer’s work does not seem creditable. It was met by something
+like a conspiracy of silence.
+
+Schweitzer, however, _compelled_ attention by the publication in 1906
+of a much larger work entitled, _“Von Reimarus zu Wrede,”_ which is a
+history of the study of the life of Jesus during the last century. A
+work like this, practically the only one of its sort, supplied a felt
+need and could not be passed by without notice. Schweitzer’s own view,
+however, though it was presented clearly in this volume, was still not
+taken due account of in Germany. Jülicher’s supercilious criticism in
+_“Neue Linien”_ (190—) is characteristic of the treatment it received.
+The translator knows of no prominent scholar in Germany who has
+cordially welcomed Schweitzer’s view, nor of any that has thoroughly
+and ably opposed it. They have been occupied there rather with
+Wrede’s_(_1_)_acute criticism of the messianic element in the Gospels
+[pg 020] and with the denial by Drews_(_2_)_and others of the
+historical existence of Jesus. To destructive criticism of this sort
+Schweitzer’s own work is the best answer. The only work which
+seriously reckons with this new point of view is a brief but
+magisterial book by H. J. Holtzmann: _Das messianische Bewusstsein
+Jesu,_ 1907.
+
+Very different was the reception of Schweitzer’s latter work in
+England. The interest there centred at once upon Schweitzer’s own
+view. In 1907, the year after its publication, Professor Sanday
+delivered a course of lectures at Oxford and Cambridge in which he
+enthusiastically accepted Schweitzer’s position with hardly a
+reservation._(_3_)_In 1910 this second work of Schweitzer’s was
+translated into English and published under the title: _The Quest of
+the Historical Jesus,_ with a preface by Professor Burkitt. By this
+time the interest in Schweitzer and his theory had become a furore
+among the younger men in Oxford and Cambridge. But just then there
+came an emissary from Germany, Professor Ernst von Dobschütz, who
+essayed to disprove Schweitzer’s theory in a course of lectures
+delivered at [pg 021] Oxford in 1909._(_4_)_Whereupon Professor
+Sanday, in a pathetic article in the _Hibbert Journal_ for October,
+1911, retracted his support of Schweitzer’s position. He felt that he
+had been over hasty in adopting it. And so indeed it seems he was, for
+it appears that in preparing his lectures he had not taken the pains
+to read the “Sketch,” that is to say, Schweitzer’s first and
+fundamental and most carefully reasoned argument for his view. By the
+same token Canon Sanday seems to have been over hasty in making his
+retraction, for he had not _yet_ read the “Sketch,”—and von Dobschütz’
+criticism after all is not very impressive.
+
+In America the whole question has been simply ignored. It generally
+takes, in fact, about a decade for an important foreign work to reach
+us,—except in the case of a very few scholars who have already gained
+our ear. According to this reckoning it is time the “Sketch” were
+translated. In view both of the acceptance which Schweitzer’s theory
+has met with in England and of the opposition made to it there, it is
+high time that his most cogent and careful statement of his position
+be made known. For although Schweitzer’s position is restated in his
+latter work already [pg 022] translated into English, and is there
+also illuminated from various sides, particularly in its relation to
+Wrede’s work—which appeared in the same year as the “Sketch” and is so
+strikingly like it so far as its criticism goes and so different in
+its result,—yet it cannot be adequately appreciated without a study of
+the earlier work.
+
+It is known that Albert Schweitzer has for some time been preparing to
+go as medical missionary to the Congo. But in spite of his medical
+studies he has recently found time to publish a brilliant “History of
+Pauline Study since the Reformation.”_(_5_)_This is in a way a
+continuation of the history of the study of the life of Jesus. Here
+again Schweitzer has a view of his own: in all the complexity of
+Paul’s thought he perceives a unity which is due to the pervading
+eschatological outlook. Fortunately, this view of his own, instead of
+being appended to the historical study, as in the former book, is to
+be published separately under the title: _Die Mystic des Apostles
+Paulus._ This practical measure will insure that it shall not be
+overlooked. It is to be hoped too that it will not have to wait long
+for an English translation.
+
+[pg 023]
+
+Professor Schweitzer found time also to prepare a new and much
+enlarged edition of his _Geschichte der Leben-Jesu-Forschung_ (History
+of the Study of the Life of Jesus), which is the title by which he now
+more aptly describes his well known work. He has brought this history
+down to date, and in the short concluding chapter he suggests a number
+of pregnant reflections which will later be referred to in this
+introduction with the aim of conciliating this archæological world of
+Jesus’ thought with our religious estimate of his person. It must be
+recognised from the outset that _time_ is necessary for such an
+adjustment. The perception of the eschatological character of the
+Gospels is a sudden emergency: we have not yet had time to assimilate
+it.
+
+At this writing Professor Schweitzer is already at work as medical
+missionary in Africa. It is of interest to know that his plan is to
+return after three years to Europe, and again after an equal period;
+to Africa. On account of the radical character of his critical works
+he was not accepted as a fellow-worker in any of the German missions
+and is labouring in conjunction with (though independently and at his
+own expense) the station of the Paris Evangelical [pg 024] Missionary
+Society at Lambarene in French Equatorial Africa—the country which
+used to be called the French Congo. “Schweitzer as Missionary” is the
+title of an article in the _Hibbert Journal_ for July 1914 based upon
+the printed circular letters which he sends to his friends and
+supporters. In a letter to the translator he speaks of his efforts to
+mitigate the scourge of leprosy and the sleeping sickness as an
+example of “practical eschatology.”
+
+
+2. The Significance of Schweitzer’s Work.
+
+The opportuneness of Schweitzer’s eschatological interpretation of the
+life of Jesus appears the more manifest the more one knows of the
+recent history of Gospel study. To bring that out clearly is the
+special purpose of the Author in his _Quest of the Historical Jesus,_
+particularly in chapters I, XIX, and XX. It could not be done better.
+At all events such a task is obviously beyond the scope of this
+introduction. Here it need only be pointed out that Schweitzer’s
+theory, striking as it is, did not spring into being without roots in
+a soil prepared for it. The eschatological question itself had been
+sharply brought to the fore. Contention for and against the
+recognition of it as an important [pg 025] element in the Gospels was
+the order of the day. All that tended to concentrate attention upon
+the problem of the personal consciousness of Jesus (as, in particular,
+Baldensperger’s work),_(_6_)_was a direct preparation for Schweitzer.
+Johannes Weiss had already stood out as the foremost champion of
+eschatology in the Gospel._(_7_)_His recognition of eschatology was
+confined, however, to the _teaching of Jesus._ Hence he did not avail
+himself of it for the solution of the historical problems. For this
+reason he cannot be regarded as an exponent—to use Schweitzer’s
+phrase—of “thoroughgoing eschatology” (konsequente Eschatologie). But
+the solution Schweitzer proposed was already “in the air,” as he said
+himself in his preface. That presentiment was strikingly fulfilled in
+the fact that in the selfsame year Wrede published a book with a title
+almost identical, which envisaged the same problems in the same way,
+only that it sought to solve them by eliminating eschatology as an
+intrusion in the historical narrative, thus resulting in
+“thoroughgoing scepticism.” Schweitzer is justified in insisting that
+his work and [pg 026] Wrede’s cannot be played off against each other,
+but constitute a combined attack, so far as concerns the criticism of
+the common, liberal life of Jesus.
+
+There is nothing audacious in Schweitzer’s proclamation of the
+collapse of the liberal life of Jesus. He does not claim to have
+destroyed it, he merely attests the fact of its collapse. “The Jesus
+of Nazareth who appeared as the Messiah, proclaimed the morality of
+the kingdom of God, established the kingdom of heaven upon earth, and
+died in order to consecrate his work,—this Jesus never existed. It is
+a figure sketched by Rationalism, enlivened by Liberalism, and dressed
+up by Modern Theology in the clothes of historical
+science.”_(_8_)_This fabric did not fall by reason of the strength of
+any attack from without, but collapsed through its inherent weakness,
+“shattered and cloven by the actual historical problems which one
+after another emerged and would not down in spite of all the cunning,
+art, artifice, and force” which was expended upon this picture of
+Jesus during the last hundred years. In spite of the protestation that
+this picture still stands undemolished, no one can be found any more
+to write a liberal life of Jesus. On [pg 027] the other hand sceptical
+works have multiplied so rapidly that it would be difficult to
+enumerate them here. After Kalthoff_(_9_)_ and Drews_(_10_)_the
+designation of “thoroughgoing scepticism” can hardly be applied to
+Wrede’s theory. All the books of this class owe what appearance of
+strength they have, not to their inherent worth, but to the weakness
+of the theory which opposes them—the current liberal life of Jesus.
+Solely with a view to maintaining the integrity of this picture it has
+been found necessary from time to time to sacrifice so much of the
+documentary evidence—the Synoptic Gospels or their sources—upon which
+the history of Jesus reposes, that in the end it seems not very
+unreasonable for Drews and others to assume, from the admissions of
+their opponents, that there is no convincing historical evidence for
+the existence of Jesus, and that the real task of the scholar is to
+show how such a figure was invented.
+
+“It is extraordinary,” says Schweitzer in the last chapter of the new
+edition of his History of the Life of Jesus Study, “how it has fared
+with the study of the life of Jesus. It set out to find the historical
+[pg 028] Jesus, and fancied that when he was found he could be set,
+just as he is, in the midst of our age as Teacher and Saviour. It
+loosed the bands which fettered him to the rock of ecclesiastical
+dogma, and rejoiced when life and movement returned to the figure and
+the historical man Jesus was seen approaching. He did not stay,
+however, but passed our age by and returned again to his own. That is
+what astonished and alarmed the theology of the last decades,—that by
+no violence of misinterpretation could they succeed in keeping him in
+our age, but had to let him go. He returned to his own age with the
+same necessity that the freed pendulum swings back to its original
+position.
+
+“The historical foundation of Christianity, as rationalism,
+liberalism, and modern theology count it, exists no longer,—which,
+however, is not to say that Christianity has therefore lost its
+historical foundation. The work which historical theology believed it
+must carry out, and which it sees falling to pieces at the very moment
+when the completion was near, is only the terra cotta veneer of the
+true, indestructible, historical foundation, which is independent of
+any historical [pg 029] knowledge and proof—simply because it is
+there, it exists.
+
+“Jesus is something to our world because a mighty stream of spiritual
+influence has gone forth from him and has penetrated our age also.
+This fact will be neither shaken nor confirmed by an historical
+knowledge.
+
+“One fancied he could be more to our time by the fact that he entered
+it vitally as a man of our humanity. That, however, is not possible.
+For one reason, because this Jesus never so existed. Also, because
+historical knowledge, though it can clarify spiritual life already
+existing, can never awaken life. It is able to reconcile the present
+with the past; to a certain degree it can transport the present into
+the past; but to construct the present is not within its power.
+
+“One cannot estimate highly enough what the study of the life of Jesus
+has accomplished. It is a great and unique demonstration of veracity
+and love of the truth,—one of the most significant occurrences in the
+whole spiritual life of mankind. What the modern-liberal and the
+popularising investigation has done, in spite of all its errors, for
+the present and for the coming state of religion can only be measured
+when one takes [pg 030] into comparison the Roman Catholic—or more
+broadly the Latin—culture and literature which has been touched little
+or not at all by the influence of these spirits.
+
+“And yet the disillusion had to come. We modern theologians are too
+proud of our historical learning, too proud of our historical Jesus,
+too confident in our faith in what our historical theology can
+spiritually contribute to the world. The notion that by historical
+knowledge we can construct a new and vigorous Christianity and let
+loose spiritual forces in the world dominates us like a fixed idea and
+does not permit us to perceive that all we have done thereby is to
+assail, not the great religious problem itself, but one of the
+problems of general culture which is entrenched in front of it, and
+which we would solve as well as we can. We thought that we had to lead
+our age as it were through a by-path, through the historical Jesus, in
+order that it might come to Jesus who is present spiritual power. The
+by-path is now barred by real history.
+
+“We were in danger of putting ourselves between men and the Gospels
+and not leaving the individual any longer alone with the sayings of
+Jesus.
+
+“We were in danger, too, of presenting to [pg 031] them a Jesus that
+was too little, because we had forced him into man’s measure and into
+the mould of average human psychology. Read through the ‘lives of
+Jesus’ since the sixties and behold what they have made of the
+imperial words of our Lord, what a weak and ambiguous sense they have
+put upon his peremptory, other-worldly requisitions, in order that he
+might not clash with our ideals of civilisation and his
+other-worldliness might be brought to terms with our this-worldliness.
+Many of his greatest words one finds lying in a corner, a heap of
+discharged spring-bolts. We make Jesus speak with our time another
+language than that which passed his lips.
+
+“Thereby we ourselves became impotent and deprived our own thoughts of
+their proper energy by transposing them into history and making them
+speak to us out of antiquity. It is nothing less than a tragedy for
+modern theology that it confounds with history everything it attempts
+to expound, and is actually proud of the virtuosity with which it
+contrives to discover its own thoughts in the past.
+
+“Therefore there is hopeful significance in the fact that modern
+theology with its study of the life of Jesus, however long it may
+resist [pg 032] by the invention of fresh shifts and expedients, must
+in the end find itself deluded in its manufactured history, overcome
+by real history and by the facts—which according to Wrede’s fine
+saying are often more radical than theories.
+
+“What is the historical Jesus to us when we keep him clear of any
+admixture of the present with the past? We have the immediate
+impression that his person, in spite of all that is strange and
+enigmatical, has something great to say to all ages, as long as the
+world endures, may views and knowledge change never so much, and that
+it means therefore to our religion also a far-reaching enrichment. It
+behooves us to bring this elementary feeling to a clear expression, so
+that it may not soar away in dogmatic assertions and phrases and
+beguile historical science ever anew into the hopeless undertaking of
+modernising Jesus by diluting or explaining away what is historically
+conditioned in his preaching, as though he would become more to us
+thereby.
+
+“The whole study of the life of Jesus has in fine only the one aim, of
+establishing the natural and unbiased conception of the earliest
+accounts. In order to know Jesus and to apprehend him there is need of
+no preparatory [pg 033] erudition. It is also not requisite that a man
+comprehend the details of Jesus’ public ministry and be able to
+construct with them a ‘life of Jesus.’ His nature, and that which he
+is and wills, appears in certain lapidary expressions of his and
+forces itself upon us. One _knows_ him without knowing much about him,
+and apprehends the eschatological note even if he attain no clear
+conception of the details. For this is the characteristic thing about
+Jesus, that he looks beyond the perfection and blessedness of the
+individual to the perfection and blessedness of the world and of an
+elect humanity. His will and his hope is fixed upon the Kingdom of
+God.”
+
+It is much to be wondered at that conservative scholars have not
+generally recognised the strong constructive consequences of
+Schweitzer’s theory, in particular the proof it incidentally affords
+of the historical worth of the Synoptic Gospels. Schweitzer
+rehabilitates the credit of S. Mark’s Gospel simply by showing that no
+important parts of it need be discarded on the ground that they are
+inconsistent with the sketch which he draws of the history of Jesus.
+When it is objected to him that he bases his view upon “the weakest
+passages,” it is time we make clear to [pg 034] ourselves that
+“strong” and “weak” in this connection mean no more than _consistent_
+or _inconsistent_ with the _assumptions_ of the modern “liberal life
+of Jesus.” It is only a roundabout way of begging the question.
+Generally speaking, such a document as Mark, antecedent to any theory
+we may attempt to apply, must be presumed to be of pretty equal value
+throughout. That theory which, without artifice or violence, best
+accords with the greatest number of facts recorded, and so best
+preserves the credit of the documents upon which it seeks to found
+itself, is presumably the right theory. Schweitzer’s view, as he
+himself says in the Preface, greatly simplifies and clarifies the
+Synoptic problem. It is no longer necessary to attribute so much to
+“the editor’s hand.” The Sermon on the Mount, the Charge to the
+Twelve, and the Eulogy over the Baptist are not collections of
+scattered sayings, but were in the main delivered as they have come
+down to us. Especially important is the recognition that even for
+constructing the history of Jesus Mark by itself does not suffice: the
+discourses in Matthew are invaluable indications.
+
+Nor is this the only positive and comforting element in Schweitzer’s
+view. In the Postscript he has himself laid stress upon the [pg 035]
+aim of his work: “to impress upon the modern age and upon modern
+theology the figure of Jesus in its overwhelming heroic greatness.”
+And this he has accomplished in unexpected ways. The figure of Jesus
+which we have striven so hard to bring into nearness and sympathy
+through our psychological analysis has eluded our grasp, and under the
+hands of the historian and archæologist it has receded inexorably into
+the remote past and into a corner of Galilee. It looks to us strange
+and even petty in its remote Galilean surroundings. Now that figure,
+by the force of an elemental energy, is seen to break the shackles
+which would bind it to a particular time and place and become—not
+modern, indeed, but—universal.
+
+One may easily be so much absorbed with the difficulties in the way of
+accepting Schweitzer’s construction as to ignore the light which it
+sheds upon some of the major difficulties of the traditional view with
+which we have long wrestled in vain. One may mention at least eight
+obscure points which are illuminated for the first time by the
+eschatological view of the Gospel history. 1. Jesus’ use of the title
+“Son of Man,”—commonly in the third person and with a futuristic
+sense, as denoting a dignity and [pg 036] power which were _not yet_
+his. Jesus was the Messiah designate. 2. The position of John the
+Baptist: it was Jesus alone that discovered in him the character of
+Elijah “the Coming One” (cf. Jn 1:21 ). 3. The conception of the
+Kingdom of God as a _gift,_ to be received passively as by a little
+child—and yet as a thing that “violent men” must wrest to themselves
+“by force.” 4. The relation of Jesus’ messianic expectation to that
+which was current among the people. Jesus moralised the popular
+eschatological ideal by combining it with the preaching of the
+Prophets. That Jesus opposed a purely moral ideal to a popular
+political agitation is doubly a fiction. 5. The significance of the
+Mission of the Twelve and its connection with the popular excitement
+which drew five thousand men into the desert by the seashore. 6. The
+significance of the Transfiguration, coming _before_ the Confession of
+Peter, and explaining how the knowledge of Jesus’ Messiahship was
+given by divine revelation. 7. The character of the secret which Judas
+possessed and was in a position to betray. Our notion that during the
+last days in Jerusalem every one knew of Jesus’ claim to be the Christ
+is plainly contrary to the record. The famous disputes [pg 037] of
+those days would have taken a very different form if the question
+which agitated all minds was, Is he the Christ? or is he not? 8.
+Jesus’ notion of the _necessity_ of his death, his resolution to die
+at Jerusalem, and his conception that he was giving his life as “a
+ransom for _many.”_
+
+Unquestionably it is no easy matter to assimilate so novel and
+striking a view as that of Schweitzer. To bring it into relation with
+the presuppositions of our religious view in general involves
+demolition and reconstruction—a labor heavy and grievous to the soul.
+The mind instinctively recoils from such a labour and is fain to
+protect itself by a general repudiation and denial. Moreover the
+Author has presented his view with a naked simplicity which, while it
+renders it easier to understand and more difficult to confute, makes
+it also, one must confess, more difficult to accept. We are not
+inclined to accept opinions in the face of a display of force, and as
+it were at the muzzle of a gun—even when the gun is loaded with logic.
+Practically we must first contrive to see how the opinions may be made
+acceptable. This task the Author has not unreasonably left to
+us,—although a careful study of his work will reveal many suggestions
+helpful to this end. [pg 038] The translator has read this little book
+not once but many times and through a course of years, with ever
+increasing appreciation of its worth—not only in view of its logical
+force but of its _acceptability._ On the other hand, many of us have
+felt that the liberal life of Jesus was becoming increasingly more
+_unacceptable._
+
+Canon Sanday confesses_(_11_)_that he recoils from Schweitzer’s view
+chiefly on account of his “tendency to push things to extremes at the
+dictates of logical consistency.” It is _too_ “thoroughgoing.” It
+seems indeed as though the Author were inclined to press this word to
+an extreme, proposing to explain _all_ the words and acts of Jesus
+with reference to his eschatological outlook. But that is only a
+threat. What he _has_ done falls very far short of it, and it is upon
+_that_ we have to pass judgment. _That,_ in fact, is “thoroughgoing”
+enough to justify the term even if it went no further. The principle
+of “thorough” might very well apply to the construction of the history
+as a whole without implying that every trait of Jesus’ life and
+teaching was coloured by it and that he himself was so obsessed by a
+single idea that he was unable to see things as they are. [pg 039]
+This is precisely what the Gospels do not permit us to believe. It is
+manifest that Jesus had a peculiarly acute sensibility to his
+surroundings, whether it were nature or human society, and responded
+feelingly, spontaneously. His sense of right and wrong was so clearly
+intuitive that he could deal sovereignly with the Law. Schweitzer
+himself furnishes suggestions which tend to render even the word
+“Interimsethik” acceptable. Jesus’ moral teaching was oriented towards
+the coming Kingdom. It was “penance” in preparation for the Kingdom of
+God. But it was not for all this an arbitrary penance: like the ethics
+of the Prophets it was the prescription of righteousness. In one sense
+at least, it was not of merely transitory importance. From the
+expectation of the approaching Kingdom it received a sharpness of
+emphasis which it could not otherwise have had,—but it was a _true_
+emphasis. It described the conduct appropriate to man in this present
+world _so long as this world shall last_—a conduct which is justified
+here by the expectation of a better world to come, “beyond good and
+evil” if you will.
+
+“Thoroughgoing eschatology” is surely not incompatible with the
+recognition of a deeper [pg 040] intuition in Jesus which is necessary
+to explain the intensity of this very eschatology itself. It would be
+a rigorous extreme indeed which would exclude the recognition of
+Jesus’ God-consciousness—his consciousness of God as Father—as the
+primary and all-controlling fact of his religious experience. Nothing
+is more obvious than that out of that consciousness he acted and spoke
+_immediately._ And when his acts were influenced and his speech
+coloured by the eschatological outlook, what was that ultimately but
+the consciousness of God’s _nearness?_ How could the expectation of a
+divine world be so constant and so vivid without the feeling that it
+is in a sense locally near, imminent, impending, ready to break in,
+indeed actually intruding upon this present world, as it were “the
+finger of God” touching us here? Intuitional feeling, presentiment,
+insight, does not readily distinguish between nearness in time and in
+space. Jesus’ eschatology was an expression of his
+God-consciousness—the most eminent expression of it.
+
+Eschatology in the strict sense, with all its apocalyptic features,
+has long ago passed out of our view of the world. Schweitzer shows us
+with what justification the Church discarded it. But the feeling that
+was behind [pg 041] it remains, and still constitutes the fundamental
+experience of religion. It is the feeling of a divine environment,
+close to us, unspeakably close, imminent, intruding even upon the
+every-day world.
+
+
+ “This is the finger of God,
+ The flash of the will that can,
+ Existent behind all laws,
+ That made them, and lo! they are.”
+
+
+Intuitional feeling is not especially inclined to express
+the sense of God in terms of time. Space is the category
+more familiar to it. Wordsworth finds terms to express
+what is so intangible.
+
+
+ “Those obstinate questionings
+ Of sense and outward things,
+ Fallings from us, vanishings;
+ Blank misgivings of a creature
+ Moving about in worlds not realised
+ High instincts, before which our mortal nature
+ Did tremble like a guilty thing surprised.”
+
+
+Apocalyptic eschatology no one could even wish to revive. But this
+does not mean that Biblical eschatology—the expectation of the great
+Event—must be dissolved in the modern hope of the gradual amelioration
+of the world in the course of historical evolution. We cannot but feel
+how great a breach that would constitute between our thought and the
+[pg 042] mind of Jesus. Schweitzer remarks upon the heavy dose of
+“resignation” which such a view implies. Strange that we do not more
+often realise this! Does our optimism blind us to the fact that we
+shall not partake in “the far off divine event”—except our spirit
+survive the bodily death? _There_—in the hope of life beyond death—is
+the expectation which we substitute for apocalyptic eschatology,—a
+substitution so natural that it came about without observation. S.
+Paul lived in the expectation of the coming of the Lord, but he
+evidently felt no sense of incongruity when he expressed the feeling
+that “to depart and be with Christ is very far better”—he was
+referring to the natural death of the body and the hope of life
+immediately beyond it. This is the hope which has ever since
+characterised the Christian Church. To dwell upon that hope, to set
+our “affections upon things above, where Christ is, seated at the
+right hand of God”—that is “heavenly mindedness.” With respect to the
+feeling at the base of it, it is not so very different from
+apocalyptical eschatology. In this view Christian ethics still remains
+“conditional”—you may call it _Interimsethik_ if you like. The conduct
+it requires of us is conditioned by the hope of a future [pg 043] life
+and is absurd under any other supposition. “The practice of the
+presence of God” is the most fundamentally important religious
+exercise. But if we succeed in persuading ourselves that here and now
+we have the only kingdom of God we shall ever know; if all our
+interest and effort is absorbed in realising a kingdom of God upon
+earth; then not only have we need of “resignation,” but we cannot
+avoid feeling the breach between our thought and activity and that of
+Jesus. We are puzzled to distinguish between worldly and heavenly
+mindedness because even our religious interest is focussed upon this
+earth, as the sphere not only of our moral duty but of our ultimate
+hope—the gradual evolution of a perfect human society. That is what we
+have made of the Kingdom of God, interpreting it uneschatologically.
+Is not this after all a more credulous hope than that which expects a
+divine intervention, a “regeneration” of heaven and earth, which shall
+prepare the fit abode for the perfect society? And does it not strike
+at the very roots of the religious sentiment when we distract the mind
+from its natural interest and curiosity about the Beyond? Our personal
+fate is not so much involved in the far off amelioration of human
+society as in something [pg 044] much nearer, very near and imminent,
+the estate just beyond death. It is not altogether without reason that
+in Christian dogmatics the name of eschatology has been applied to
+this topic. The earlier type of eschatology Jesus himself has rendered
+forevermore impossible. It is likely that the first objection _we_
+feel to apocalyptic eschatology lies in the fact that it was expressed
+in terms of an erroneous cosmology and is therefore incompatible with
+our modern view of the world. But as a matter of fact apocalyptic
+eschatology vanished from the vital creed of the Church long before
+the cosmology upon which it was founded was proved to be false. It was
+Jesus who brought it to an end. Another sort of eschatology promptly
+took its place—another heavenly hope, which was substantially not
+apocalyptic. Yet this doctrine too—the early Christian notion of the
+soul and of heaven—was necessarily founded upon the opinions of
+ancient science. The doctrine of the soul and the doctrine of heaven,
+being less directly affected by the findings of modern science, have
+been more slow to change in conformity with our changed view of the
+world than has, for example, the doctrine of creation. But in their
+old form they are none the less incompatible [pg 045] with our modern
+thought; and for this reason we feel forced to put _every_ sort of
+eschatology aside, we are no longer able to place the heavenly hope,
+and the heavenly mindedness which it prompts, in the central position
+which belongs to them. That is to say, we urgently need to express the
+Christian doctrine of the soul in terms of the highest modern
+psychology and to express our heavenly hope in terms of a modern
+cosmology. We need a new cosmology! That may seem to express an
+unpractical and fantastic desire. But it will not so seem to any one
+who knows what his theory of the soul and his grandiose cosmology
+meant practically and religiously to Gustav Theodor Fechner,_(_12_)_
+or who has experienced what this may mean for the orientation of his
+own personal religion. The old view of the world has passed away: we
+have been too slothful and cowardly to take full possession of the
+new. There is really nothing in the modern view of the world which
+effectually precludes us from directing our hope and orienting our
+life towards the Beyond, as did Jesus in his way, and as the early
+Church did in its way. From the moment that Jesus passed into the
+invisible and was there felt and recognised as the correspondent [pg
+046] of our religious faculty we find that spatial terms better
+express the substance of our heavenly mindedness than do temporal. We
+“seek the things that are above, where Christ is, seated on the right
+hand of God.” To recognise that our “citizenship is in heaven” is not
+to render ourselves inept for the performance of our duty upon earth.
+Rather it needs to be reflected whether, without the detachment,
+without the superiority to earthly circumstance, happy or untoward,
+which comes from setting our “mind on the things that are above,” we
+possess any fulcrum for doing a real work upon the world.
+
+The eschatological interpretation of the Gospels does not thrust Jesus
+so far from us as we are prone to think: rather calls us to approach
+nearer to him, to share again more closely “the mind which was in
+Christ Jesus” and which in one form or another has been at all times
+the chief inspiration of the Church.
+
+In his “Concluding Reflections” Schweitzer says: “Every full view of
+life, cosmic philosophy, _Weltanschauung_ (the German word it is
+impossible to translate) contains side by side elements which are
+conditioned by the age as well as others which are unconditioned, for
+it consists in the very fact that a penetrating _will_ has pervaded
+and [pg 047] constituted the conceptual material furnished it by
+history. This latter is subjected to change. Hence there is no
+_Weltanschauung,_ however great and profound it may be, which does not
+contain perishable material. But the will itself is timeless. It
+reveals the unsearchable and primary nature of a person and determines
+also the final and fundamental definition of his _Weltanschauung._ May
+the conceptual material alter never so much, with consequent diversity
+between the new _Weltanschauung_ and the old, yet these in reality
+only lie just so far apart as the wills which constitute them diverge
+in direction. The differences which are determined by the alteration
+of the conceptual material are in the last analysis merely secondary
+in importance, however emphatically they may make themselves felt; for
+the same will, however different be the conceptual material in which
+it manifests itself, always creates _Weltanschauungen_ which in their
+nature correspond with one another and coincide.
+
+“Since the time when man attained the conditions precedent to such an
+apprehension and judgment of things as we might call in our sense a
+_Weltanschauung_—that is, since the individual learned to take into
+consideration the totality of being, the world as a [pg 048] whole,
+and to reflect as a knowing and willing subject upon the reciprocal
+relations of a passive and active sort which subsist between himself
+and the All—no far-reaching development has really occurred in the
+spiritual life of humanity. The problems of the Greeks turn up again
+in the most modern philosophy. The scepticism of to-day is essentially
+the same as that which came to expression in ancient thought.
+
+“The primitive, late-Jewish metaphysic in which Jesus expressed his
+_Weltanschauung_ aggravates exceedingly the difficulty of translating
+his ideas into the formulas of our time. The task is quite impossible
+so long as one tries to accomplish it by distinguishing in detail
+between the permanent and the transitory. And what results as the
+consequence of this procedure is so lacking in force and
+conclusiveness that the enrichment it contributes to our religion is
+rather apparent than real.
+
+“In truth there can be no question of making distinction between
+transitory and permanent, but only of transposing the original
+constitutive thought of that _Weltanschauung_ into terms familiar to
+us. How would the Will of Jesus—apprehended in its immediateness, in
+its definiteness and in its whole [pg 049] compass—how would it
+vitalise our thought material and construct from it a _Weltanschauung_
+of so moral and so mighty a sort that it could be counted the modern
+equivalent of that which he created in terms of the late-Jewish
+metaphysics and eschatology?
+
+“If one tries, as has been done hitherto almost invariably, to
+reconcile Jesus’ _Weltanschauung_ with ours any way it will go—which
+can be accomplished only by paring away all that is
+characteristic—this procedure strikes also at the will which is
+manifested in these conceptions.
+
+“It loses its originality and is no longer able to exert an elemental
+influence upon us. Hence it is that the Jesus of modern theology is so
+extraordinarily lifeless. Left in his eschatological world he is
+greater and, for all the strangeness, he affects us more elementally,
+more mightily than the modern Jesus.
+
+“Jesus’ deed consists in the fact that his original and profound moral
+nature took possession of the late-Jewish eschatology and so gives
+expression, in the thought material of the age, to the hope and the
+will which are intent upon the ethical consummation of the world. All
+attempts to avert one’s vision from this _Weltanschauung_ as a whole
+and to make Jesus’ significance for us to consist in [pg 050] his
+revelation of the “fatherhood of God,” the “brotherhood of man,” and
+so forth, must therefore of necessity lead to a narrow and peculiarly
+insipid conception of his religion. In reality he is an authority for
+us, not in the sphere of knowledge, but only in the matter of the
+will. His destined rôle can only consist in this, that he as a mighty
+spirit quickens the motives of willing and hoping which we and our
+fellowmen bear within us and brings them to such a height of intensity
+and clarity as we could not have attained if we were left to ourselves
+and did not stand under the impression of his personality, and that he
+thus conforms our _Weltanschauung_ to his own in its very nature, in
+spite of all the diversity of thought material, and awakens in it the
+energies which are active in his.
+
+“The last and deepest knowledge of things comes from the will. Hence
+the movement of thought which strives to frame the final synthesis of
+observations and knowledge in order to construct a _Weltanschauung_ is
+determined in its direction by the will, which constitutes the primary
+and the inexplicable ultimate essence of the persons and ages in
+question.
+
+“If our age and our religion have not apprehended the greatness of
+Jesus and have [pg 051] been frightened back by the eschatological
+colour of his thought, this was due only in part to the fact that they
+could not accommodate themselves to the strangeness of it all. The
+decisive reason was another. They lacked the strong and clear stamp of
+a will and a hope directed towards the moral consummation of the
+world, which are decisive for Jesus and for his _Weltanschauung._ They
+were devoid of eschatology,—using the word here in its broadest and
+most general sense. They found in themselves no equivalents for the
+thoughts of Jesus, and were therefore not in a position to transpose
+his _Weltanschauung_ from the late-Jewish terms of thought into their
+own.
+
+“There was no answering chord of sympathy. Hence the historical Jesus
+had to remain strange to them to a very great extent, and that not
+only with respect to his thought material but also with respect to his
+very nature. His ethical enthusiasm and the immediateness and might
+which characterised his thought seems to them excessive because they
+know nothing that corresponds to it in their own thought and
+experience. So they were constantly intent upon making out of the
+“enthusiast” a modern man and theologian duly observant of metes and
+bounds [pg 052] in all his doings. Conservative theology, like the
+older orthodoxy to which it is akin, was not able to do anything with
+the historical Jesus, because it likewise makes far too little of the
+great moral ideas which in his eschatology were struggling for life
+and practical expression.
+
+“It was therefore the lack of an inward tuning to the same pitch of
+will and hope and desire which made it impossible to attain a real
+knowledge of the historical Jesus and a comprehensive religious
+relationship with him. Between him and a generation which was lacking
+in all immediateness and in all enthusiasm directed towards the final
+aims of humanity and of being, there could be no lively and
+far-reaching fellowship. For all its progress in historical perception
+it really remained more estranged from him than was the rationalism of
+the eighteenth and the beginning of the nineteenth century, which was
+brought closer to him by its enthusiastic faith in the possibility of
+rapid progress towards the moral perfection of humanity.”
+
+I marvel that Schweitzer in his “Concluding Reflections” can dwell so
+insistently upon one side of Jesus’ eschatology and ignore so
+completely the other. Jesus’ [pg 053] eschatology, the white light of
+his conception of the Kingdom of God, has come to us through the
+medium of history refracted in two rays of different colour and of
+different direction. One represents more specifically the
+other-worldly side of Jesus’ preaching, the hope of eternal
+blessedness beyond death,—which the dogmatic theologians are pleased
+to call “eschatology,” as though our modern idea really reflected
+Jesus’ conception in its totality. Commonly this is what we understand
+by the “Kingdom of Heaven.” To denominate the other ray, Schweitzer
+has appropriated (with as questionable a right) the “Kingdom of God.”
+He means to indicate by this simply the moral development of humanity,
+here and under present terrestrial conditions. We readily understand
+what he means, because that is what _we_ mean commonly by “the kingdom
+of God upon earth.” We are convinced that the progress of mankind in
+true worldly culture and civilisation constitutes a high moral aim
+which we dare not relinquish; but we have all experienced the
+difficulty of reconciling this secular enthusiasm with the
+other-worldliness of Jesus. Schweitzer helps us in a measure to
+surmount this difficulty. He also makes it in a measure clear to us
+_how_ (for the fact itself was [pg 054] patent) this enthusiasm for
+the progress of humanity has been reinforced by Jesus’ preaching. But
+it is a mistake to expect of this one coloured ray that it can ever
+give back to us the whole white light of Jesus’ inspiration. We can
+not return again to Jesus’ conception. History stands in the way—real
+history, not written narrative. Nor shall we ever be able to combine
+again in one white light the “broken lights” which have come to us
+from his teaching. But we have the two rays, and in their separateness
+they are both familiar to us. Our eyes bear better the coloured light.
+Celestial blue denotes the heavenly hope; red will do for this earth
+and our passionate hopes for its betterment. But why behave as if we
+had only one colour and all of Jesus’ light must be forced into that?
+Schweitzer ignores the heavenly hope (the thought of life beyond
+death) as though it were no longer open to the modern man. One may get
+a notion of what it still may mean to the modern scientific mind from
+Gustav Theodor Fechner’s _Büchlein vom Leben nach dem Tode,_ or more
+largely from his _Zend-Avesta,_ or his _Tagesansicht._ Though to be
+sure it can mean nothing to one who is bound by a materialistic
+philosophy. At all events it is certain that Jesus’ will and
+aspiration can be [pg 055] much more readily and fully expressed in
+these terms than in the terms of ethical and social progress here
+below. To translate his thought into these terms requires no elaborate
+effort. The first generation of his disciples did it without knowing
+what they did. Schweitzer himself observes in another place that our
+modern faith in the final but slow perfection of the world “requires a
+larger dose of resignation” than most people are aware. And how can
+any perfection upon this earth be final, since none can be eternal?
+
+We are all of us feeling after a solution of our modern difficulties.
+Schweitzer’s effort after a tolerable accommodation is poignantly
+personal like ours—and like ours it is tentative. It is too early to
+hope for complete satisfaction. Yet his efforts obviously tend in the
+same direction as ours. Schweitzer perceives that “in the last resort
+our relation with Jesus is a mystical one.” For the sake of this
+acknowledgment, as well as for other reasons which will be evident, I
+am fain to conclude this Introduction with Schweitzer’s own words—the
+words with which he concludes his latest book:
+
+“In the last resort our relationship to Jesus is of a mystical sort.
+No personality of the past can be installed in the present [pg 056] by
+historical reflection or by affirmations about his authoritative
+significance. We get into relation with him only when we are brought
+together in the recognition of a common will, experience a
+clarification, enrichment, and quickening of our will by his, and find
+ourselves again in him. In this sense every deeper relationship
+between men is of a mystical sort. Our religion, therefore, so far as
+it proves itself specifically Christian, is not so much ‘Jesus-cult’
+as Jesus-mystic.
+
+“It is only thus that Jesus creates fellowship among us. It is not as
+a symbol that he does it, nor anything of the sort. In so far as we
+with one another and with him are of one will, to place the Kingdom of
+God above all, and to serve in behalf of this faith and hope, so far
+is there fellowship between him and us and the men of all generations
+who lived and live in the same thought.
+
+“From this it will be manifest also in what way the free and the
+confined movements of religion which now go side by side will come
+together in unity. False compromises are of no avail. All concessions
+by which the free conception seeks to approach the confined can only
+result in ambiguity and inconsequence. The differences lie in the
+thought [pg 057] material which is presupposed on either side. All
+efforts after an agreement in this sphere are hopeless. These
+differences appear so prominent because there is a lack of elementary
+and vital religiousness. Two threads of water wind along side by side
+through the boulders and gravel of a great stream bed. It is of no
+avail that one seeks here and there to clear out of the way the masses
+that are piled up between them, in order that they may flow on in one
+bed. But when the water rises and overflows the boulders they find
+themselves together as a matter of course. So will the confined and
+the free spirit of religion come together when will and hope are
+directed again towards the Kingdom of God, and the fellowship with the
+spirit of Jesus becomes in them something elemental and mighty, and
+they are thereby brought so near together in the essence of their
+_Weltanschauung_ and religion that the differences of thought material
+still exist indeed, but sink beneath the surface, as the boulders are
+covered by the rising flood and in the end barely glimmer out of the
+depths.
+
+“The names by which Jesus was called in the thought material of late
+Judaism—Messiah, Son of Man, and Son of God—have [pg 058] become to us
+historical parables. Even when he applied these titles to himself,
+this was an historically conditioned expression of his apprehension of
+himself as a commander and ruler. We find no designation that might
+express his nature for us.
+
+“Unknown and nameless he comes to us, as he approached those men on
+the seashore that knew not who he was. He says the same word: But do
+thou follow me! and he sets before us the tasks which we in our
+generation must accomplish. He commands. And to those that obey him,
+wise and unwise, he will reveal himself in what may be given them to
+experience in his fellowship of peace and activity, conflict and
+suffering, and as an unutterable secret they shall come to know who he
+is. ...”
+
+
+FOOTNOTES
+
+
+ 1 _Das Messiasgeheimnis in den Evangelien,_ 1901.
+
+ 2 _Christusmythe._
+
+ 3 _The Life of Christ in Recent Research,_ 1907.
+
+ 4 _Eschatology of the Gospels,_ 1910.
+
+ 5 _Geschichte der paulinischen Forschung,_ 1911.
+
+ 6 _Das Selbstbewusstsein Jesu,_ 1st ed., 1888.
+
+ 7 _Die Predigt Jesu vom Reiche Gottes,_ 2d ed., 1900; also _Das
+ älteste Evangelium,_ 1903.
+
+ 8 _Quest of the Historical Jesus,_ cap. XX.
+
+ 9 _Das Christus-Problem,_ 1902.
+
+ 10 _Op. cit._
+
+ 11 _Hibbert Journal,_ Oct., 1911, p. 84.
+
+ 12 _Vide The Living Word_ by Elwood Worcester, 1908.
+
+
+
+
+[pg 059]
+
+CHAPTER I
+
+THE MODERN “HISTORICAL” SOLUTION
+
+
+1. Summary Account of It.
+
+THE Synoptical texts do not explain how the idea of the Passion forced
+itself upon Jesus and what it meant to him. The speeches of Peter and
+Paul viewed the Passion in the aspect of a divine necessity which was
+prophesied by the Scripture. The Pauline theory likewise has nothing
+to do with history.
+
+Therefore the idea of the Passion as it is developed here in
+connection with an account of Jesus’ life is not directly furnished by
+the texts but is deduced from them by implication. One is left here to
+the unavoidable necessity of formulating a theory, the truth of which
+can only be judged by the measure of clearness and order which it
+introduces into the Synoptic accounts.
+
+All of the theoretical constructions which have an outspoken
+historical interest coincide in an alleged solution which we
+denominate the modern-historical. What is historical about it is the
+interest which prompts [pg 060] the endeavour to explain history. The
+modern factor in it is the psychological sympathy of comprehension by
+the help of which one endeavours to show how, under the impression of
+particular experiences, the idea of the Passion forced itself upon
+Jesus and was given by him a religious significance. This solution is
+based upon the following considerations:
+
+For Jesus there could be no question of constituting a ground for the
+forgiveness of sins. That he already assumed, as the petition in the
+Lord’s Prayer shows,—it flowed indeed quite naturally from the
+pardoning father-love of God. Now the thought of the ransom (Mk 10:45
+) recalls the Pauline theory of the atonement with its juridical
+character. This, indeed, has reference to the forgiveness of sins. It
+is therefore to be presumed that the juridical notion of the
+atonement, like the thought of the forgiveness of sins, was strange to
+Jesus, since it is not suggested by anything in the whole character of
+his teaching. Consequently the expressions about the significance of
+his Passion are in their traditional form influenced somehow or
+another by Pauline conceptions.
+
+If one takes due account of this influence, the historical saying (Mk
+10:45) contains the [pg 061] notion of serving through sacrifice. This
+thought is here expressed in its highest potency. We stand upon the
+border where the heightened conception of service leads to that of
+sacrifice and atonement. The value of this sacrifice for others
+consists in the fact that this suffering death which Jesus underwent
+is at the same time the inaugural act through which the new morality
+of the Kingdom of God receives emphatic sanction and the new condition
+contemplated in the idea of the Kingdom is itself realised. This deed
+is the efficient first factor in a chain of transformations the
+supernatural conclusion of which is his “coming again” in glory, where
+the New Covenant which he sealed with his blood is fulfilled in him.
+
+Therewith it is also explained why the determination to encounter
+suffering and death could and must suggest itself. The realisation of
+the Kingdom of God was Jesus’ mission. This he had undertaken to
+effect at first within narrow limits during his Galilean ministry.
+Through his preaching of the new morality grounded upon faith in the
+divine Father, and under the influence of the power which proceeded
+from him, the beginnings of this Kingdom developed. It was a happy,
+successful period—the “Galilean spring [pg 062] time,” Keim called it.
+The climax of this period was reached with the mission of the
+Disciples. Through their preaching the glorious seed was to be strewn
+abroad everywhere. As they upon their return announced to him their
+success he broke out with the cry of exultation which accounted the
+victory already present (Mt 11:25-27).
+
+Then came the time of defeat. The opposition was contrived and carried
+out from Jerusalem (Mk 7:1). Before this the sympathy of the people
+delivered him from the consequences of occasional friction with the
+officials. Now, however, as the opposition was systematically pursued,
+even his followers fell away from him. It was ominous that the
+discussion about ceremonial purification brought to light the
+contradiction in which Jesus found himself with the legal tradition
+(Mk 7:1-23). Before spring had again returned to the land he had been
+obliged to leave Galilee. Far away in the north, in quiet and solitary
+retirement, he collected his energies in the effort perfectly to
+understand himself.
+
+For the realisation of the Kingdom there remained but one way still
+open to him,—namely, conflict with the power which opposed his work.
+He resolved to carry this conflict into the capital itself. There fate
+should decide. [pg 063] Perhaps the victory would fall to him. But,
+even if it should turn out that in the course of earthly events the
+fate of death awaited him inevitably, so long as he trod the path
+which his office prescribed, this very suffering of death must signify
+in God’s plan the performance by which his work was to be crowned. It
+was then God’s will that the moral state appropriate to the Kingdom of
+God should be inaugurated by the highest moral deed of the Messiah.
+With this thought he set out for Jerusalem—in order to remain Messiah.
+
+2. The Four Assumptions of the Modern-Historical Solution.
+
+1. The life of Jesus falls into two contrasted epochs. The first was
+fortunate, the second brought disillusion and ill success.
+
+2. The form of the Synoptical Passion-idea in Mk 10:45 (his giving
+himself a ransom for many) and in the institution of the Lord’s Supper
+(Mk 14:24: his blood given for many) is somehow or another influenced
+by the Pauline theory of the atonement.
+
+3. The conception of the Kingdom of God as a self-fulfilling ethical
+society in which service is the highest law dominated the idea of the
+Passion.
+
+[pg 064]
+
+4. If Jesus’ Passion was the inaugural act of the new morality of the
+Kingdom of God, the success of it depended upon the Disciples being
+led to understand it in this sense and to act in accordance with it.
+The Passion-idea was a reflection.
+
+Are these assumptions, considered individually, justified?
+
+3. The Two Contrasted Periods. (First Assumption.)
+
+The period of ill success is dated from the time following the mission
+of the Twelve. What are the events of the supposedly fortunate period?
+We pass over the vexatious discussion with the Pharisees about the
+healing of the paralytic (Mk 2:1-12), over the question of fasting (Mk
+2:18-22), and that of the observance of the Sabbath (Mk 2:23-[3:6]).
+Already in Mk 3:6 it has come to the point of a murderous attack.
+Jesus has to renounce his family because they wish to fetch him home
+by force as one who is mentally incompetent (Mk 3:20-22, Mk 3:31-35).
+At Nazareth he is rejected (Mk 6:1-6).
+
+In the same period occurs the attack which shocked him most
+profoundly. The Pharisees discredited him with the people by [pg 065]
+charging that he was in league with the devil (Mk 3:22-30). How deeply
+this saying wounded him may be seen from his reference to it in the
+commission to the Twelve. He prepared his Disciples for a similar
+experience. “If they have called the master of the house Beelzebub,
+how much more those of his household” (Mt 10:25).
+
+Such are the well known events of the “successful period”! But they
+are nothing in comparison with those which he hints at when he is
+sending out the Twelve. In general terms he has already pronounced
+those blessed who are reproached and persecuted for his sake (Mt 5:11,
+12). Now he leads his Disciples to expect oppression and distress (Mt
+10:17-25). Faithfulness to him involves the endurance of enmity (Mt
+10:22), the severance of the dearest ties (Mt 10:37), and the bearing
+of the cross (Mt 10:38). The Galilean period is to be regarded as a
+_happy_ one: the commission to the Twelve is _pessimistic_ in tone.
+How does that agree?
+
+The hints also which he drops at that time in the presence of the
+people point to bitter catastrophes. What must have occurred in
+Chorazin, in Capernaum, and in Bethsaida that he calls down upon them
+the wrath of [pg 066] the Day of Judgment, in which it shall be more
+tolerable for Tyre and Sidon than for them (Mt 11:20-24)!
+
+Because this gloomy tone accords ill with the happy Galilean period,
+there is an obvious temptation to regard the Matthean speeches of the
+time of the Apostles’ mission as compositions which include fragments
+belonging to a later period. Where, however, could Jesus have spoken
+such words? So long as he remained in the north after the flight he
+made no speeches, and the utterances of the Jerusalem days have their
+own peculiar character, so that it is hard to know where to introduce
+references to Galilean occurrences and warnings to the Disciples in
+prospect of their journey.
+
+Moreover, it is a fact that nothing is related about conspicuous
+successes in the first period. The successes first begin with the
+mission of the Twelve. Jesus celebrates the great moment of their
+return with words of enthusiasm (Mt 11:25-27). Are we to suppose now
+that in the sequel the Pharisees triumphed over him completely and the
+people deserted him? Of such a retrogression of his cause the texts,
+however, record nothing. The discussion about ceremonial purification
+(Mt 7:1-23) does not furnish what was expected [pg 067] of it. Jesus
+had already at an earlier time come into much hotter conflict with the
+theologians of the capital (Mk 3:22-30). In the question about the
+laws of purification it was not he that was worsted.
+
+Jesus’ defeat has been inferred from the fact that the “flight” to the
+north followed this scene (Mk 7:24 ff[.]). But the accounts do not in
+the least represent this departure as a flight, nor do they account
+for this journey to the north as a result of the previous controversy;
+rather it is _we_ who interpolate a fictitious causal connection in
+the chronological sequence of the narrative. If Jesus immediately
+before this was supported by the popular favour and now leaves the
+region, we have a fact before us which stands unexplained in the
+texts. That it was a flight is an unprovable conjecture.
+
+No importance need be attached to the fact that subsequently Jesus
+again appears on two occasions surrounded by a multitude (Mk 8:1-9:
+feeding of the 4000; and Mk 8:34 ff[.]: the scenes before and after
+the Transfiguration). This fact might perhaps be attributed to a
+literary reconstruction of the respective accounts,—as may be
+considered established, for example, in the case of the _doublette_ of
+the feeding of the multitude.
+
+[pg 068]
+
+Decisive, however, is the reception which the Passover caravan
+accorded to Jesus as he overtook it at Jericho. This ovation was not
+accorded to the man who had lost ground before the Pharisees in his
+own country and among his own people and at last had been forced to
+flee, but to the celebrated prophet emerging from his retirement. If
+this Galilean populace supported him now by their acclaim and enabled
+him to terrorise the magistrates in the capital for several days—for
+his purification of the Temple was nothing else but that—and to expose
+the scribes with his dry irony, is it possible that they did it for
+the man who a few weeks before had to yield to these theologians in
+his own land?
+
+If one insists upon speaking of a successful period, it is the
+_second_ that must be so denominated. For wherever Jesus appears in
+public after the return of the Twelve he is accompanied by a devoted
+multitude—in Galilee, from the Jordan to Jerusalem, and in the capital
+itself. The surly Jewish populace is an invention of the Fourth
+Evangelist. Then, too, the illegality of his secret arrest and hasty
+conviction shows what the Council feared from the popular favour in
+behalf of Jesus. That was the only “ill[ ]success” of [pg 069] the
+second period. It was indeed a fatal one.
+
+The first and successful Galilean period is therefore in reality a
+time of humiliation and ill[ ]success. There is a double reason for
+regarding it nevertheless as a “happy” time. In the first place there
+is an æsthetic element in it, which Keim in particular strongly
+emphasises. A series of parables drawn from nature, as well as the
+wonderful speech against worldly care (Mt 6:25-34), seem hardly
+intelligible except as the reflection of a glad and cheerful sense for
+the beauty of nature.
+
+With this is associated, in the second place, an _historical
+postulate._ In the first period no trace is discoverable of the idea
+of the Passion: the second is dominated by it. Hence the first was
+successful, the second unsuccessful,—for otherwise there is no way of
+accounting, psychologically or historically, for the change.
+
+The historical facts speak differently. In the real period of ill[
+]success the resolution to suffer did not come to light. In the
+successful second period, on the other hand, Jesus disclosed to his
+Disciples that he must be put to death by the scribes. Thus the
+relation was the reverse. Herewith modern-historical psychology finds
+itself before an enigma.
+
+[pg 070]
+
+4. The Influence of the Pauline Theory of the Atonement upon the
+Formulation of the Synoptical Prediction of the Passion. (Second
+Assumption.)
+
+No proof can be brought to support the contention that the Passion
+passages in the Synoptic Gospels are influenced by Pauline
+conceptions. Here again we have a sort of postulate. For if the
+juridical character of Mk 10:45 and Mk 14:24 cannot be set down to the
+account of the Pauline medium, one must assume that Jesus’ own notion
+of the Passion contained this bold conception of atonement. The
+modern-historical solution, however, is not adapted to that
+alternative.
+
+As a matter of fact it is demonstrable that no Pauline influence can
+be discerned here. According to Paul, Jesus said at the Last Supper:
+My body for _you_ (1 Cor. 11:24). In the same manner Luke has: My body
+which is given for _you;_ the blood which is shed for _you_ (Lk 22:19,
+20). Both the older Synoptists invariably write instead of this: for
+_many._ Mk 10:45 = Mt 20:28: to give his life a ransom for _many._ Mk
+14:24 = Mt 26:28: my blood of the covenant which is shed for _many_.
+In the one case the persons who are to benefit by the Passion are
+definitely determined: they [pg 071] are the Disciples. In the other
+case it is a question of an indefinite number.
+
+Nothing is accomplished by the argument that it comes in the end
+substantially to the same thing. Why, according to the older
+Synoptists, did Jesus speak of the _many,_ according to Paul, of _his
+own?_ The sole explanation lies in the fact that Paul wrote from the
+standpoint of the Church after the death of Jesus. From this point of
+view the saving efficacy of Jesus’ death is applied to a determinate
+community, to those, namely, who believe on him. The Disciples
+represent this community of believers in the historical sayings of
+Jesus, because from the standpoint of the Church, founded as it was
+upon belief in the Messiah, one could not conceive that Jesus’ words
+about his Passion could have any other reference but to the believers.
+
+The early Synoptic “for many” is uttered, however, from the
+_historical standpoint._ That is to say, it is appropriate to the time
+when Jesus did not yet require belief in his messiahship, when
+consequently the number of persons whom his death is to benefit is
+left indeterminate. Of only one thing is he certain, that it is
+greater than the circle of his Disciples: hence he said, “for many.”
+Had [pg 072] he used the expression, “for you,” which Paul thought it
+natural to attribute to him, the Disciples must have concluded from it
+that he was dying for them alone, inasmuch as they could not then have
+the feeling that they were representatives of a future community of
+believers, according to the conception which was so obvious to Paul
+and the Church.
+
+Inasmuch as this _“for many”_ has held its place, in spite of the fact
+that Paul, writing from the churchly point of view, felt instinctively
+the necessity of substituting _“for you”_ (though he thereby coined an
+expression which is historically impossible), one is not justified in
+assuming any sort of Pauline influence upon the traditional form of
+the early Synoptic Passion-idea. The bold theory of the atonement in
+the Synoptists is therefore historical. Any softening of it, such as
+the modern-historical solution must assume, is without justification.
+
+Hence in the interpretation of Jesus’ saying the first requisite is to
+do justice to the expression “for many.” Because they have not done
+this, all expositions of the significance of Jesus’ death—from Paul to
+Ritschl—are unhistorical. One has but to substitute, for the community
+of believers with which they deal, the indeterminate and unqualified
+[pg 073] “many” of the historical saying, and their interpretation
+become simply meaningless. That interpretation alone is historical
+which renders it intelligible why, according to Jesus, the atonement
+accomplished by his death is to redound to the benefit of a number
+which is intentionally left indeterminate.
+
+5. The Kingdom of God as an Ethical Entity in the Passion Idea. (Third
+Assumption.)
+
+(a). Mk 10:41-45. Service as the ethical conduct prescribed in
+expectation of the coming Kingdom.
+
+The sons of Zebedee had advanced the claim to sit on either side of
+the Lord in his glory, i. e. when he should reign as Messiah upon his
+throne. The other Disciples object to this. Jesus calls them together
+and speaks to them about serving and ruling in connection with the
+Kingdom of God.
+
+In this saying one is accustomed to find the ethical conception of the
+Kingdom of God. There is to be a revaluation of all values. The
+greatest in the Kingdom of heaven is he who becomes least, like a
+child (Mt 18:4), and the ruler is he who serves. Self-humiliation and
+the meekness of service, such is the [pg 074] new morality of the
+Kingdom of God which comes into force through Jesus’ service unto
+death.
+
+With this, however, the fact is ignored that the Kingdom in which one
+reigns is thought of as a future thing, whereas the serving applies to
+the present! In our ethical fashion of viewing the matter, serving and
+reigning coincide logically and chronologically. With Jesus, however,
+it is not at all a question of a purely ethical exchange of the
+notions of serving and ruling; rather it is a contrast which develops
+in a chronological sequence. There is a sharp distinction made between
+the present and the future æon. He who is one day to count among the
+greatest in the Kingdom of God must _now_ be as a child! He who
+advances a claim to a position of rule therein must _now_ serve! The
+more lowly the position of humble service which one _now_ assumes, in
+the time when the earthly rulers exercise authority by force, so much
+the more lofty will be his station as ruler when earthly force is done
+away and the Kingdom of God dawns. Hence he especially must humble
+himself even unto death who is to come as the Son of Man upon the
+clouds of heaven to judge and to rule the world. Before he mounts his
+throne he drinks the cup of suffering, [pg 075] which they also must
+taste who would reign with him!
+
+So soon as one pays due attention to this “now and then” in Jesus’
+speech, the trivial parallelism of phrase is replaced by a real and
+effective climax. The descending stages of service correspond to the
+ascending stages of rule.
+
+1. Whosoever would become great _among you,_ shall be _your_
+servant—Mk 10:43.
+
+2. Whosoever _of you_ would be first, shall be bondservant of _all_
+(others)—Mk 10:44.
+
+3. Therefore the Son of Man expected the post of highest rule because
+he was not come to be served but to serve, in giving his life a ransom
+for _many_—Mk 10:45.
+
+The climax is a double one. The service of the Disciples extended only
+to _their_ circle: the service of Jesus to an unlimited number,
+namely, to all such as were to benefit by his suffering and death. In
+the case of the Disciples it was merely a question of unselfish
+_subjection:_ in the case of Jesus it meant the bitter _suffering of
+death._ Both count as serving, inasmuch as they establish a claim to a
+position of rule in the Kingdom.
+
+The ordinary explanation does not satisfy the early Synoptic text but
+only that of Lk 22:24-27. This text has torn the narrative from [pg
+076] its proper connection, so that it appears as a dispute among the
+Disciples “which of them is accounted to be the greatest.”
+
+With this, the “now and then” is eliminated from the situation, and it
+is only a question of a purely ethical inversion of the ideas of
+ruling and serving. Accordingly, Jesus’ speech, too, runs on in a
+lifeless parallelism. He that is greater among you, let him become as
+the younger, and he that is chief, as he that doth serve (Lk 22:26).
+Instead of exemplifying by his own sacrifice of himself unto death for
+the great generality of men the conduct required of those who would
+reign with him, he speaks only of his serviceable character as
+displayed towards the Disciples: But I am in the midst of you as he
+that serveth (Lk 22:27). By this he means a serving that is at the
+same time ruling. In the case of the two older Synoptists, however, it
+is not at all a question of the proclamation of the new morality of
+the Kingdom of God, where serving is ruling; rather it is a question
+of the significance of humility and service in _expectation of the
+Kingdom of God._ Service is the fundamental law of _interim-ethics._
+
+This thought is much deeper and more vital than the modern play upon
+words which we attribute to the Lord. Only through lowliness [pg 077]
+and childlikeness in this æon is one worthily prepared to reign in the
+Kingdom of God. Only he who is here morally purified and ennobled
+through suffering can be great there. Hence suffering is for Jesus the
+moral means of acquiring and confirming the messianic authority to
+which he is designated.
+
+Earthly rule, because it depends upon force, is an emanation of the
+power of ungodliness. Authority in the Kingdom of God, where the power
+of this world is destroyed, signifies emanation from the divine power.
+Only he can be the bearer of such authority who has kept himself free
+from the contamination of earthly rule. To allot it to such as have
+prepared themselves through suffering is God’s affair and his alone
+(Mk 10:39, 40).
+
+But if service does not represent the morality of the Kingdom of God,
+Jesus’ conception of the Passion does not deal with the corresponding
+notion of the Kingdom as a self-developing ethical society, but rather
+with a super-moral entity, namely, the Kingdom of God in its
+eschatological aspect.
+
+(b). The idea of the Passion and the Eschatological Expectation.
+
+The investigation of the accounts of the Lord’s Supper [in the first
+part of this work] revealed a close connection between the
+eschatological [pg 078] conclusion (Mk 14:25) and the expression about
+the blood shed for many (Mk 14:24). The other passages about the
+Passion suggest a similar connection.
+
+After Jesus with his “Yes” had himself pronounced the verdict of death
+he speaks of his “coming again” upon the clouds of heaven. Hereby,
+according to Mark’s text, he associates the two events in a single
+thought. Mk 14:62: I am, and ye shall see the Son of Man sitting at
+the right hand of the Power and coming with the clouds of Heaven. This
+logical connection is already weakened by Matthew, as in the case of
+the word about the cup. He substitutes for the “and” an expression
+which denotes a temporal sequence merely. Mt 26:64: Thou hast said:
+_nevertheless_ I say unto you, _henceforth_ shall ye, etc. The
+eschatological reference is lacking in Luke: he has omitted it also
+from the word about the cup.
+
+A close connection between the thought of the Passion and eschatology
+is implied also in Jesus’ saying about the path of suffering which his
+followers must tread (Mk 8:34- 9:1). Whosoever shall be ashamed of
+Jesus when he suffers reproach and persecution in this adulterous and
+sinful world, of him will the Son of Man be ashamed when he cometh in
+the glory [pg 079] of his Father with the holy angels. For this
+generation shall not sink into the grave until they see the Kingdom of
+God come with power!
+
+This connection must have appeared extremely prominent to the hearers.
+After the departure from Cæsarea Philippi, under the impression of the
+secret of the Passion, which filled them with a sense of sadness and
+fear (Mk 9:30-32),—the Disciples dispute which of them shall receive
+the highest place in the Kingdom. In the house at Capernaum Jesus had
+to rebuke them (Mk 9:33-37). That was after he had spoken for the
+second time about his Passion.
+
+On the way to Jerusalem the same scene was reenacted in closest
+conjunction with the third prediction of the Passion. (Mk 10:32-41).
+The sons of Zebedee advance their claim to the seats upon the throne.
+This is not in the least a case of childish misunderstanding on the
+part of his followers, for Jesus in fact treats their suggestion with
+perfect seriousness. The eschatological expectation must accordingly
+have been thrown into such strong relief for the Disciples by Jesus’
+prediction of his Passion that they necessarily reasoned within
+themselves about the position they should occupy in the coming
+Kingdom.
+
+[pg 080]
+
+The modern-historical solution eliminates the eschatological
+conception of the Kingdom of God from the Passion, reducing it to the
+notion of an apotheosis, “the coming _again,”_ as it is called. This
+expression is entirely false. Jesus never spoke of his coming _again_
+but only of his _coming_ or of the _advent_ of the Son of Man. We use
+the expression “coming again” because we connect death and glory by
+contrast, as though the new situation were conditioned merely upon a
+victorious transfiguration of Jesus. Our view makes him say: “I shall
+die, but I shall be glorified through my coming again.” As a matter of
+fact, however, he said: “I must suffer _and_ the Son of Man shall
+appear upon the clouds of heaven.” But that for his hearers meant much
+more than an apotheosis—for with the appearing of the Son of Man
+dawned the eschatological Kingdom. Jesus therefore sets his death in
+temporal-causal connection with the eschatological dawning of the
+Kingdom. The _eschatological_ notion of the Kingdom, not the
+_modern-ethical_ notion, dominates his idea of the Passion.
+
+6. The Form of the Prediction of the Passion. (Fourth Assumption.)
+
+If the modern historical solution be correct [pg 081] in its
+conception, Jesus must have communicated the thought of the Passion to
+his Disciples in the form of an ethical _reflection._ If they were to
+comprehend the approaching catastrophe as the inauguration of the new
+morality, and were to derive from it incentive to a change of conduct,
+then he must have familiarised them with the character of this event
+from the very beginning, as soon as ever he announced it.
+
+As a matter of fact, however, he imparted to them the thought of the
+Passion, not in the form of an _ethical reflection,_ but as a
+_secret,_ without further explanation. It is dominated by a “must,”
+the expression for incomprehensible divine necessity. The fact that
+the Passion-idea was a secret stands opposed to the modern-historical
+solution.
+
+7. Résumé.
+
+1. The assumption of a fortunate Galilean period which was followed by
+a time of defeat is historically untenable.
+
+2. Pauline influence cannot have conditioned the form of the early
+Synoptic sayings about the Passion.
+
+3. Not the ethical but the hyper-ethical, the eschatological, notion
+of the Kingdom [pg 082] dominates the Passion as Jesus conceived it.
+
+4. The utterances of the Passion-idea did not occur in the form of an
+ethical reflection but it was a question of an incomprehensible secret
+which the Disciples had not the least need to understand and in fact
+did not.
+
+Such is the situation with regard to the four pillars of the
+modern-historical solution. With them the whole structure collapses.
+It is after all a lifeless thought! The feeble modernity of it is
+visible in the fact that it does not get beyond a sort of
+representative significance of Jesus’ death. Jesus effects by his
+offering of himself nothing absolutely new, since throughout his whole
+public ministry he assumes that the Kingdom of God is already present
+as a dispensation of the forgiveness of sin or as the morally
+developing society. With his very appearance upon earth it is there.
+The performance of atonement, however, requires a _real_ significance
+in Jesus’ death.
+
+Herein lies the weakness of the modern dogmatic in contrast with the
+old. Paul, Anselm, and Luther know of an absolutely new situation
+which follows in time the death of Jesus [pg 083] and results as a
+consequence of it. Modern theology talks all around the subject; it
+has nothing specific to say, however, but involves itself in the cloud
+of its own assumptions. Both accounts, indeed, are unhistorical.
+Religiously considered, only the modern view is justifiable. The old
+dogmatic, however, is in this point the more historical, for it
+postulates at all events a real effect of the death of Jesus, as the
+Synoptical passages require.
+
+In what, however, does this absolutely new thing consist which is
+there made to depend upon the death of Jesus? The Synoptic sayings
+give but one answer to this: the eschatological realisation of the
+Kingdom! The coming of the Kingdom of God with power is dependent upon
+the atonement which Jesus performs. That is substantially the secret
+of the Passion.
+
+How is that to be understood? Only the history of Jesus can throw
+light upon it. _In place of the modern-historical solution we advance
+now the eschatological-historical._
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 084]
+
+CHAPTER II
+THE “DEVELOPMENT” OF JESUS
+
+
+1. The Kingdom of God as an Ethical and as an Eschatological Fact.
+
+THE concurrence in Jesus of an ethical with an eschatological line of
+thought has always constituted one of the most difficult problems of
+New Testament study. How can two such different views of the world, in
+part diametrically opposed to one another, be united in _one_ process
+of thought?
+
+The attempt has been made to evade the problem, with the just feeling
+that the two views cannot be united. Critical spirits like T. Colani
+_(Jesus-Christ et les croyance messianique de son temps._ 1864, pp. 94
+ff., 169 ff.) and G. Volkmar _(Die Evangelien._ 1870, pp. 530 ff.)
+went to the length of eliminating altogether eschatology from the
+field of Jesus’ thought. All expressions of that sort were accordingly
+to be charged to the account of the eschatological expectation of a
+later time. This procedure is frustrated by the stubbornness of the
+texts: the eschatological sayings belong precisely to the best
+attested passages. [pg 085] The excision of them is an act of
+violence.
+
+No more successful has been the attempt to evade the problem by
+_sublimating_ the eschatology, as though Jesus had translated the
+realistic conceptions of his time into spiritual terms by using them
+in a figurative sense. The work of Eric Haupt _(Die eschatologischen
+Aussagen Jesu in den synoptischen Evangelien,_ 1895) is based upon
+this thought. But there is nothing to justify us in assuming that
+Jesus attached to his words a non-natural sense, whereas his hearers,
+in accordance with the prevailing view, must have understood them
+realistically. Not only are we at a loss for a rational explanation of
+such a method on Jesus’ part, but he himself gives not the slightest
+hint of it.
+
+So the problem remains as urgent as ever, how the juxtaposition of two
+discordant views of the world is to be explained. The sole solution
+seems to lie in the assumption of a gradual development. Jesus may
+have entertained at first a purely ethical view, looking for the
+realisation of the Kingdom of God through the spread and perfection of
+the moral-religious society which he was undertaking to establish.
+When, however, the opposition of the world put the organic completion
+of the Kingdom in doubt, the eschatological [pg 086] conception forced
+itself upon him. By the course of events he was brought to the pass
+where the fulfilment of the religious-ethical ideal, which hitherto he
+had regarded as the terminus of a continuous moral development, could
+be expected only as the result of a cosmic catastrophe in which God’s
+omnipotence should bring to its conclusion the work which he had
+undertaken.
+
+Thus a complete revolution is supposed to have occurred in Jesus’
+thought. But the problem is veiled rather than solved by disposing the
+terms of the contrast in chronological sequence. The acceptance of the
+eschatological notion, if it is to be rendered intelligible in this
+fashion, signifies nothing less than a total breach with the past, a
+break at which all development ceases. For the eschatological thought,
+if it be taken seriously, abrogates the ethical train of thought. It
+accepts no subordinate place. To such a position of impotence it was
+brought for the first time in Christian theology as the result of
+historical experience. Jesus, however, must have thought either
+eschatologically or uneschatologically, but not both together—nor in
+such a wise that the eschatological was superadded to supplement the
+uneschatological.
+
+[pg 087]
+
+It has been proved that in the thought of the Passion it is only the
+eschatological idea of the Kingdom of God which is in view. It has
+been shown likewise that the assumption of a period of ill[ ]success
+after the mission of the Twelve is without historical justification.
+This, however, constitutes the indispensable presumption for every
+such development as has been assumed on the part of Jesus. Therefore
+the eschatological notion cannot have been forced upon Jesus by
+outward experiences, but it must from the beginning, even in the first
+Galilean period, have lain at the base of his preaching!
+
+2. The Eschatological Character of the Charge to the Twelve.
+
+“The Kingdom of God is at hand” (Mt 10:7)—this word which Jesus
+commissions his Disciples to proclaim is a summary expression of all
+his previous preaching. They are to carry it now throughout the cities
+of Israel. The charge of Jesus to the Twelve furnishes no means of
+determining in what sense this proclamation is meant.
+
+If the common conception is right about the significance of this
+mission of the Twelve, the words with which he dismisses them present
+an extraordinary riddle. Full of hope [pg 088] and with the joy of
+productive effort he goes about to extend the scope of his activity
+for the founding of the Kingdom of God. The commission to the Twelve
+ought therefore to contain instruction about the missionary propaganda
+they were to carry out in this sense. One must hence expect that he
+would direct them how they should preach about the new relation to God
+and the new morality of the Kingdom.
+
+The commission, however, is anything but a summary of the “teaching of
+Jesus.” It does not in the least contemplate instruction of a
+thoroughgoing kind, rather what is in question is a flying
+proclamation throughout Israel. The one errand of the Apostles as
+teachers is to cry out everywhere the warning of the nearness of the
+Kingdom of God—to the intent that all may be warned and given
+opportunity to repent. In this, however, no time is to be lost;
+therefore they are not to linger in a town where men are unsusceptible
+to their message, but to hasten on in order that they may pass through
+all the cities of Israel before the appearing of the Son of Man takes
+place. But “the coming of the Son of Man” signifies—_the dawning of
+the Kingdom of God with power._
+
+When they persecute you in this city flee [pg 089] unto another, for
+verily I say unto you, Ye shall not have gone through the cities of
+Israel till the Son of Man be come (Mt 10:23). If one so understands
+the com[m]ission to the Twelve as to suppose that Jesus would say
+through his Disciples that the time is now come for the realisation of
+the Kingdom by a new moral behaviour, that eschatological saying lies
+like an erratic boulder in the midst of a flowery meadow. If, however,
+one conceives of the embassage eschatologically, the saying acquires a
+great context: it is a rock in the midst of a wild mountain landscape.
+One cannot affirm of this saying that it has been interpolated here by
+a later age; rather with compelling force it fixes the presence of
+eschatological conceptions in the days of the mission of the Twelve.
+
+The one and only article of instruction that is required is the call
+to repentance. Whosoever believes in the nearness of the Kingdom,
+repents. Hence Jesus gives the Disciples authority over unclean
+spirits, to cast them out and to heal the sick (Mt 10:1). By these
+signs they are to perceive that the power of ungodliness is coming to
+an end and the morning-glow of the Kingdom of God already dawns. That
+belongs to their errand as teachers, for whosoever fails to believe
+their [pg 090] signs, and thereupon brings forth no works of
+repentance unto the Kingdom of God,—that man is damned. Thus have
+C[h]orazin, Bethsaida, and Capernaum come into condemnation. Faith and
+repentance were made easy for them by the signs and wonders with which
+they were favoured beyond others—and yet they did not come to
+themselves, as even pagan cities like Tyre and Sidon would have done
+(Mt 11:20-24). This saying addressed to the people shows what
+significance Jesus ascribed to the signs in view of the eschatological
+embassage.
+
+Thus the Disciples were to preach _the Kingdom, Repentance, and the
+Judgment._ Inasmuch, however, as the event they proclaimed was so near
+that it might at any moment surprise them, they must be prepared for
+what precedes it, namely, for the final insurrection of the power of
+this world. How they are to comport themselves in the face of this
+emergency so as not to be confounded—here is the point upon which
+Jesus’ parting words of instruction bear! In the general tumult of
+spirits all ties will be dissolved. Faction will divide even the
+family (Mt 10:34-36). Whosoever would be loyal to the Kingdom of God
+must be ready to tear from out his heart those who were dearest [pg
+091] to him, to endure reproach, and to bear the cross (Mt 10:37, 38).
+The secular authority will bring upon them severe persecution (Mt
+10:17-31). Men will call them to account and subject them to torture
+in order to move them to denial of their cause. Brother shall deliver
+up brother to death, and the father his child; and children shall rise
+up against parents and cause them to be put to death. Only he who
+remains steadfast in the midst of this general tumult, and confesses
+Jesus before men, shall be saved in the Day of Judgment, when he
+intervenes with God in their behalf (Mt 10:32, 33).
+
+In the commission to the Twelve Jesus imparts instruction about the
+woes of the approaching Kingdom. In the descriptive portions of it
+there may be much perhaps that betrays the colouring of a later time.
+By this concession, however, the character of the speech as a whole is
+not prejudiced. The question at issue is not about a course of conduct
+which they are to maintain _after his death._ For such instruction not
+a single historical word can be adduced. The woes precede the dawning
+of the Kingdom. Therefore the victorious proclamation of the nearness
+of the Kingdom must accommodate itself to the woes. Hence this
+juxtaposition of optimism [pg 092] and pessimism which the current
+interpretation finds so unaccountable. It is the sign manual of every
+eschatological _Weltanschauung._
+
+3. The New View.
+
+The idea of Passion is dominated _only_ by the eschatological
+conception of the Kingdom. In the charge to the Twelve the question is
+_only_ about the eschatological—not about the ethical-nearness of the
+Kingdom. From this it follows, for one thing, that Jesus’ ministry
+counted _only_ upon the eschatological realisation of the Kingdom.
+Then, however, it is evident that the relation of his ethical thoughts
+to the eschatological view can have suffered no alteration by reason
+of outward events but must have been the same from beginning to end.
+
+In what relation, however, did his ethics and his eschatology stand to
+each other? So long as one starts with the ethics and seeks to
+comprehend the eschatology as something adventitious, there appears to
+be no organic connection between the two, since the ethics of Jesus,
+as we are accustomed to conceive it, is not in the least accommodated
+to the eschatology but stands upon a much [pg 093] higher level. One
+must therefore take the opposite course and see if the ethical
+proclamation in essence is not conditioned by the eschatological view
+of the world.
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 094]
+
+CHAPTER III
+
+THE PREACHING OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+
+
+1. The New Morality as Repentance.
+
+IF the thought of the eschatological realisation of the Kingdom is the
+fundamental factor in Jesus’ preaching, his whole theory of ethics
+must come under the conception of _repentance_ as a preparation for
+the coming of the Kingdom. This conception seems to us too narrow a
+one to apply to the whole extent of this moral-religious proclamation.
+This is due to the fact that the word repentance as we use it has
+rather a negative significance, laying emphasis as it does chiefly
+upon foregoing guilt. It is a far richer conception, however, which
+the Synoptists express by the word repentance (_μετάνοια_). It is not
+merely a recovery which stands in retrospective relation with a sinful
+condition in the past, but also—and this is its predominant
+character—_it is a moral renewal in prospect of the accomplishment of
+universal perfection in the future._
+
+Thus “the repentance in expectation of the Kingdom” comprises all
+positive ethical requirements. [pg 095] In this sense it is the lively
+echo of the “repentance” of the early prophets. For what Amos, Hosea,
+Isaiah, and Jeremiah mean by repentance is moral renovation in
+prospect of the Day of the Lord. Thus Isaiah says: “Wash you, make you
+clean; put away the evil of your doings from before mine eyes; seek
+judgment, relieve the oppressed, judge the fatherless, plead for the
+widow” (Isai. 1:16, 17). It is precisely this Old Testament conception
+of repentance, with its emphasis upon the new moral life, which one
+must have in mind in order to understand aright the Synoptical
+repentance. Both have a forward vision, both are dominated by the
+thought of a condition of perfection which God will bring to pass
+through the Judgment. This, in the Prophetic view, is the Day of the
+Lord; in the Synoptic it is the dawn of the Kingdom.
+
+The ethics of the Sermon on the Mount is therefore repentance. The new
+morality, which detects the spirit beneath the letter of the Law,
+makes one meet for the Kingdom of God. Only the righteous can enter
+into the Kingdom of God—in that conviction all were agreed. Whosoever,
+therefore, preached the nearness of the Kingdom must also teach the
+righteousness pertaining to the Kingdom. [pg 096] Hence Jesus
+proclaimed the new righteousness which is higher than the Law and the
+Prophets,—for they extend only up to the Baptist. Since the days of
+the Baptist, however, one stands immediately within the pre-messianic
+period.
+
+The Day of Judgment puts this moral transformation to the proof: only
+he who has done the will of the heavenly Father can enter into the
+Kingdom (Mt 7:21). The claim that one is a follower of Jesus, or has
+even wrought signs and wonders in his name, is of no avail as a
+substitute for this new righteousness (Mt 7:22, 23). Hence the Sermon
+on the Mount concludes with the admonition to build, in expectation of
+the momentous event, a firmly founded structure capable of resisting
+storm and tempest (Mt 7:24-27).
+
+The Beatitudes (Mt 5:3-12) come under the same point of view. They
+define the moral disposition which justifies admission into the
+Kingdom. This is the explanation of the use of the present and the
+future tense in the same sentence. Blessed are the meek, those that
+hunger and thirst after righteousness, the merciful, the pure in
+heart, the peacemakers, the poor in spirit, those that endure
+persecution for righteousness’ sake, because such character and
+conduct is their security [pg 097] that with the appearing of the
+Kingdom of God they will be found to belong to it.
+
+A series of parables illustrates the same thought. Thus the parables
+of the treasure in the field and of the pearl of great price (Mt
+13:44-46) show how one must stake all upon the hope of the Kingdom
+when the prospect of it is held out to him, and must sacrifice all
+other goods for the sake of acquiring this highest good that is
+proposed to him.
+
+Thus already in the ethics of the Galilean period we find the “now and
+then” which accounts for the estimate put upon serving (Mk 10:45). _As
+repentance unto the Kingdom of God the ethics also of the Sermon on
+the Mount is interim-ethics._ In this we perceive that the moral
+instruction of Jesus remained the same from the first day of his
+public appearance unto his latest utterances, for the lowliness and
+serviceableness which he recommended to his Disciples on the way to
+Jerusalem correspond exactly to the new moral conduct which he
+developed in the Sermon on the Mount: they make one meet for the
+Kingdom of God. Only, they constitute a climax in the attainment of
+the new righteousness, inasmuch as they render one meet not merely for
+entrance into the Kingdom but for bearing rule in it.
+
+[pg 098]
+
+We encounter again the _Leitmotiv_ of the Sermon on the Mount in the
+epilogue to the great parables uttered in Jerusalem. Nothing but the
+maintenance of the new morality in all relations of life guarantees
+entrance into the Kingdom. Hence Jesus can say to the Pharisee who
+agrees to the summary of this new morality as it is expressed in the
+commandment of love: Thou art not far from the Kingdom of God (Mk
+12:34). That does not mean that the Pharisee by such a disposition of
+mind has already well nigh risen to the height of the “morality of the
+Kingdom.” For if the double commandment of love constituted the
+morality of the _Kingdom,_ Jesus must have said to him (since he
+entirely agreed to these commandments): Thou belongest to the Kingdom.
+The “not far” must in fact be understood in a purely chronological
+sense, not as denoting some small measure of perfection which the man
+still lacks. He is not far from the Kingdom of God because he
+possesses the moral quality which will identify him as a member of the
+same when after a short space it appears. The “not far” contains
+therefore the same mixture of present and future tense which we have
+remarked in the Beatitudes.
+
+Reasoning from our ethical point of view [pg 099] we are inclined to
+apply the conception of reward to this relation between membership in
+the Kingdom and the new morality. This, however, does not completely
+render the thought of Jesus, which had to do above all with the
+_immediateness_ of the transition from the condition of moral renewal
+into the super-moral perfection of the Kingdom of God. Whosoever at
+the dawning of the Kingdom is in possession of a character morally
+renovated, he will be found a member of the same. This is the adequate
+expression for the relation of morality to the coming Kingdom of God.
+
+2. The Ethics of Jesus and Modern Ethics.
+
+The depth of Jesus’ religious ethics encourages us to expect that we
+can find our own modern-ethical consciousness reflected in it. With
+respect to its eternal inward truth it is indeed independent of
+history and unconditioned by it, since it already contains the highest
+ethical thoughts of all times. Nevertheless there exists a great
+difference between Jesus’ sentiment and ours. Modern ethics is
+“unconditional,” since it creates of itself the new ethical
+situation,—the presumption being that this situation will evolve unto
+final perfection. Ethics is here an end in itself, [pg 100] inasmuch
+as the moral perfection of mankind comes to the same thing as the
+perfection of the Kingdom of God. That is Kant’s thought. This
+self-sufficiency of ethics (which however, exacts a certain
+resignation in view of the distant consummation) shows that the
+modern-Christian theory is permeated by Hellenistic-rationalistic
+ideas and has undergone a development of two millenniums.
+
+The ethics of Jesus on the other hand is “conditional,” in the sense
+that it stands in indissoluble connection with the expectation of a
+state of perfection which is to be supernaturally brought about.
+Thereby its Jewish origin is revealed, and its immediate connection
+with the Prophetic ethics, in which the moral conduct of the people
+was conditioned by a definite expectation. Hence, if any parallel at
+all may be adduced in explanation of the ethics of Jesus, it can be
+only the Prophetic, never the modern. For in proportion as the latter
+enters into it the mode of conception becomes unhistorical, Jesus’
+ethics being treated as self-sufficient, whereas in fact it is
+oriented entirely by the expected supernatural consummation.
+
+So there has been created the insoluble [pg 101] problem, that a
+person thoroughly modern so far as his ethics is concerned should
+incidentally give utterance to eschatological expressions. But if we
+once perceive the conditional character of Jesus’ ethics, and
+seriously consider its connection with the ethics of the Prophets, it
+is immediately clear that all conceptions of the Kingdom as a growth
+out of small beginnings, all notions about an ethics of the Kingdom,
+or about the development of it, have been foisted upon Jesus by our
+modern consciousness—simply because we could not readily familiarise
+ourselves with the thought that the ethics of Jesus is conditional.
+
+We make him conceive of the Kingdom of God as if its historical
+realisation represented a narrow opening through which it had to
+squeeze before attaining the full stature which belongs to it. That is
+a modern conception. For Jesus and the Prophets, however, it was a
+thing impossible. In the immediateness of their ethical view there is
+no place for a morality of the Kingdom of God or for a development of
+the Kingdom—it lies beyond the borders of good and evil; it will be
+brought about by a cosmic catastrophe through which evil is to be
+completely [pg 102] overcome. Hence all moral criteria are to be
+abolished. _The Kingdom of God is super-moral._
+
+To this height of hyper-ethical idealism the modern consciousness is
+no longer capable of soaring. History has aged us too much for that.
+But for the historical understanding of the ethics of Jesus it is the
+indispensable assumption.
+
+In addition to this, when we think of the Kingdom, our thought
+stretches forward to the coming generations which are to realise it in
+ever increasing measure. Jesus’ glance is directed backward. For him
+the Kingdom is composed of the generations which have already gone
+down to the grave and which are now to be awakened unto a state of
+perfection. How should there be for him any ethics of sexual
+relations, when he explains to the Sadducees that in the Kingdom of
+God after the great Resurrection there will be no longer any sexual
+relations at all, “but they will be like the angels of heaven” (Mk
+12:25)?
+
+Every ethical form of Jesus, be it never so perfect, leads therefore
+only up to the frontier of the Kingdom of God, while every trace of a
+path disappears so soon as one advances upon the new territory. There
+one needs it no more.
+
+[pg 103]
+
+We have a prejudice against this conception of conditional ethics. It
+is an unjustified prejudice if it is due to a suspicion that Jesus’
+ethics is thereby disparaged. Exactly the opposite is the case. For
+this conditionality springs from an absolute ethical idealism, which
+postulates for the expected state of perfection conditions of
+existence which are themselves ethical. In our unconditional and
+self-sufficing ethics we, however, assume that the conflict between
+good and evil must go on forever, as belonging constantly to the
+nature of the ethical. Ethics and theology do not stand for us in the
+same lively relationship as they do with Jesus. The vividness of the
+colours of the absolute ethical idealism has been faded by history.
+So, to render the ethics of Jesus unconditional and self-sufficing is
+not only unhistorical, but it means also the degradation of his
+ethical idealism.
+
+On one point, however, our ethical sentiment is justified in its
+prejudice. If ethics has to do only with the expectation of the
+supernatural consummation, its actual worth is diminished, since it is
+merely individual ethics and is concerned only with the relation of
+each single person to the Kingdom of God. The thought, however, that
+the moral community [pg 104] which has been constituted by Jesus’
+preaching must as such be in some way the effective first stage in the
+realisation of the Kingdom of God—this thought belongs not alone to
+_our_ ethical sentiment, but it animated also the preaching of Jesus,
+for he wrought out in strong relief the social character of his
+ethics. This explains the reluctance one feels to admit that the
+eschatological idea of the Kingdom of God lay at the basis of Jesus’
+preaching from beginning to end, since _then_ one cannot explain how
+the new moral community which he formed about himself was in his
+thought organically connected with the Kingdom which was
+supernaturally to appear.
+
+One glides here unintentionally into a modern line of thought. The
+idea of development furnishes what we want, allowing us to conceive of
+the moral community as an initial stage which by constant growth,
+extensive and intensive, is ever approaching the final stage. The
+gradually widening circle represents, however, a modern way of viewing
+history. It is completely foreign to Jesus. Yet even though he cannot
+have made use of this explanation of ours, the _fact_ that this new
+community stands in an organic relation with the final stage was for
+him as [pg 105] certain as for us. But because he expected this final
+stage as a purely supernatural event the connection was not to be
+apprehended by human reflection, rather it was a _divine secret,_
+which he illuminated only by pointing to analogies in the processes of
+nature.
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 106]
+
+CHAPTER IV
+
+THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+
+
+1. The Parables of the Secret of the Kingdom of God.
+
+WE have to do here with the “secret of the Kingdom of God” (Mk 4:11),
+which is dealt with in the parables of the sower, of the self-growing
+seed, of the grain of mustard, and of the leaven. We commonly find in
+these parables the illustration of a constant and gradually unfolding
+through which the petty initial stage of a development is connected
+with the glorious final stage. The seed that is sown already contains
+the harvest, inasmuch as each seed is devised for the production of
+plant and fruit. They develop from the seed by natural law. So it is
+likewise with the development of the Kingdom of God from small and
+obscure beginnings.
+
+This attractive interpretation of the parables takes from them,
+however, the character of _secrets,_ for the illustration of a steady
+unfolding through the processes of nature is no secret. Hence it is
+that we fail to understand what the secret is in these parables. [pg
+107] We interpret them according to our scientific knowledge of nature
+which enables us to unite even such different stages as these by the
+conception of development.
+
+By reason of the immediateness with which the unschooled spirit of
+olden time observed the world, nature had, however, still secrets to
+offer,—in the fact, namely, that she produced two utterly distinct
+conditions in a sequence, the connection of which was just as certain
+as it was inexplicable. This immediateness is the note of Jesus’
+parables. The conception of development in nature which is
+contemplated in the modern explanation is not at all brought into
+prominence, but the exposition is rather devised to place the two
+conditions so immediately side by side that one is compelled to raise
+the question, How can the final stage proceed from the initial stage?
+
+1. A man sowed seed. A great part of the seed was lost on account of
+circumstances the most diverse—and yet the produce of the corn which
+fell upon good ground was so great that it restored the seed sown
+thirty, sixty, even an hundred fold.
+
+The detailed interpretation of the description of this loss, and the
+application to particular classes of men, as it lies before us in [pg
+108] Mk 4:13-20, is the product of a later view which perceived no
+longer any secret in the parable. Originally, however, the single
+points of the description were not independent, but the seed which was
+lost upon the path, or upon the stony ground, or among the thorns,
+together with that which the fowls of heaven devoured, constituted
+altogether a unified contrast to that which fell upon good ground. The
+manner in which it was destroyed has no importance for the parable. In
+spite of the description so wonderfully wrought out, this saying of
+Jesus expresses one single thought: So small, considering all that was
+lost, was the sowing; and yet the harvest so great!—Therein lies the
+secret.
+
+2. A man scattered seed upon the ground. He slept, went about his
+affairs, and concerned himself no further about the seed. Before he
+realised it the harvest stood already in the field, and he could send
+his servants to gather it in. How did it come to pass that after the
+seed was sunk in the earth the ground _of itself_ brought forth the
+blade, the ear, and the full corn?—That is the secret.
+
+3. A grain of mustard seed was sown; from it sprouted a great shrub,
+with [pg 109] branches under which the birds of the heaven could
+lodge. How did it come to pass, since the mustard seed is so
+small?—That is the secret.
+
+4. A woman added a little leaven to a great mass of dough. Afterwards
+the whole lump was “leaven.” How can a little leaven leaven a whole
+great lump?—That is the secret.
+
+These parables are not at all devised to be interpreted and
+understood; rather they are calculated to make the hearers observant
+of the fact that in the affairs of the Kingdom of God a secret is
+preparing like that which they experience in nature. They are
+_signals._ As the harvest follows upon the seed-sowing, without it
+being possible for any one to say how it comes about; so, as the
+sequel to Jesus’ preaching, will the Kingdom of God come with power.
+Small as is the circle which he gathers about himself in comparison
+with the greatness of God’s Kingdom, it is none the less certain that
+the Kingdom will come as a consequence of this moral renewal,
+restricted as it is in scope. It is no less confidently to be expected
+than that the seed, which while he speaks is slumbering in the ground,
+will bring forth a glorious harvest. Watch not only for the harvest,
+but watch for the Kingdom of God!—so speaks [pg 110] the spiritual
+sower to the Galileans at the season of the seed-sowing. They ought to
+have the presentiment that the moral renewal in consequence of his
+preaching stands in a necessary but inexplicable connection with the
+dawning of the Kingdom of God. The same God who through his mysterious
+power in nature brings the harvest to pass will also bring to pass the
+Kingdom of God.
+
+Therefore, when it was the season of the harvest, he sent his
+Disciples forth to proclaim: The Kingdom of God is at hand.
+
+
+2. The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Address to the People after
+the Mission of the Twelve.
+
+Jesus was alone. The Disciples carried the news of the nearness of the
+Kingdom throughout the cities of Israel. While the people thronged him
+there came the emissaries of the Baptist with their question. He
+dismissed them with the answer: the Kingdom stands before the door,
+one needs only the language of the signs and wonders in order to
+understand. Turning to the people he speaks of the significance of the
+Baptist and of his office. With this he lets drop a hint of mystery
+(Mt 11:14, “If you are able [pg 111] to conceive it,” Mt 11:15, “he
+hath ears to hear, let him hear”). John is Elijah, i. e. the
+personality whose advent marks the immediate dawning of the Kingdom.
+“From the days of John the Baptist until this moment the Kingdom of
+Heaven suffereth violence, and men of violence take it by force. For
+all the Prophets and the Law prophesied until John; and, if ye are
+able to conceive it, this is Elijah, which is to come. He that hath
+ears to hear, let him hear” (Mt 11:12-15).
+
+This saying resists all exegesis, for it does not in the least contain
+the thought that the individuals gain access to the Kingdom by force.
+What might that mean anyway? In what sense does that come to pass from
+the days of the Baptist on? The picture which Jesus employs is
+unintelligible if it has to do with the entrance of individuals into
+the Kingdom. It remains just as incomprehensible, however, if it is
+supposed to refer to the realisation of the Kingdom through gradual
+development. In the first place, the image of an act of violence
+contradicts the notion of development; in the second place, the
+beginning of this compelling force must be dated not from John but
+from Jesus.
+
+It is a question of the secret of the Kingdom of God,—hence the hint:
+He that hath [pg 112] ears to hear, let him hear. This phrase occurs
+only in connection with the parables of the secret of the Kingdom and
+as the conclusion of apocalyptic sayings (cf. the use of the
+expression in the Apocalypse: 2:7, 11, 17, 29, 3:6, 13, 22).
+Repentance and moral renewal in prospect of the Kingdom of God are
+like a pressure which is exerted in order to compel its appearance.
+This movement had begun with the days of the Baptist. The men of
+violence who take it by force are they which put into practice the
+moral renewal. They draw it with power down to the earth.
+
+The saying in the speech about the Baptist and the parables of the
+Kingdom of God mutually explain and supplement one another. The
+parables bring chiefly into prominence the _incommensurateness_ of the
+relation between the moral renewal that is practised and the
+consummation of the Kingdom of God, while the image in the speech
+after the Mission dwells more upon the compelling connection between
+the two.
+
+3. The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Light of the Prophetic and
+Jewish Expectation.
+
+Jesus’ ethics is closely connected with that of the Old Testament
+prophets, inasmuch as [pg 113] both are alike conditioned by the
+expectation of a state of perfection which God is to bring about. But
+also the secret of the Kingdom of God, according to which the moral
+renewal hastens the supernatural coming of the Kingdom, corresponds
+with the fundamental thought of the Prophets. In the case of the
+Prophets, the relation between the moral reform which they would bring
+about and the glorious condition which God will bring to pass at the
+Day of Judgment is not that of a mere temporal sequence, but it rests
+upon a supernatural causal connection. Godless behaviour brings nearer
+the Day of Judgment and of condemnation. Therefore, God chastises the
+people and gives them into the hand of their oppressors. When,
+however, they determine to reform their ways, when they seek refuge in
+him alone with trusting faith, when righteousness and truth prevail
+among them, then will the Lord deliver them from their oppressors, and
+his glory will be manifest over Israel, to whom the heathen will do
+service. In that day there will then be peace poured out over the
+whole world, over nature as well as man.
+
+After the Exile this thought was still operative in the conception of
+the Law. By the observance of the Law the promised glorious [pg 114]
+estate will be wrung from God. Not the individual but the collectivity
+influences God through the Law. This generic mode of thought is the
+primary, the individual mode is secondary. “Israel would be redeemed
+if only it observed two Sabbaths faithfully.” (Schabbath 118_b_.
+Wünsche, _System der altsynagogalen Palästinensischen Theologie,_
+1880, p. 299). Here we meet with the early prophetic thought in
+legalistic form.
+
+In general, however, it was the individualistic view which prevailed
+later. The Law, and moral conduct in general, were only the
+preparation for the expected estate of glory. The lively generic view
+of the Prophets was replaced by individualistic and lifeless
+conception. Eschatology became a problem of accounting and ethics
+became casuistry.
+
+Jesus, however, reached back after the fundamental conception of the
+prophetic period, and it is only the _form_ in which he conceives of
+the emergence of the final event which bears the stamp of later
+Judaism. He no longer conceives of it as an intervention of God in the
+history of the nations, as did the Prophets; but rather as a final
+cosmical catastrophe. His eschatology is the apocalyptic [pg 115] of
+the book of Daniel, since the Kingdom is to be brought about by the
+Son of Man when he appears upon the clouds of heaven (Mk 8:38- 9:1).
+
+_The secret of the Kingdom of God is therefore the synthesis effected
+by a sovereign spirit between the early prophetic ethics and the
+apocalyptic of the book of Daniel._ Hence it is that Jesus’
+eschatology was rooted in his age and yet stands so high above it. For
+his contemporaries it was a question of _waiting for_ the Kingdom, of
+excogitating and depicting every incident of the great catastrophe,
+and of preparing for the same; while for Jesus it was a question of
+_bringing to pass_ the expected event through the moral renovation.
+_Eschatological ethics is transformed into ethical eschatology._
+
+4. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and the Assumption of a Fortunate
+Galilean Period.
+
+According to the secret of the Kingdom of God, the coming of the
+Kingdom is not dependent upon the broad success of Jesus’ preaching.
+Indeed, he expressly emphasises the fact that the limitation of the
+circle which performs the moral renovation stands in no [pg 116]
+relation whatever to the all-embracing greatness of the Kingdom which
+is to come about by reason of their conduct. It suffices that a scanty
+part of the seed falls upon good ground—and the overplentiful harvest
+is there, through God’s power. Not by the multitude but by the men of
+violence is the Kingdom compelled to appear.
+
+Hence the secret of the Kingdom of God makes the assumption of a
+fortunate Galilean period entirely superfluous. Jesus can enjoy the
+expectation of the speedy realisation of the Kingdom even when he
+experiences the greatest ill[ ]success and when whole districts close
+themselves against his preaching. They do not thereby delay the coming
+of the Kingdom of God but only deliver themselves to the judgment, for
+the Kingdom comes necessarily by reason of the moral renewal of the
+circle which gathered about Jesus.
+
+The justice of this interpretation of the secret of the Kingdom of God
+is shown therefore, in the fact that it renders unnecessary, as an
+explanation of Jesus’ life, an assumption which is otherwise
+absolutely unavoidable but cannot in any way be historically
+confirmed.
+
+[pg 117]
+
+5. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and the Universalism of Jesus.
+
+So long as the moral renewal upon the basis of Jesus’ preaching is
+brought into relation with the realisation of the Kingdom through the
+modern thought of evolutionary development the factor correlative to
+the perfection of the Kingdom is likewise modern, that is, “humanity
+as a moral whole.” One attributes then to Jesus’ reflection upon the
+growth of the new moral community which he founded, foresight of its
+gradual extension till it embraces the whole of Israel—here, however,
+the thought of Jesus stops; one may not attribute to him
+universalistic ideas, for the commission to the Disciples shows that
+he did not reflect about a moral renewal beyond the borders of Israel.
+(Mt 10:5, 6): Go [not] into any way of the Gentiles, and enter not
+into any city of the Samaritans: but go rather to the lost sheep of
+the house of Israel.
+
+The preaching of the Kingdom of God is therefore particularistic; the
+Kingdom itself, however, is universalistic, “for they shall come from
+the east and from the west, from the north and from the south.” The
+generation which required a miracle shall experience [pg 118] such:
+The Ninevites shall arise at the Day of Judgment and condemn it,
+because they repented at the preaching of Jonah, “and here is a
+greater than Jonah.” Also the Queen of the South shall rise in
+judgment against the contemporaries of Jesus, because she came from
+the ends of the earth to hear the wisdom of Solomon, “and behold, a
+greater than Solomon is here” (Mt 12:41-42).
+
+For the modern consciousness, because it applies to everything the
+rubrics of evolution, there is an insuperable contradiction between
+the particularism of the preaching of the Kingdom and the universalism
+of its consummation. In the secret of the Kingdom of God, however,
+particularism and universalism go together. The Kingdom is
+universalistic, for it arises out of a cosmic act by which God awakes
+unto glory the righteous of all times and of all peoples. The bringing
+about of the Kingdom, on the other hand, is dependent upon
+particularism, for it is to be forced to approach by the moral renewal
+of the contemporaries of Jesus. Salvation comes out of Israel.
+
+[pg 119]
+
+6. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and Jesus’ Attitude towards the
+Law and the State.
+
+Jesus did not declare himself either for the Law or against it. He
+recognised it simply as an existing fact without binding himself to
+it. He felt no obligation to decide in principle whether it was to be
+regarded as binding or as not binding. For him this was a question of
+no practical importance. The real concern was the new morality, not
+the Law. This Law was for him holy and inviolable in so far as it
+pointed the way to the new morality. But therewith it did away with
+itself, for in the Kingdom which comes into being on account of the
+new morality the Law is abrogated, since the accomplished condition is
+super-legal and super-ethical. Up to this point it had a right to
+last. Whether the Law should also be binding upon his followers in the
+future was a question which did not exist for Jesus; it was history
+which first proposed this problem to the primitive Church.
+
+It was the same with regard to the State. The question which was put
+to him in the Jerusalem days had for him no practical importance. As
+he replied to the Pharisees’ question, whether one should give tribute
+to [pg 120] Cæsar, he had no thought of defining his attitude towards
+the State or determining that of his followers. How could any one be
+concerned at all about such things! The State was simply earthly,
+therefore ungodly, dominination [domination]. Its duration extended,
+therefore, only to the dawn of God’s dominion. As this was near at
+hand, what need had one to decide if one would be tributary to the
+world-power or no? One might as well submit to it, its end was in fact
+near. Give to Cæsar what is Cæsar’s and to God what is God’s (Mk
+12:17)—this word is uttered with a sovereign irony against the
+Pharisees, who understood so little the signs of the time that this
+still appeared to them a question of importance. They are just as
+foolish in the matter of the Kingdom of God as the Sadducees with
+their catch-question to which husband the seven times married wife
+should belong at the resurrection; for they, too, leave one thing out
+of account—the power of God (Mk 12:24).
+
+7. The Modern Element in Jesus’ Eschatology.
+
+“Let it be the maxim in every scientific investigation for one to
+pursue undisturbed the due course of it with all possible exactitude
+[pg 121] and frankness, not considering what it may collide with
+outside of its own field, but following it out, so far as one can,
+truly and completely for itself alone. Frequent observation has
+convinced me that when one has brought this task to an end, that which
+in the midst of it appeared to me for the time being very questionable
+with respect to other teaching outside, if only I closed my eyes to
+this questionableness and attended merely to my task till it was
+finished, finally in unexpected wise proved to be in perfect agreement
+with those very teachings,—though the truth had presented itself
+without the least reference to those teachings, without partiality and
+prejudice for them.”(Footnote. _Kritik der praktischen Vernunft. _ Ed.
+Reclam, p. 129.)
+
+Kant uttered this profound word at the moment when the correspondence
+of the notion of transcendental freedom with the practical first
+occurred to him. The case is the same with the relation of Jesus’
+ethics to his eschatology. It is a postulate of our Christian
+conviction that the ethics of Jesus in its basic thoughts is modern.
+Hence we come back again and again to the search after the modern
+element in his ethics, and for this cause we force into the background
+his eschatology, [pg 122] since it appears to us unmodern. If,
+however, one resolves to ignore for a moment this interest, which is
+so deeply grounded in our being and so well justified, and regards the
+relation of Jesus’ eschatology to his ethics simply for itself, as a
+purely historical question, the investigation brings to light the
+astonishing result that the latter (i. e. Jesus’ ethics) is modern in
+a far higher degree than any one hitherto has dared to hope. Jesus’
+ethics is modern, not because the eschatology can be reduced somehow
+to a mere accompaniment, but precisely because the ethics is
+absolutely dependent upon this eschatology! The fact is, this
+eschatology itself, as it is exhibited in the secret of the Kingdom of
+God, is thoroughly modern, inasmuch as it is dominated by the thought
+that the Kingdom of God is to come by reason of the religious-moral
+renovation which the believers perform. _Every moral-religious
+performance is therefore labour for the coming of the Kingdom of God._
+
+As the eschatology in this ethical-eschatological Weltanschauung
+gradually faded in the course of history, there remained an ethical
+Weltanschauung in which the eschatology persisted in the form of an
+imperishable faith in the final triumph of the good. The [pg 123]
+secret of the Kingdom of God contains the secret of the whole
+Christian Weltanschauung. The ethical eschatology of Jesus is the
+_heroic form_ in which the modern-Christian Weltanschauung first
+entered into history!
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 124]
+
+CHAPTER V
+
+THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+IN THE THOUGHT OF THE PASSION
+
+
+IN the last period of his life Jesus again uttered parables of the
+Kingdom of God: God’s vineyard (Mt 21:33-46); the royal marriage (Mt
+22:1-14); the servant watching (Mt 24:42-47); the ten virgins (Mt
+25:1-13); the talents (Mt 25:14-30).
+
+These parables, in contrast to those about the secret of the Kingdom,
+contain no secret, but rather they are teaching parables pure and
+simple, from which a moral is to be drawn. The Kingdom of God is near.
+Those only will be found to belong to it who by their moral conduct
+are prepared for it.
+
+The second period contains instead the _secret of the Passion._ Jesus’
+utterances, as we have seen, point to a mysterious causal connection
+between the Passion and the coming of the Kingdom, because the
+eschatology and the thought of the Passion always emerge side by side,
+and the Disciples’ expectation of the future is in every case roused
+to the [pg 125] highest pitch by the proclamation of his suffering.
+
+_The secret of the Passion takes up, therefore, the secret of the
+Kingdom of God and carries it further._ To the moral renewal which,
+according to the secret of the Kingdom of God, exercises a compelling
+power upon the coming of the Kingdom, there is adjoined another
+factor—_the redeeming death of Jesus._ That completes the penitence of
+those who believe in the coming of the Kingdom. Therewith Jesus comes
+to the aid of the men of violence who are compelling the approach of
+the Kingdom. The power which he thereby exerts is the highest
+conceivable—he gives up his life.
+
+The idea of the Passion is therefore the transformation of the secret
+of the Kingdom of God. Hence it is no more designed to be understood
+than are the parables of the secret of the Kingdom. In each case it is
+a question of a fact which can be probed no further.
+
+The connection between the thought of the Passion and the secret of
+the Kingdom of God guarantees the continuity of Jesus’ world of
+thought. All constructions which have been devised with a view to
+establishing this continuity have proved insufficient to [pg 126]
+accomplish what was expected of them. The acceptance of the thought of
+the Passion means in all cases a complete change in his idea of the
+Kingdom and in his Weltanschauung. If, however, one places the thought
+of the Passion in the great context of the secret of the Kingdom of
+God, the continuity is furnished naturally. The thought of the
+supernatural introduction of the Kingdom of God runs through the whole
+of Jesus’ life: the idea of the Passion is merely the fashion in which
+it is formulated in the second period.
+
+How comes it that the secret of the Kingdom of God takes the form of
+the secret of the Passion?
+
+Why must the atonement of Jesus be added to complete the moral renewal
+and the penitence of the community which believes in the Kingdom?
+
+In what sense has the redeeming death of Jesus an influence upon the
+coming of the Kingdom?
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 127]
+
+CHAPTER VI
+
+THE CHARACTER ASCRIBED TO JESUS ON THE
+GROUND OF HIS PUBLIC MINISTRY
+
+
+1. The Problem and the Facts.
+
+THE experience at the Baptism signified the inception of Jesus’
+messianic consciousness. In the neighbourhood of Cæsarea Philippi he
+revealed his secret to the Disciples. It was before the High Priest
+that he first openly made profession of his messianic office.
+Therefore the messianic consciousness underlay all the while his
+preaching of the Kingdom of God. But he does not assume on the part of
+his hearers any knowledge of the position which belonged to him. The
+faith which he required had nothing to do with his person, but it was
+due only to the message of the nearness of the Kingdom. It was the
+Fourth Evangelist who first presented the history of Jesus as if it
+concerned itself chiefly with his personality.
+
+We cannot estimate how far his real character may have shone through
+his message, for such as had an awakened understanding. One thing is
+certain: up to the time of the [pg 128] mission of the Twelve no one
+had the faintest idea of recognising in him the Messiah. At Cæsarea
+Philippi the Disciples could only reply that the people took him for a
+prophet or for Elijah the Forerunner, and they themselves knew no
+better, for Peter, as Jesus himself said, did not derive his knowledge
+from the Master’s ministry in work and word, but owed it to a
+supernatural revelation.
+
+The Synoptical notices must be judged in accordance with this
+fundamental fact. In the first place, there is a series of Matthean
+passages which stand at variance with it.
+
+Mt 9:27-31: In the Galilean parallel to the healing of the blind man
+at Jericho it is related that two blind men pursued him through the
+whole village with the cry, “Son of David.” What Jesus means by the
+warning, “See that no man knows it,” remains indeed obscure.
+
+Mt 12:23: After a miraculous healing the people whisper to themselves
+whether this is not the Son of David.
+
+Mt 14:33: After their experience at sea in the boat the Disciples fall
+down before him saying, “Truly thou art the Son of God.”
+
+Mt 15:22: The Canaanitish woman addresses him as the Son of
+David,—whereas [pg 129] according to Mark she simply falls at his feet
+and cries for help.
+
+All of these passages are peculiar to Matthew and belong to a
+secondary literary stratum. For the history of Jesus they have no
+importance, but a great deal for the history of the history of Jesus.
+They show us, that is, how the later time was inclined even more and
+more to depict his life in harmony with the presumption that he not
+only knew himself to be the Messiah but that others also had this
+impression of him.
+
+In the second place, it is a question of the speeches of the
+demoniacs. According to Mk 3:11 the unclean spirits, as often as they
+saw him, threw themselves at his feet and addressed him as the Son of
+God (cf. also Mk 1:24, Mk 5:7). It is true, he rebuked this cry and
+commanded silence. But if we did not have the incontestably sure
+information that during the whole of his Galilean ministry the people
+knew no more than that he was a prophet or Elijah, we should be forced
+to assume that these cries of the demoniacs made the people somehow
+aware of his true character. As it is, however, we may discern with
+precision, from the fact that the demon-cries were ignored, how very
+far men were from suspecting him to be the Messiah. [pg 130] Who
+believed the devil and the wild speech of the possessed?
+
+In the third place, it is a question of the expression “Son of Man.”
+If Jesus used it as a self-designation before Cæsarea Philippi, that
+would constitute in each case a messianic suggestion, for every one
+must refer this expression of the book of Daniel to the person who was
+to characterise the last time.
+
+According to Mark, Jesus twice employed this expression as a
+self-designation _before_ Cæsarea Philippi (Mk 2:10 and 2:28), and it
+occurs in the same sense in a series of passages peculiar to Matthew
+(Mt 8:20, 11:19, Mt 12:32, 40, 13:37, 41 and 16:13). In judging these
+passages also one must proceed from the sure ground which is furnished
+by the reply of the Disciples at Cæsarea Philippi.
+
+Either Jesus had not used this expression up to that time, in which
+case these Son of Man passages are chronologically anticipated, and
+constitute a mere literary phenomena.
+
+Or else he had used the expression. Then he must have done so in such
+a way that no man could suppose that he assumed for himself the
+dignity of the Son of Man of Daniel.
+
+The problem in the second period is still harder. The Disciples knew
+his secret, but they dared reveal it to no one. But how [pg 131] about
+the people? Did they now have a presentiment of the messianic dignity
+of Jesus?
+
+The problem has to do therefore with three facts:
+
+1. The whole discussion in the Jerusalem days turns in no wise upon
+the messianic dignity of Jesus, but has to do rather with legal
+propositions and with questions of the day. Far too little weight has
+been attached hitherto to the fact that neither the people nor the
+scribes took up a position towards him as the messianic personality.
+How different the Jerusalem days would have been if the question which
+agitated them was: Is he the Messiah—is he not? can he be—can he not?
+In reality he is merely the unofficial authority of the Galilean
+people, before whom the scholars of the capital bring their questions
+of the school, whether with a sincere mind, or with the perfidious
+intention of destroying his authority.
+
+2. In the second period Jesus had the people about him only for a few
+days,—from the crossing of the Jordan until his death. During this
+time he made to them no disclosure about his messiahship, and gave
+them also no hint which they could and must understand in this sense.
+The bribed witnesses know nothing of the sort to allege. What is [pg
+132] remarkable in their evidence—upon which too little weight has
+been laid—consists precisely in the fact that _they in no wise charge
+him with wishing to be the Messiah._ For them his impious pretention
+exhausts itself in a disrespectful word about the Temple. Let one
+picture to himself what the procedure of the trial would have been if
+the hired accusers had of themselves discovered messianic hints in
+Jesus’ speeches!
+
+3. From this point one arrives necessarily at the conclusion that up
+to the last moment he was for the people in Jerusalem just what he was
+in Galilee,—the great Prophet or the Forerunner, but in no wise the
+Messiah! There are two facts, however, which do not comport with this.
+
+The entrance into Jerusalem was—according to the common
+apprehension—_a messianic ovation._ Therefore the people must have had
+a presentiment of Jesus’ dignity.
+
+The High Priest put to him the question, whether he were the Messiah.
+Therefore he knew of Jesus’ claim.
+
+We have here a clear question to deal with: was Jesus regarded in the
+Jerusalem days as a messianic pretendant or no? One should not obscure
+this question by speaking of a more or less clear “presentment” in [pg
+133] this matter. The “presentiment of the messiahship of Jesus” is a
+modern invention. The populace would hardly be swayed hither and yon
+by a dark mysterious presentiment, but rather it must have been a
+question of belief or unbelief. Whosoever held that he was the Messiah
+must accompany him through fire and death—to glory. Whosoever held no
+such faith, but had only a presentiment of such a pretention on his
+part, must give the signal to stone the blasphemer. There was no third
+course.
+
+The facts in general speak in favour of the opinion that the people
+and the Pharisees in the Jerusalem days ascribed to Jesus no messianic
+pretention,—no more indeed than they did at an earlier period. Only in
+this case the entrance into Jerusalem, understood as a messianic
+ovation, remains an enigma, and it is likewise unaccountable how it
+occurred to the High Priest to question him about his messiahship.
+
+On the one hand the situation must be understood in the way which is
+commonly assumed. Then one must renounce every hope of an historical
+understanding of the last public period of Jesus. It will not do to
+suppose that at the beginning of this period (entrance into Jerusalem)
+and at the [pg 134] end of it (question of the High Priest at the
+trial) he was taken for the Messiah, while the Jerusalem days which
+lay in the interval knew nothing of this claim whatever.
+
+Or else—the entrance into Jerusalem and the question of the High
+Priest have not been rightly and historically understood. Was the
+ovation offered to the messianic pretendant? Did the High Priest in
+his question give utterance to something which all knew? Did he deduce
+the claim of messiahship from Jesus’ life, activity, and speech?—or
+did he perhaps learn through betrayal the innermost secret of Jesus,
+which since Cæsarea Philippi was known only to his trusted intimates?
+
+The problem of Jesus’ messiahship in all its difficulty may be
+formulated as follows: How was it possible that Jesus knew himself as
+the Messiah from the beginning, and yet to the very last moment did
+not give in his public preaching any intimation of his messiahship?
+How could it in the long run remain hidden from the people that these
+speeches were uttered out of a messianic consciousness? _Jesus was a
+Messiah who during his public ministry would not be one, did not need
+to be, and might not be, for the sake [pg 135] of fulfilling his
+mission! It is thus that history puts the problem._
+
+2. Jesus Is Elijah through His Solidarity with the Son of Man.
+
+_What character could and must the people ascribe to Jesus on the
+ground of his public ministry?_ That is the question with which we
+have now to do.
+
+The Messiah and the messianic Kingdom belong inseparately together.
+Hence if Jesus had preached a present messianic Kingdom, it would have
+been at the same time incumbent upon him to indicate the Messiah,—he
+would have had to begin by legitimating himself as the Messiah before
+the people.
+
+The fact is, however, that he preached a future kingdom. With this the
+possibility was completely excluded that any one could suppose him to
+be the Messiah. _If the Kingdom was future, so also was the Messiah._
+If Jesus nevertheless had messianic pretensions, this thought was
+thoroughly remote from the people, for his preaching of the Kingdom
+excluded even the least conjecture of the sort. Hence even the cries
+of the demons did not avail to put the people on the right track.
+
+[pg 136]
+
+Conjectures of that sort were rendered completely impossible by the
+way in which Jesus spoke of the Messiah in the third person and as a
+character of the future. He intimated to the Disciples as he sent them
+upon their mission that the Son of Man would appear before they had
+gone through all the cities of Israel (Mt 10:23). In Mk 8:38 he gave
+promise to the people of the speedy appearing of the Son of Man for
+judgment and the coming of the Kingdom of God with power. In the same
+way at Jerusalem he still spoke of the judgment which the Son of Man
+will hold when he appears in his glory surrounded by the angels (Mt
+25:31).
+
+Only the Disciples after the revelation of Cæsarea Philippi, and the
+High Priest after the “Yes” of Jesus, could trace a personal relation
+between him and the Son of Man of whose coming he spoke,—for they knew
+his secret. For his other hearers, however, _Jesus of Nazareth_ and
+the individual who was the subject of his discourse, the _Son of Man,_
+remained two entirely distinct personalities.
+
+Before the people Jesus merely suggested the _absolute solidarity_
+between himself and the Son of Man whom he proclaimed.
+
+It was only in this form that his own gigantic personality obtruded in
+his preaching of [pg 137] the Kingdom of God. Only he who under all
+conditions confesses him, the proclaimer of the coming of the Son of
+Man, will be discovered as a member of the Kingdom at the Day of
+Judgment. Jesus, in fact, will intervene before God and before the Son
+of Man in his behalf (Mk 8:38- 9:1, Mt 10:32-33). One must be ready
+to give up the dearest things to follow him, for only so can one show
+one’s self _worthy of him_ (Mt 10:37, 38). Hence Jesus is grieved when
+the rich young man cannot make up his mind to give up his riches in
+order to follow him (Mk 10:22), for now he cannot appear for him at
+the Day of Judgment to insure that he shall be accepted as a member of
+the Kingdom of God. Still, in the measureless omnipotence of God he
+finds reason to hope that this rich man will nevertheless find
+entrance into the Kingdom (Mk 10:17-31). If this man, therefore,
+because Jesus cannot intervene in his behalf, is not sure “to inherit
+eternal life” (Mk 10:17), those, on the other hand who, confessing him
+and his message, endure death are certain to save their life, _i. e._
+to be found as members of the Kingdom at the resurrection of the dead
+(Mk 8:37). Hence in the beginning of the sermon on the mount he
+pronounces them blessed who [pg 138] for his sake suffer reviling and
+persecution, because thereby, like the meek and the merciful, they are
+designated as members of the Kingdom (Mt 5:11 f.).
+
+From Jesus’ standpoint, this absolute solidarity between God and the
+Son of Man on the one hand, and himself on the other presented no
+enigma, for it was based upon his messianic selfconsciousness; he can
+speak thus because he is conscious of being himself the Son of Man. It
+was quite different for the people, and for the Disciples before the
+revelation at Cæsarea Philippi. How can Jesus of Nazareth, in a manner
+so sovereignly self-confident, proclaim his absolute solidarity with
+the Son of Man? This assertion forced the people to reflect upon his
+personality. Who was this whose manifestation mightily extended out of
+the pre-messianic and into the messianic æon itself, so that God and
+the Son of Man receive into the Kingdom such as had confessed him, if
+this confession did not lose its value by reason of the defect of
+moral worthiness, as he himself once expressly declared by way of
+warning? Such importance as Jesus claimed for himself belonged to only
+_one_ personality,—Elijah, the mighty Forerunner,—for his
+manifestation stretched out of the present into the messianic [pg 139]
+æon and bound both together. Hence the people held that Jesus was
+Elijah. In this was expressed the highest estimate which Jesus’
+personality could wring from the masses. In this case it is not a
+question of one of the customary misunderstandings so beloved of the
+secondary Gospel narrators, but the people _could not,_ from Jesus’
+appearance and proclamation, come to any other conclusion about him.
+
+3. Jesus Is Elijah through the Signs which Proceed from Him.
+
+In order to render intelligible the attitude of Jesus’ contemporaries
+towards himself and his work, we must rid ourselves of two false
+presuppositions with which we constantly though unconsciously operate.
+First, the expectation at that time was not fixed upon the Messiah but
+upon the Forerunner promised by prophecy. Secondly, no one in any way
+detected this Forerunner in the person of the Baptist. Both of our
+presuppositions run precisely to the contrary effect, and thereby we
+spoil our historical perspective.
+
+The appearing of the Messiah in conjunction with the great crisis
+which he brings about constitutes the supernatural drama which the
+world awaits. But before the curtain [pg 140] rises there must arise
+among the expectant sons of men the man who is to speak the prologue
+of the piece; who then, so soon as the curtain is lifted, associates
+himself with the celestial personages which conduct the action of the
+drama. Hence men are in expectancy first of all not for the rising of
+the curtain and the appearing of the Messiah but for the speaker of
+the prologue. _It was important to signalise the entrance of the
+Forerunner upon the stage in order to know to what hour the hand of
+the world clock pointed._
+
+Elijah, however, had not as yet appeared, for the Baptist had not
+legitimated himself as such. He lacked to this end the display of
+supernatural power. Signs and wonders, however, belonged necessarily
+to the epoch which immediately preceded the Kingdom. A general pouring
+out of the Spirit and prophesying, wonders in heaven and upon
+earth,—all that was to occur before the Day of God comes. So it was
+defined by the prophet Joel (3:28 [2:28] ff.). Peter in his
+sermon at Pentecost appealed to this passage (Acts 2:17-22). One ought
+to recognise from the supernatural ecstatic “tongues” that one is
+approaching the end of the days. The crucified Jesus hath God raised
+up to be the [pg 141] Messiah in the Resurrection, and the Kingdom
+will soon dawn.
+
+This passage in Joel was therefore applied to the time immediately
+preceding the messianic age, the time of miracles, in which according
+to the prophecy of Malachi the Forerunner should appear (Mal 4:5-6).
+Moreover, the selfsame refrain unites these two fundamental passages
+of pre-messianic expectation: Mal 4:5 is the same as Joel
+2:31—“Before the coming of the great and terrible Day of the Lord.”
+_The Forerunner without miracles in an unmiraculous age was therefore
+unthinkable._
+
+For the contemporaries the characteristic difference between John and
+Jesus consisted precisely in the fact that the one simply pointed to
+the nearness of the Kingdom of God while the other confirmed his
+preaching by signs and wonders. Men had the consciousness of entering
+with Jesus upon the age of miracles. He was the Baptist,—but the
+Baptist, as it were, translated into the supernatural. After the
+mission of the Twelve, as his emergence and his signs became known
+abroad together with the news of the death of the Baptist, people
+said: The Baptist is raised from the dead. Hence the Disciples
+answered him at Cæsarea Philippi [pg 142] that men took him for Elijah
+or for the Baptist (Mk 8:28). Herod as he heard of him would not give
+up the notion that he was the Baptist: “The Baptist is risen from the
+dead, and therefore do these powers work in him” (Mk 6:14).
+
+Also the significance which Jesus ascribed to the signs must have led
+his hearers to suppose that they were in the midst of the era of the
+Forerunner. Their significance consisted, namely, in the fact that
+they confirmed the nearness of the messianic Kingdom. The people ought
+to believe him for the sake of the signs and repent unto the Kingdom
+of God.
+
+The signs are an act of God’s grace through which he would make men
+aware what hour it is. Whosoever does not repent is damned. So it
+comes to pass with the inhabitants of Chorazin, Bethsaida, and
+Capernaum. But whosoever blasphemes against the Holy Ghost and
+ascribes the signs to the power of ungodliness has no forgiveness in
+eternity. The scribes from Jerusalem made themselves guilty in Galilee
+of this offence (Mk 3:22 ff.). Those, however, who did not harden
+themselves held that the Kingdom of God stands at the door and that
+Jesus is the Forerunner, because they had evidently entered [pg 143]
+the age of signs which the Scripture had prophesied.
+
+4. The Victory over Demons and the Secret of the Kingdom of God.
+
+For Jesus the signs signified the nearness of the Kingdom in a sense
+still higher than the purely temporal, chronological nearness. By his
+victory over the demons he was conscious of _influencing the coming of
+it._ The secret of the Kingdom of God plays into this conception. The
+thought is contained in the parable with which he repels the false
+suspicions of the Jerusalem scribes (Mk 3:23-30).
+
+The meaning of this parable is, in fact, not exhausted by the thought
+that the argument that evil spirits do not undermine their own
+dominion by rising up one against another. In the concluding word we
+encounter unexpectedly the “now and then” which is characteristic of
+the secret of the Kingdom of God: “No one can enter into the house of
+the strong man and spoil his goods, except he _first_ bind the strong
+man, and _then_ he will spoil his house.” The casting out of demons,
+therefore, signified for Jesus the binding of the power of ungodliness
+and rendering it harmless. Hence this activity, like the moral renewal
+in the secret of the [pg 144] Kingdom, stands in causal relation with
+the dawning of the Kingdom of God. Through his conquest of the demons
+Jesus is the man of violence who compels the approach of the Kingdom.
+For when the power of ungodliness is bound, then comes the moment when
+the dominion shall be taken from it. In order that this may happen it
+must first be rendered harmless. Hence in sending the Disciples upon
+their mission Jesus not only commands them to proclaim the nearness of
+the Kingdom, but he also gives them authority over the demons (Mt
+10:1). In that moment of highest eschatological expectation he sends
+them out as the men of violence who are to deal the last blow. The
+repentance which is to be accomplished by their preaching, and the
+overcoming of the power of ungodliness in the demoniacs, work together
+for the hastening of the Kingdom.
+
+Thus the parables of the secret of the Kingdom (Mark 4), the parable
+in Jesus’ apology to the Pharisees (Mk 3:23-30), and the parable in
+the eulogy of the Baptist (Mt 11:12-15) all express the same thought.
+The two latter correspond even in the drastic image of violent action,
+whence the notion of “robbery” is common to them both (Mk 3:27 = Mt
+11:12).
+
+[pg 145]
+
+For Jesus’ consciousness the healing of the demoniacs was therefore a
+part of the secret of the Kingdom of God. It sufficed for the people,
+however, to grasp the purely chronological connection.
+
+5. Jesus and the Baptist.
+
+We have seen above that no one could recognise Elijah in the person of
+the Baptist because his ministry and preaching without miracle did not
+correspond with the Scriptural representation of the Forerunner’s
+time. None thought of ascribing to him this office and dignity
+except—for there was one exception—_Jesus!_ He it was that first gave
+the people a mysterious hint that this man was the Forerunner: “If ye
+are willing to receive it, he himself is Elijah, the coming-one” (Mt
+11:14). He is aware, however, that with this he is giving utterance to
+an incomprehensible secret which to his hearers remains just as
+obscure as the word uttered in the same connection about the man of
+violence who since the days of the Baptist compel the Kingdom (Mt
+11:12). Hence he concludes both these sayings with the oracular
+phrase: He that hath ears to hear, let him hear (Mt 11:15).
+
+The people, however, were very far from [pg 146] comprehending that
+this Baptist who had fallen into the hands of Herod could be the
+prodigious personality who was to stand upon the threshold between the
+pre-messianic and the messianic age. So the mysterious word of Jesus
+died upon the air, and the people stuck to the opinion that John was
+really a prophet (Mk 11:32).
+
+The rulers also could reach no conclusion about the personality of the
+Baptist. For this reason they were worsted in their colloquy with
+Jesus when they would challenge him for his purifying of the Temple
+(Mk 11:33).
+
+The case was quite the same with the Disciples: they were incapable by
+themselves of recognising in John the expected Elijah. On the descent
+from the Mount of Transfiguration they were assailed by scruples about
+the messiahship of Jesus and about the possibility of the resurrection
+of the dead which Jesus had touched upon in his discourse. This
+assumed, indeed, that the messianic era was already present, and this
+could not yet have dawned, for “Elijah must first come, as the scribes
+demonstrate” (Mk 9:9-11). Thereupon Jesus replied to them that John
+was this Elijah, even though he was delivered into the power of men
+(Mk 9:12, 13).
+
+[pg 147]
+
+How did Jesus arrive at the conviction that the Baptist was Elijah? It
+was through a necessary inference from his own messiahship. Because he
+knew himself to be the Messiah, the other must be Elijah. Between the
+two ideas there was a necessary correspondence. No one could know that
+the Baptist was Elijah except he derived this cognisance from the
+messiahship of Jesus. No one could arrive at the thought that John was
+Elijah without at the same time being obliged to see in Jesus the
+Messiah. For after the Forerunner there remained no place for a second
+manifestation of the kind. No one knew that Jesus took himself to be
+the Messiah. Therefore in the Baptist men perceived a prophet and
+raised the question whether Jesus were not Elijah. No one understood
+in their full bearing the mysterious concluding sentences of the
+eulogy over the Baptist. _Only for Jesus was John the promised
+Elijah._
+
+6. The Baptist and Jesus.
+
+What was the Baptist’s attitude to Jesus? If he had been conscious of
+being the Forerunner, he must have surmised that Jesus was the
+Messiah. One generally assumes this and supposes that he as the
+Forerunner [pg 148] put the question to Jesus whether he were the
+Messiah (Mt 11:2-6). This supposition seems to us perfectly natural
+because we always represent to ourselves the two characters in the
+relation of Forerunner-Messiah.
+
+In this connection, however, we forget a perfectly obvious question.
+Did the Baptist feel himself to be Elijah, the Forerunner? In no
+utterance before the people did he raise such a claim. They stubbornly
+recognised in him only a prophet. Also during his imprisonment he can
+have claimed no such thing, for in Jerusalem the people still held to
+the same opinion, that he was a prophet.
+
+If somehow or another the presentiment had prevailed that he
+represented the character of Elijah, how then could men generally get
+the notion that John was a prophet, Jesus the Elijah? That this was
+the general view even after the death of the Baptist, is proved by the
+reply of the Disciples at Cæsarea Philippi.
+
+To view the Baptist’s query under the presumption that the Forerunner
+is asking whether Jesus be the Messiah is to put the question in a
+light which is completely unjustified; for whether John took himself
+to be the Forerunner is not in the least to be proven. Therefore it is
+also by no means [pg 149] made out that his question referred to the
+messianic dignity. The people standing by, as they did not take John
+to be the Forerunner, must have interpreted it in a very different
+way,—namely, in the sense: Art thou Elias?
+
+The fact is that the usual perspective hides a characteristic detail
+in this very section, the fact, namely, that Jesus applies again to
+the Baptist the same designation which the Baptist in his question had
+applied to him! Art thou the Coming One? asked the Baptist. Jesus
+replied: If ye are willing to receive it, _he himself_ is Elijah, the
+Coming One! The designation of the “Coming One” is therefore common to
+both speeches, only that we arbitrarily refer it to the Messiah in the
+question of the Baptist. This proceeding, which appears so natural in
+the naïve perspective, will show itself to be unjustified so soon as
+one becomes aware that it is in fact only a question of perspective
+and not of any real standard. For then the phrase “He himself” in
+Jesus’ reply acquires suddenly an unsuspected significance: “_he
+himself_ is Elijah,” the Coming One! This reference compels us to
+understand by the Coming One in the Baptist’s question, not the
+Messiah, but—as in Jesus’ reply—Elias.
+
+[pg 150]
+
+“Art thou the expected Forerunner?”—thus the Baptist through his
+disciples makes inquiry of Jesus. “If ye are able to receive it, he
+himself is this Forerunner,” said Jesus to the people after he had
+spoken to them about the greatness of the Baptist.
+
+By this reference the scene now receives a far more intense colouring.
+First of all, it becomes clear why Jesus speaks about the Baptist
+_after the departure of the messengers._ He feels himself obliged to
+lead the people up climactically from the conception that John is a
+prophet to the presentiment that he is the Forerunner, with whose
+appearing the hand of the world clock nears the fateful hour to which
+refers the word concerning “him who prepares the way,” and of whom the
+scribes say “that he must first come” (Mk 9:11).
+
+John, in fact, with his question was backward in his reckoning of the
+Messianic time. His messengers seek information about the Forerunner
+at the moment when Jesus’ confidence that the Kingdom is immediately
+to dawn was at the highest pitch. He had just sent out his Disciples
+and given them to expect that the appearing of the Son of Man might
+surprise them on their way through the cities of Israel. The hour is
+already far more advanced—that is what Jesus would [pg 151] give the
+people to understand in his “eulogy over the Baptist,” if they can
+receive it.
+
+John reached this surmise about Jesus in the same way as did the
+people. That is to say, as he heard _of the signs and deeds of Jesus_
+(Mt 11:2), there occurred to him the thought that this might be
+something more than a prophet with a call to repentance. So he sends
+messengers to him in order to have assurance upon this point.
+
+Herewith, however, the proclamation of the Baptist is put in an
+entirely different light. He never pointed to the coming Messiah, _but
+to the expected Forerunner._ So is to be explained the proclamation
+about “him that is to come after him” (Mk 1:7, 8). As applied to the
+Messiah, the expressions he uses remain obscure. They denote, that is,
+only a difference of degree, not a total difference in kind, between
+himself and the person whom he announces. If he were speaking of the
+Messiah, it would have been impossible for him to employ these
+expressions, in which, in spite of the mighty difference in rank, he
+still compares the Coming One to himself. He thinks of the Forerunner
+as like himself, baptising and preaching repentance unto the Kingdom,
+only that he is incomparably greater and mightier. Instead of
+baptising [pg 152] with water, he will baptise with the Holy Ghost (Mk
+1:8).
+
+This cannot apply to the Messiah. Since when does the Messiah baptise?
+Then, too, the famous pouring out of the Spirit does not occur within
+but _before_ the messianic era! Before the coming of the great Day of
+the Lord he will pour out his Spirit upon all flesh, and signs and
+wonders shall be showed in heaven and on earth (Joel 2:28 ff[.]).
+Before the coming of the great Day of the Lord he will send Elijah the
+Prophet (Mal 4:5). The Baptist combines these two chief indications of
+the character of the great events that are to precede the Last Time,
+and he arrives at the conception of the Forerunner who is to baptise
+with the Holy Ghost! One sees from this what a supernatural light
+surrounded the figure of the Forerunner in the current conception.
+Hence it is that John felt himself so little before him.
+
+Jesus was put by this question in a difficult position. The Baptist in
+asking him, Art thou the Forerunner? or art thou not? had proposed a
+false alternative to which Jesus could answer neither yes nor no. He
+was not willing to entrust the secret of his messiahship to the
+messengers. He therefore replied with a hint of the nearness of [pg
+153] the Kingdom which was revealed in his deeds. At the same time he
+thrust his own personality mightily into the foreground. He alone can
+be blessed who stands by him and who finds no occasion of stumbling in
+him. With this he would say the same as he said once also to the
+people: membership in the Kingdom is dependent upon one’s attachment
+to him (Mk 8:38).
+
+Jesus’ remarkable evasive answer to the Baptist, in which exegesis has
+always believed that it must discover a special finesse, is explained
+therefore simply by the necessity of the situation. Jesus could not
+answer directly. Hence he gave this obscure response. The Baptist was
+to gather from it what he would and could. Besides, it was of no
+importance how he understood it. Events would soon teach him, for the
+time is already much further advanced than he supposes, and the hammer
+is already lifted to strike the hour.
+
+It is exceedingly difficult for us to get rid of the notion that the
+Baptist and Jesus stood to one another in the relation of Forerunner
+and Messiah. It is only through intense reflection that we can reach
+the perception that the two characters stand in this relation in our
+perspective only [pg 154] because we assume the messiahship of Jesus;
+but that in order to discover the historical relationship we must
+calculate and apply the right perspective.
+
+So long as one is still prejudiced in any way by the old perspective,
+one cannot do justice to the foregoing investigation. That is, one
+will still have the notion that it is a question of “the forerunner of
+the Forerunner” and the Forerunner—an ingenious multiplication of the
+Forerunner by himself. That is falsely expressed. A prophet of
+repentance, John the Baptist, directs men’s attention to the
+prediction of the mighty figure of Elijah the Forerunner, and as he
+hears in prison of the signs of Jesus he wonders if this may not be
+Elijah—and does not dream that this man holds himself to be the
+Messiah, and that for this reason he himself will henceforth be
+designated in history as the Forerunner. That is the historical
+situation.
+
+The moment the conception of history was defined by the conviction
+that Jesus was the Messiah the historical perspective was necessarily
+shifted. The Gospels display this shifting in increasing measure. In
+the introductory verses of Mark the quotation from Malachi about the
+Forerunner who is to prepare the way (Mal 3:1) is already applied to
+[pg 155] John. According to Matthew, the Baptist hears in prison of
+“the works of the Messiah” (Mt 11:2). If here it is only a question of
+the casual and unreflecting introduction of a new mode of conception,
+the Fourth Gospel, on the other hand, has made a principle of it and
+consistently represents the history in line with the presumption that
+because Jesus was the Messiah the Baptist was the Forerunner and must
+have felt himself to be such. The historical Baptist says: I am not
+the _Forerunner,_ for he is incomparably greater and mightier than I.
+According to the Fourth Gospel the people could conjecture that he was
+the Christ. He was obliged to say, therefore: I am not the _Christ_
+(Jn 1:20)!
+
+Thus has the relation been altered under the influence of the new
+perspective. The person of the Baptist has become historically
+unrecognisable. Finally they have made out of him the modern doubter,
+who half believed in Jesus’ messiahship, and half disbelieved. In this
+apprehensive indecision, this backing and filling, is supposed to lie,
+in fact, the tragedy of his existence! Now, however, one may
+confidently strike him from the list of those characters, so
+interesting to us moderns, who come to ruin through a tragic [pg 156]
+half-faith. Jesus spared him that. For so long as he lived he required
+of no man faith in him as the Messiah—and yet that is what he was!
+
+7. The Blind Man at Jericho and the Ovation at the Entrance to
+Jerusalem.
+
+Was the entrance into Jerusalem a messianic ovation? That depends, in
+the first place, upon how one interprets the cry of the people; but
+then also, upon one’s notion of the encounter between Jesus and the
+blind man. If it was actually a question there of his being greeted as
+the Son of David,—a greeting which he no longer repudiates, but
+tacitly admits, so that the people learn to apprehend what he takes
+himself to be,—the consequence is inevitable that it was a messianic
+ovation.
+
+For the exact understanding of the description of Jesus’ entrance into
+Jerusalem, the differences in detail between Mark and the parallels
+are of far reaching importance. In Mark we have two clearly
+distinguishable acclamations. The first is directed to the person of
+Jesus in their midst: “Hosanna! Blessed be ‘the Coming One’ in the
+name of the Lord” (Mk 11:9). The second refers to the expected coming
+of the Kingdom: [pg 157] “Blessed be the coming Kingdom of our father
+David. Hosanna in the highest!” The Son of David is thus not mentioned
+at all!
+
+It is different in Matthew. There the people shout “Hosanna to the Son
+of David! Blessed be the Coming One in the name of the Lord. Hosanna
+in the highest!” (Mt 21:9). We have here therefore only the cry which
+was directed to the person of Jesus; the Kingdom is not mentioned; men
+acclaim instead the Son of David and, at the same time, the Coming
+One.
+
+Luke’s version does not come into account, for he deals with
+reminiscences from the history of the infancy “Blessed be the king
+that cometh in the name of the Lord. Peace in heaven and glory in the
+highest” (Lk 19:38).
+
+Thus Matthew in his account interprets the Coming One as the Son of
+David. We possess no direct proof that this expression (the Coming
+One), which is derived from Psalm 118:25 ff[.], was employed in Jesus’
+time for the Messiah. It has been shown, however, that _the Baptist as
+well as Jesus applied it rather to the Forerunner Elijah._ It is
+therefore unhistorical when Matthew represents the people as
+acclaiming in the same [pg 158] breath both the Coming One and the Son
+of David.
+
+Mark has here, too, preserved in his detail the original situation.
+The people acclaimed Jesus as the “Coming One,” i. e. as the
+Forerunner, and sings an “Hosanna in the highest” to the Kingdom which
+is soon to descend upon earth. A fine distinction is made in the use
+of _Hosanna_ and _Hosanna in the highest_ (“places” is to be
+supplied). The former applies to the Forerunner present in their
+midst; the latter, to the heavenly Kingdom. The secondary character of
+the account in Matthew is evident in the fact that it applies to the
+Son of David and to the Coming One not only an Hosanna but likewise an
+Hosanna in the highest,—whereby the Messiah is first assumed to be on
+earth and then, still in heaven! Here it becomes plain that the second
+Hosanna belonged originally with the Kingdom.
+
+_The entrance into Jerusalem, therefore, was an ovation not to the
+Messiah but to the Forerunner._ But then it is impossible that the
+people understood the scene with the blind man as indicating that
+Jesus welcomed the address “Son of David.”
+
+Here again it is a question of Synoptical detail by which the scene is
+totally changed. [pg 159] The shout in the name of the Son of David is
+incidental. The question is only whether the public could and must
+conceive it as a form of address. This conception is evidently that of
+Matthew and Luke, _but by Mark it is excluded._
+
+According to the Matthean account, two blind men sit by the wayside
+and cry, Have mercy upon us, Son of David (Mt 20:30).
+
+In Luke the cry runs: Jesus, thou Son of David, have mercy upon me (Lk
+18:38). Thereupon Jesus comes to a stand before him, converses with
+him, and heals him.
+
+According to Mark, the blind beggar, son of Timæus, is sitting behind
+the multitude at the edge of the road. _Jesus does not see him, cannot
+address him, but hears only a voice, which reaches him as from the
+ground out of the midst of the stir,_ of one calling upon the Son of
+David for help. Jesus comes to a stand and sends _to have him
+fetched!_ They follow the voice and find the man sitting upon the
+ground. Rise, he calleth thee! they say to him. He throws away his
+garment, springs up, and presses through the crowd to Jesus. As Jesus
+sees the man approaching him thus he can have no idea that he is
+blind! He has to ask him, therefore, what he wants. The distance, the
+heat, [pg 160] the sending to fetch him, the nimble approach,—all this
+Matthew has dropped. He has simplified the situation: Jesus encounters
+the two blind men on the road and at once addresses them. Only he has
+retained from the original situation the question, “what is
+wanted?”—which in Mark is actually necessary, but in Matthew remains
+unaccountable, for there Jesus must see that he has to do with two
+blind men!
+
+But if there lay such a distance between Jesus and the blind man, no
+one could have an idea that he took the monotonous cry about the Son
+of David as an address to himself! It was just simply an annoying cry,
+which the bystanders sought in vain to silence. The people attached as
+little importance to it as to the cries of the demons—if in fact they
+understood it at all.
+
+The _address_ of the beggar was of an entirely different tenor and
+shows that he no more took Jesus for the Messiah than did the people:
+“Rabbi, that I may receive my sight.” For him, therefore, Jesus was
+the rabbi from Nazareth.
+
+If one keep this situation in view, it will be seen that the
+bystanders could in no way get the idea that Jesus here welcomes a
+messianic [pg 161] acclaim. This, however, was the first sign which he
+again performed after coming out of his retirement. Thereby he
+legitimated himself before the Paschal caravan as the Forerunner, for
+which his adherents in Galilee took him before he suddenly withdrew
+into solitude in the north. Now the demonstration is let loose, and
+they prepare for him as the Forerunner the ovation at the entrance
+into Jerusalem.
+
+In demonstrating the proper character of this occurrence one has to
+deal with apparently insignificant detail to which not everyone may be
+inclined to ascribe due importance. In view of this the following
+points are to be kept in mind:
+
+1. In the representation which assumes the messiahship of Jesus there
+must come about as of itself a shifting of detail which has the effect
+of describing a messianic entrance. This is the case with Matthew.
+There is no evidence of a deliberate purpose on the part of the
+writer.
+
+2. Mark’s delineation shows such originality in comparison with the
+parallels (one has but to think of the story of the Baptism and the
+report of the Last Supper) that one cannot easily lay too great weight
+upon the peculiarity [pg 162] of his account,—especially when it
+results in so clear and consistent a picture as is here the case.
+
+3. Nothing is accomplished by the assertion that proof has not been
+brought that it was assuredly a question of an ovation to the
+Forerunner. For then it remains to demonstrate how it was, that, on
+the presumption that it was actually an ovation to the Messiah, the
+transactions in the Jerusalem days make no allusion at all to the
+presumed messianic pretension and the venal accusers do not appeal to
+any such claims. What must the Roman procurator have done if a man had
+marched into the city hailed by the populace as the Son of David?
+
+4. The true historical apprehension is peculiarly difficult for us
+here because of our notion that the signs and wonders were regarded by
+the contemporaries as a confirmation of the messiahship of Jesus. In
+that opinion we share the standpoint upon which the Johannine
+representation is based. According to the conception of Jesus’
+contemporaries, however, the Messiah needs no signs, but rather he
+will be at once manifest in his power! The signs belong on the
+contrary to the period of the Forerunner!
+
+5. Our translation also has a prejudicial [pg 163] effect. The word
+_ἐρχόμενοζ_ denotes in all passages a personality sharply defined for
+that time. Hence one must in every case translate it in accord with
+this perception,—not one time as a substantive [cf. the German Bible]
+and again (in the story of the ovation) as a verb-form, just as
+happens to be most convenient. “The Coming One” is the Forerunner,
+because before the messianic judgment he is to come in the name of God
+to put everything in order.
+
+We arrive therefore at the conclusion: _Until the confession before
+the council Jesus was publicly regarded as the Forerunner, as he had
+been already in Galilee._
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 164]
+
+CHAPTER VII
+
+AFTER THE MISSION OF THE TWELVE. LITERARY
+AND HISTORICAL PROBLEMS
+
+
+1. The Voyage on the Lake after the Return of the Twelve.
+
+It is exceedingly difficult to gather from the Synoptic accounts a
+clear picture of the events which happened after the mission of the
+Twelve. When did the Disciples return? Where did Jesus betake himself
+during their absence? What sort of success did the Disciples have?
+What events happened between their return and the departure for the
+north? Were these events of a sort to account for Jesus’ determination
+to withdraw with them into solitude?
+
+The accounts supply no answer to these questions. Moreover they
+confront us with another, a purely literary problem. The connection
+between the several scenes is here extraordinarily broken. It seems
+almost as if the thread of the narration were here completely lost.
+Only at the moment of departure for the journey to Jerusalem do the
+[pg 165] scenes begin to stand again in a clear and natural
+relationship.
+
+First of all we have to do with two obvious doublettes: the feeding of
+the multitude and the subsequent journey on the lake (Mk 6:31, 56 = Mk
+8:1, 21). In both instances Jesus is overtaken by the multitude as he
+lands on a lonely shore after a journey across the lake. Then he
+returns again to the Galilean village on the west shore. Here in his
+accustomed field of activity he encounters the Pharisaic emissaries
+from Jerusalem. They call him to account. In the series which contains
+the first account of the feeding of the multitude the question at
+issue is about hand-washing (Mk 7:1-23), in the second case it is the
+requirement of a sign (Mk 8:11-13). The first series concludes with
+the departure for the north, where in the neighbourhood of Tyre and
+Sidon he meets the Canaanitish woman (Mk 7:24-30). In the second
+series the journey to Cæsarea Philippi (Mk 8:27) follows upon his
+encounter with the Pharisees.
+
+We have here therefore two independent accounts of the same epoch in
+Jesus’s life. In their plan they match one another perfectly,
+differing only in the choice of the events to be related. These two
+narrative series are as it were predestinated to be [pg 166] united
+instead of being placed side by side. It happens that each of the
+northern journeys, according to the narrative, begins and ends with a
+sojourn in Galilee. Mk 7:31: After leaving the region of Tyre he came
+through Sidon to the Sea of Galilee. Mk 9:30, 33: And they went forth
+from thence (i. e. from Cæsarea Philippi) and wandered through Galilee
+and came to Capernaum. At the end of one narrative series one finds
+oneself again at the beginning of the other. Hence if one connect the
+one return from the north with the beginning of the other narrative
+series, one has, superficially viewed, a perfectly natural
+continuation,—only that Jesus must now, incomprehensibly enough, start
+back immediately for the north, instead of the return to Galilee being
+a stage on the journey to Jerusalem! This is the order that was
+finally followed, but it is only in the second return that the
+narrative finds a point of attachment for the journey to Jerusalem.
+
+This return movement in both series accounts for the fact that the two
+narratives, though they are really parallel cycles, are yet attached
+to one another in chronological sequence. The present text has
+completed the process of harmonising them. It is not simply that the
+story of the second feeding of [pg 167] the multitude makes reference
+to the first in the word “again” (Mk 8:1): the reconciliation is in
+fact carried so far that Jesus in one word addressed to the Disciples
+assumes both miracles (Mk 8:19-21)! How far this process was already
+accomplished in the oral tradition, and how much is to be charged to
+the account of the final literary composition, is a question which we
+are no longer in a position to answer.
+
+Only the first cycle is complete. Jesus and his Disciples travel by
+boat north-east along the coast and return then again to the country
+of Genezareth (Mk 6:32, 45, 53).
+
+The second cycle is incomplete and fallen somewhat into disorder.
+Jesus is back on the west coast after his voyage. Mk 8:10 ff.
+corresponds with Mk 6:53 ff. and Mk 7:1 ff. Dalmanutha lies on the
+west coast. But instead of his departing now directly for the north,
+there comes first another voyage to the east coast (Mk 8:13). It is
+not till they reach Bethsaida that he starts with his Disciples
+northward (Mk 8:27). The first cycle on the other hand relates _this
+voyage to Bethsaida as an episode of the famous coasting voyage and
+places it immediately after the feeding of the multitude_ (Mk 6:45
+ff[.]). And as a matter of fact the second narrative series also shows
+[pg 168] that this was the original connection. For here, too, as in
+the first series, the conversation upon landing deals with the
+foregoing miracle. Mk 6:52: “For they understood not concerning the
+loaves, but their heart was hardened.” Mk 8:19-21: “When I brake the
+five loaves—when the seven—do ye not yet understand?” It is therefore
+impossible that between this voyage and the feeding of the multitude
+all the events were crowded which were enacted upon the west shore.
+The minds of all are still full of the great event. The new sea
+journey of the second cycle is nothing else but the original
+continuation of the voyage to Bethsaida from the scene of the feeding
+of the multitude.
+
+Therewith the parallelism of the two series is proven. The events
+follow one another in this order: coasting voyage from the west shore,
+feeding of the multitude, continuation of the voyage to the
+north-east, “walking upon the sea” and conversation in the boat,
+arrival at Bethsaida, return to the region of Genezareth, discussion
+with the Pharisees, departure with the Disciples to the north.
+
+2. The Supper by the Seashore.
+
+The Disciples’ proclamation of the immediate approach of the Kingdom
+must have [pg 169] had a great success. A mighty multitude of such as
+believed the message crowded around Jesus. He had about him a
+community inspired by the most lively eschatological expectation. They
+would not let go of him. In order to be alone with his Disciples he
+embarks in a boat. He meant to withdraw to the north-east shore. But
+the people, when they learned that he would take himself away,
+streamed together from all sides and followed him along the beach. Mk
+6:32, 33: “For there were many coming and going, and they had no
+leisure so much as to eat. And they went away in a boat to a desert
+place apart. And the people saw them going, and many knew them, and
+they ran there together on foot from all the cities and outwent them.”
+
+They meet him in a lonely region and immediately surround him. The
+hour comes for the daily meal. In the accounts of the following
+miracle the meal which they celebrated is preserved to us. _The
+occasion was a solemn cultus-meal!_ After the loaves which he had
+broken were consecrated by a prayer of thanksgiving Jesus has them
+distributed to the multitude by his Disciples. Except for the addition
+of the two parables [“My body—my blood”] we have absolutely the same
+solemn ceremony at the Last Supper. [pg 170] There he personally
+distributed the food to his table-companions. The description of the
+distribution of the bread in the two cases corresponds perfectly. Mk
+6:41: He took the loaves, and looking up to heaven, he blessed them,
+and he gave to the Disciples to set before them. Mk 14:22: He took a
+loaf, and when he had blessed, he brake it, and gave to them.
+
+Hence the _solemn act of distribution_ constitutes the essence, as
+well of that meal by the seashore, as of the last meal with his
+Disciples. The “Lord’s Supper” is a name appropriate to both, for that
+meal by the sea also took place at the evening hour. Mk 6:35: And when
+the day was now far spent his Disciples came to him, etc. Here the
+table-company is composed of the great multitude of believers in the
+Kingdom: at the Last Supper it was limited to the circle of the
+Disciples. _The celebration, however, was the same._
+
+The story of this event has been distorted into a miracle: the
+cultus-meal which Jesus improvised by the seashore has been
+represented as a hearty and filling supper. That the scanty provision
+which was at hand, the food designed for himself and his Disciples,
+was solemnly distributed to the people is historic. [pg 171] That this
+meal took the place of the evening repast likewise corresponds with
+the fact. But that through a supernatural process the multitude was
+_filled_ by it,—that belongs to the miraculous character which the
+later age ascribed to the celebration because its significance could
+not be apprehended.
+
+The historical procedure is the following: The Disciples ask Jesus to
+send the people away that they may be fed. For him, however, it is not
+an appropriate moment to think of an earthly meal and so to disperse,
+for the hour is near when they shall all be gathered about him at the
+messianic banquet. Hence he would not have them go yet, but before he
+dismisses them he commands them to recline as at table. In place of
+the full meal he introduces a ceremonial meal, in which the
+satisfaction of earthly appetite has no part, so that the food
+intended for himself and his Disciples sufficed for all.
+
+Neither the Disciples nor the multitude understand what goes on. As
+Jesus afterwards in the boat directs the conversation to the
+significance of the meal—this alone can be the historical meaning of
+the obscure intimations of Mk 6:52 and Mk 8:14-21, it appears that the
+Disciples have understood nothing.
+
+He celebrated, therefore, a sacred cultus-meal [pg 172] the meaning of
+which was clear to him alone. He did not count it necessary to explain
+to them the meaning of the ceremony. The memory, however, of that
+mysterious supper on the lonely seashore lived on vividly in the
+tradition and grew to the account of the miraculous feeding. Wherein
+did the solemnity of this distribution consist for Jesus? The
+gathering at the feast is of an eschatological character. The people
+that gathered about him by the seaside were awaiting with him the dawn
+of the Kingdom. In replacing now the customary full meal with a sacred
+ceremonial meal, at which he distributed food with thanksgiving to
+God, he acted at the prompting of his messianic consciousness. _As one
+who knew himself to be the Messiah, and would be manifested to them as
+such at the imminent dawn of the Kingdom, he distributes, to those
+whom he expects soon to join him at the messianic banquet, sacred
+food, as though he would give them therewith an earnest of their
+participation in that future solemnity._ The time for earthly meals is
+passed: hence he celebrates with them a foretaste of the messianic
+banquet. They, however, understood it not, for they could not guess
+that he who distributed to them such consecrated eucharistic [pg 173]
+food was conscious of being the Messiah and acted as such.
+
+In this connection there falls a light upon the nature of the Last
+Supper at Jerusalem. There the Disciples represented the community of
+believers in the Kingdom. In the course of that last meal Jesus
+distributed to them with a word of thanksgiving food and drink. But
+now they know what he assumes to be: he had disclosed to them the
+secret of his messiahship. From this they are able to divine in his
+distribution the reference to the messianic banquet. He himself gave
+this significance to his action in the fact that he concluded the
+ceremony with a hint of their proximate reunion when he should drink
+the wine new with them in his Father’s Kingdom!
+
+The supper by the seaside and the supper at Jerusalem therefore
+correspond completely, except that in the latter Jesus signified to
+his Disciples the nature of the ceremony and at the same time
+expresses the thought of the Passion in the two parables [“My body— my
+blood”]. The cultus-meal was the same: a foretaste of the messianic
+banquet in the circle of the fellowship of the believers in the
+Kingdom. _Now for the first time one is able to understand how the
+nature [pg 174] of the Last Supper can be independent of the two
+parables._
+
+3. The Week at Bethsaida.
+
+During the ceremony Jesus was deeply moved. For this reason he urged
+immediate departure and dismissed the people. He himself withdrew to a
+mountain in order to be alone in prayer. On the beach at Bethsaida,
+whither he had charged them to row, he again met his Disciples. They,
+battling with wind and wave, had the illusion that a supernatural
+apparition approached them as they descried his figure on the beach.
+They still were so much under the influence of the impression lately
+made upon them by the mighty personality who with mysterious majesty
+had distributed to the multitude sacred food and then had suddenly
+broken off the ceremony (Mk 6:45-52).
+
+Whither had he sent away the multitude? What did they do at Bethsaida?
+How long did they stay there? Our text merely recounts that they
+returned again to Genezareth.
+
+At this point, however, we encounter a difficult literary problem, in
+the Synoptical narrative of the period immediately preceding the
+departure for Jerusalem (Mk 9:30). [pg 175] According to Mk 8:27-33,
+Jesus is now alone with his Disciples far away in the north, in
+heathen territory,—from which point also he sets out on the rapid
+march through Galilee to Jerusalem (Mk 9:30 ff.): “And they went forth
+from thence and passed through Galilee, and he would not that any man
+should know it.” Between the disclosure of his messiahship and this
+departure there intervenes only one scene (Mk 8:34- 9:29), where he
+appears surrounded by a great multitude of people. In company with the
+three intimate Disciples he leaves the multitude, only to return to
+them shortly again. It is nowhere recounted how this multitude
+suddenly gets to him in heathen territory. And just as little are we
+informed how it leaves him again, so that (according to Mk 9:30 ff.)
+he can march through Galilee alone with his Disciples and
+unrecognised.
+
+But it is not only the multitude that appears unexpectedly: the whole
+scenery also is altered. One finds oneself in a familiar region, for
+Jesus enters with his Disciples “into the house,” while the people
+stay without (Mk 9:28)!
+
+The literary context in which the section stands is absolutely
+impossible, for this cannot have been enacted in _heathen territory,_
+[pg 176] but only in _Galilee!_ But as Jesus subsequently had only a
+fleeting contact with Galilee, passing through it incognito, this
+piece belongs in the Galilean period _before the departure for the
+north, and more precisely, at the time of the return of the
+Disciples,_ for it is then that he was constantly surrounded by a
+throng of people and was seeking to be in solitude with his Disciples!
+
+The situation, however may confidently be defined with still greater
+exactness. Jesus dwelt in a village (Mk 9:28) in the neighbourhood of
+which there was a mountain to which he betook himself with the three
+Disciples (Mk 9:2). All this agrees, however, most certainly with the
+sojourn in _Bethsaida._ The mountain which he seeks with the Three is
+_the mountain on the north shore of the lake where he prayed in the
+night when he came to Bethsaida!_
+
+The passage Mk 8:34- 9:29 belongs therefore in the days at Bethsaida!
+It is no longer possible to make out by what process it came into the
+present impossible context. The adoption of the present order may have
+been prompted in part by the consideration that the impressive word
+about the obligation of following Jesus in suffering (Mk 8:34- 9:1)
+seemed to form a most natural conclusion to [pg 177] the prediction of
+the Passion at Cæsarea Philippi (Mk 8:31-33).
+
+Moreover the transformation of the account of Jesus meeting his
+Disciples at their landing into a miracle made it difficult to effect
+a natural connection with the events which occurred the following
+morning. And yet Mk 8:34 ff. may fairly be said to imply such measures
+as were adopted the evening before (Mk 6:45-47). Jesus had dismissed
+the people, had himself retired to solitude, and while it was yet
+night had overtaken his Disciples at Bethsaida, where they found
+lodging in a house (Mk 9:28). The next day he calls the people about
+him with the Disciples (Mk 8:34) and speaks to them about the
+requirement of self-denial on the part of his followers, readiness to
+endure shame, scorn, ridicule, rather than prove untrue to him. This
+conduct is justified by the nearness of the coming of the Son of Man,
+who will perform judgment in the person of Jesus.
+
+This admonition concludes with a word about “the coming of the Kingdom
+of God with power,” i. e. the eschatological realisation of it. In its
+present form it is toned down: some of them that stand by shall not
+taste of death till that moment arrive. As the conclusion of this
+address, however, it [pg 178] must have run: Ye who stand here shall
+soon experience the great moment of the mighty dawn of the Kingdom of
+God! Thus this earnest address at Bethsaida reflects the expectations
+which stirred Jesus and the throng about him.
+
+Six days after that address at Bethsaida Jesus took with him the Three
+and led them to the mountain where he had prayed in solitude at
+evening after the great cultus-meal in common. At their return they
+find the other Disciples surrounded by the people. In spite of the
+authority over demons of which they had made proof during their
+progress through the cities of Israel, they were now not able to
+master a demoniac boy who was brought to them. Jesus takes the father
+and boy apart. The very moment that the people come running together
+(Mk 9:25-27) the crisis begins, after which Jesus takes by the hand
+the lad, who was lying as dead, and raises him up.
+
+This passage, therefore, which has been wrested so strangely out of
+its connection, contains a striking account of the first and last days
+of the week which Jesus passed in Bethsaida between the return of the
+Disciples and the departure for the north.
+
+It will now be perfectly clear how unhistoric [pg 179] is the view
+that Jesus left Galilee in consequence of growing opposition and
+spreading defection. On the contrary, this is the period of his
+highest triumph. A multitude of people with faith in the Kingdom
+thronged him and pursued him everywhere. Hardly has he landed upon the
+west coast but they are already there. Their number has grown still
+greater and increases more and more (Mk 6:53-56). That they deserted
+him, that they even showed the least motion of doubt or defection, the
+texts give no intimation. _It was not the people that deserted Jesus
+but Jesus that deserted the people._
+
+This he did, not out of any fear of the emissaries from Jerusalem, but
+only as carrying out what he already had in mind since the return of
+the Disciples. He wishes to be alone. The people had defeated this aim
+by following him along the shore as he sailed. When he had returned to
+the west coast he found himself again surrounded. Because he felt it
+absolutely necessary to be alone with the Disciples, and because he
+was not able to effect this purpose in Galilee, for this cause he
+suddenly vanished and betook himself into heathen territory. _The
+journey into the north country is not a flight, rather it has the same
+motive as the voyage on the lake._
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 180]
+
+CHAPTER VIII
+
+THE SECRET OF MESSIAHSHIP
+
+
+1. From the Mount of Transfiguration to Cæsarea Philippi
+
+COMING after Cæsarea Philippi the Transfiguration is an obscure
+episode devoid of historical significance. The Three learn no more
+about Jesus than Peter had already confessed in the presence of the
+Twelve and Jesus himself had confirmed. Thus the whole section is
+plainly an intrusion: the apotheosis and obscure dialogue have no
+historical significance.
+
+If, however, as has been proved above by literary evidence, this scene
+was enacted some weeks after the mission of the Twelve and _before_
+Cæsarea Philippi—not upon the mountain of the legend, but on the
+mountain in the lonely region by the seashore near Bethsaida,—then we
+behold an idle addendum transformed at one stroke into a Galilean
+occurrence of far reaching historical importance, which explains the
+scene at Cæsarea Philippi, and not vice versa. What we call [pg 181]
+the Transfiguration is in reality nothing else but the revelation of
+the secret of messiahship to the Three. A few weeks later comes then
+its disclosure to the Twelve.
+
+This revelation to the Three is handed down to us in the form of a
+miracle-tale. It has undergone the same transformation as have all the
+incidents of that voyage along the north coast. The scene on the
+mountain, like the feeding of the multitude and the encounter of Jesus
+with his disciples at dusk, bears evident marks of the intense
+eschatological excitement of the moment. For this reason the
+historical facts are no longer clear in detail. There appear unto them
+Moses and Elijah, the two characters most prominently associated with
+the expectation of the last times. To what extent may ecstatic
+conditions, and perhaps glossolalia, have contributed to this
+experience? The present form of the story permits us to infer
+something of the sort (Mk 9:2-6). Does the voice out of the cloud (Mk
+9:7, “This is my beloved Son, hear ye him”) repeat in some sort Jesus’
+experience at his baptism?
+
+There is in fact an inward connection between the Baptism and the
+Transfiguration. In both cases a condition of ecstasy accompanies the
+revelation of the secret of Jesus’ [pg 182] person. The first time the
+revelation was for him alone; here the Disciples also share it. It is
+not clear to what extent they themselves were transported by the
+experience. So much is sure, that in a dazed condition, out of which
+they awake only at the end of the scene (Mk 9:8), the figure of Jesus
+appears to them illuminated by a supernatural light and glory, and a
+voice intimates that he is the Son of God. The occurrence can be
+explained only as the outcome of great eschatological excitement.
+
+It is remarkable that the revelation of the secret of Jesus’
+messiahship appears always to be connected with such conditions. At
+Pentecost, when Peter openly proclaimed Jesus as the Christ, we have
+an example of glossolalia. Peter, to be sure, had already had a taste
+of such an experience as the revelation was made to him on the
+mountain near Bethsaida. Paul also was in a state of ecstasy when he
+heard the voice before the Damascus gate.
+
+It has been shown above that no one could conclude from Jesus’ speech
+or behaviour that he regards himself as the Messiah. Properly the
+question is not, how the people could remain ignorant of Jesus’
+messianic claim, but how Peter at Cæsarea Philippi [pg 183] and the
+High Priest at the trial could come into possession of this secret.
+
+The Transfiguration answers the first question. Peter knew that Jesus
+is the “Son of God” through the revelation which he in common with the
+two other Disciples received on the mountain near Bethsaida. For this
+reason he answered the question with such confidence (Mk 8:29). The
+text of St. Matthew’s Gospel records an additional saying of Jesus
+which seems to allude to the very experience in which this knowledge
+was supernaturally imparted to Peter: “Blessed art thou, Simon
+Bar-Jonah: for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but my
+Father which is in heaven” (Mt 16:17).
+
+Moreover, the scene which follows upon Peter’s answer clearly has to
+do with a secret common to him and to Jesus. When Jesus disclosed that
+he must die in Jerusalem Peter turns upon him impetuously, takes him
+apart, and speaks to him in excited tones. As Jesus sees that the
+other Disciples are attentive he abruptly turns away from Peter with a
+sharp word, calling him the Tempter, who minds not the things of God
+but the things of men (Mk 8:32 and 8:33).
+
+Why this agitation of Peter over Jesus’ disclosure about the fatal
+journey to Jerusalem? [pg 184] Because it comes as a new factor, above
+and beyond what was disclosed on the mountain near Bethsaida. About
+that experience he dare not speak in the presence of the other
+Disciples, because Jesus had forbidden it. For this reason he takes
+Jesus apart. Jesus, however, seeing that the other Disciples are
+listening, cannot explain matters to him, and so with passionate
+abruptness enjoins silence.
+
+Only the connection with the foregoing Transfiguration explains the
+characteristic traits of the scene at Cæsarea Philippi. Psychological
+observations about the quick apprehension and lively temperament of
+Peter—the common expedients of modern interpretation—do not in fact
+begin to explain why he alone should arrive with such confidence at
+the knowledge of Jesus’ messiahship, only to fall a moment later into
+such misunderstanding that he gets into an excited dispute with Jesus.
+Why do they both go apart together? Why, instead of instructing him,
+does Jesus leave him there with a hard word of rebuke?
+
+Taken by itself the whole scene at Cæsarea Philippi is an enigma. If,
+however, we assume that the Transfiguration preceded it, the enigma is
+solved and the scene is illuminated [pg 185] down to the smallest
+details. The revelation to the Twelve was preceded by the disclosure
+to the Three of the secret of Jesus’ messiahship.
+
+2. The Futuristic Character of Jesus’ Messiahship.
+
+Meanwhile the revelation of the secret of his messiahship alters
+nothing in the behaviour of the Disciples to Jesus. They do not sink
+before him in the dust as if now the man whom they had known was
+become a superhuman being. They only manifest in consequence of this
+revelation a certain awe. They dare not interrogate him when they fail
+to understand his words (Mk 9:32), and as they company with him they
+appear to be aware that he carries within him a great secret.
+
+Are we to imagine then that after this revelation of his secret Jesus
+was henceforth regarded by his disciples as the Messiah? No, _not yet_
+was he the Messiah. It must constantly be kept in mind that the
+Kingdom and the Messiah are correlative terms which belong inseparably
+together. Now if the Kingdom was not yet come, neither was the
+Messiah. Jesus’ disclosure had reference to the time of the dawning of
+the Kingdom. When [pg 186] that hour shall strike, then shall he
+appear as Messiah, then shall his messiahship be revealed in glory.
+Such was the secret which he solemnly made known to his disciples.
+
+Jesus’ messiahship was a secret, not merely because he had forbidden
+it to be spoken, but in its very nature it was a secret, inasmuch as
+it could be realised only at a definite time in the future. It was a
+conception which could be formulated fully only in his own
+consciousness. Wherefore the people could not understand it—and need
+not know anything about it. It was enough if by his word and his signs
+he might convert them to faith in the nearness of the kingdom, for
+with the coming of the Kingdom his messiahship would be manifest.
+
+It is almost impossible to express in modern terms the consciousness
+of messiahship which Jesus imparted as a secret to his Disciples.
+Whether we describe it as an identity between him and the Son of Man
+who is to appear, whether we express it as a continuity which unites
+both personalities, or think of it as virtually a pre-existent
+messiahship,—none of these modern conceptions can render the
+consciousness of Jesus as the Disciples understood it.
+
+What we lack is the “Now and Then” [pg 187] which dominated their
+thinking and which explains a curious duality of consciousness that
+was characteristic of them. What we might call identity, continuity,
+and potentiality was in their mind confounded in a conception which
+quite eludes our grasp. Every person figured himself in two entirely
+different states, according as he thought of himself now, in the
+pre-messianic age, or then in the messianic. Expressions which we
+interpret only in accordance with our unity of consciousness, they
+referred as a matter of course to the double consciousness familiar to
+them. Therefore when Jesus revealed to them the secret of his
+messiahship, that did not mean to them that he is the Messiah, as we
+moderns must understand it; rather it signified for them that their
+Lord and Master was the one who in the messianic age would be revealed
+as Messiah.
+
+They think of themselves also in terms of this double consciousness.
+As often as Jesus made known to them the necessity of his suffering
+before entering upon his rule they questioned within themselves what
+manner of persons they should be in the coming age. Wherefore,
+following upon the prophecies of the Passion we find rivalry among the
+Disciples as to which shall be the greatest in the [pg 188] Kingdom,
+or to whom shall be accorded the seats of honour on either side of the
+throne. In the meanwhile, however, they remain what they are, and
+Jesus remains what he is, their Teacher and Master. The sons of
+Zebedee address him as “Master” (Mk 10:35). As Teacher they expect him
+to give promise and assurance of what shall come to pass when the
+Kingdom dawns and his messiahship is revealed.
+
+In this sense, then, Jesus’ messianic consciousness is futuristic.
+There was nothing strange in this either for him or for his Disciples.
+On the contrary, it corresponded exactly to the Jewish conception of
+the hidden life and labour of the Messiah. (Cf. Weber: _System der
+altsynagogalen Theologie,_ 1880, pp. 342-446). The course of Jesus’
+earthly life preceded his messiahship in glory. The Messiah in his
+earthly estate must live and labour unrecognised, he must teach, and
+through deed and suffering he must be made perfect in righteousness.
+Not till then shall the messianic age dawn with the Last Judgment and
+the establishment of the Kingdom. The Messiah must come from the
+north. Jesus’ march from Cæsarea Philippi to Jerusalem was the
+progress of the unrecognised Messiah to his triumph in glory.
+
+[pg 189]
+
+Thus in the midst of the messianic expectation of his people stood
+Jesus as the Messiah that is to be. He dare not reveal himself to
+them, for the season of his hidden labour was not yet over. Hence he
+preached the near approach of the Kingdom of God.
+
+It was this futuristic consciousness of messiahship which prompted
+Jesus in the Temple to touch upon the messianic dogma of the Scribes,
+as though he would call their attention to the secret which lurks
+behind it. The Pharisees say, “The Messiah is David’s Son;” but David
+calls him his Lord. How can he still be his Son (Mk 12:35-37)?
+
+The Messiah is David’s Son—that is, subordinate to him—since in this
+era he is born of human parentage and lives and labours in obscurity.
+David’s Lord, because at the dawn of the coming era he will be
+revealed as Christ in glory. Jesus has no notion of impeaching the
+pharisaic dogma. It is correct, the Scripture so teaches. Only, the
+Pharisees themselves cannot properly interpret their dogma, and so
+cannot explain how the Messiah can be in one instance David’s Son and
+in another, David’s Lord.
+
+This saying of Jesus to the people in the Temple—(only Matthew has
+made of [pg 190] it an embarrassing polemic)—is on a line with his
+utterance about the Baptist. Whoever could apprehend with what
+authority John baptised—that is, with the power and authority of
+Elijah,—whoever could understand how the Messiah could be in one
+instance David’s son, in another David’s Lord,—he must know also who
+_he_ is that so speaks. He that hath ears to hear, let him hear!
+
+3. The Son of Man and the Futuristic Character of Jesus’ Messiahship.
+
+The expression “Son of David” contains an enigma. Therefore Jesus
+never used it in speaking of his messiahship, but always refers to
+himself as the “Son of Man.” Consequently this designation must have
+been peculiarly apt as a rendering of his messianic consciousness.
+
+It is evident that he chose this term deliberately. Every other
+messianic designation that is applied to him he corrects and
+interprets by “Son of Man.”
+
+As they descend from the mountain where the Disciples had come to
+recognise him as the Son of God he speaks of himself as the “Son of
+Man” (Mk 9:7-9).
+
+Peter proclaimed him before the others as “the Anointed one” (Mk
+8:29). Jesus immediately [pg 191] proceeds to instruct them about the
+fate of the “Son of Man” (Mk 8:31).
+
+“Art thou the Christ the Son of the Blessed?” the High Priest asked
+him (Mk 14:61). “Ye shall see the Son of Man sitting at the right hand
+of power and coming with the clouds of heaven,” is Jesus’ answer. That
+signifies, Yes. The same expression occurs in the second and in the
+third prophecy of the Passion (Mk 9:30-32 and Mk 10:32-34) and in the
+saying about serving (Mk 10:45).
+
+The messianic title “Son of Man” is futuristic in character. It refers
+to the moment in which the Messiah shall come upon the clouds of
+heaven for judgment. From the beginning this was the sense in which
+Jesus had used the expression, whether in speaking to the people or to
+the Disciples. In sending out his Apostles he warned them of the
+impending approach of the day of the Son of Man (Mt 10:23). He spoke
+to the people of the coming of the Son of Man as an exhortation to be
+faithful to him, Jesus (Mk 8:38).
+
+Withal, he and the Son of Man remain for the people and for the
+Disciples two entirely distinct personalities. The one is a
+terrestrial, the other a celestial figure; the one belongs to the age
+that now is, the other to the messianic period. Between the two there
+exists [pg 192] solidarity, inasmuch as the Son of Man will intervene
+in behalf of such as have ranged themselves on the side of Jesus, the
+herald of his coming.
+
+These are the passages one must take as the point of departure in
+order to understand the significance of this expression in Jesus’
+mouth. Jesus and the Son of Man are different persons for such as do
+not know his secret. They, however, to whom he has revealed his secret
+are aware of a personal connection between the two. Jesus it is who at
+the messianic day shall appear as the Son of Man. The revelation at
+Cæsarea Philippi consists in this, that Jesus reveals to his Disciples
+in what personal relationship he stands to the coming Son of Man. As
+the one who is to be the Son of Man he can confirm Peter’s confession
+of him as the Messiah. His reply to the High Priest is affirmative in
+the same sense. He is the Messiah—that they will see when he appears
+as the Son of Man upon the clouds of heaven.
+
+“Son of Man” is accordingly the adequate expression of his
+messiahship, so long as he, in this earthly æon as Jesus of Nazareth,
+has occasion to refer to his future dignity. Hence when he speaks to
+the Disciples about himself as the Son of Man he assumes this [pg 193]
+duality of consciousness. “The Son of Man must suffer and will then
+rise from the dead:” that is to say, “As the one who is to be Son of
+Man at the resurrection of the dead I must suffer.” To the same effect
+we must understand the word about serving: As the one who in the
+character of the Son of Man is destined to the highest rule I must now
+humble myself to the lowliest service (Mk 10:45). Therefore he says
+when they come to arrest him: The hour is come in the which he who is
+to be the Son of Man must be delivered into the hands of sinners (Mk
+14:21, 41).
+
+The problem about the Son of Man is herewith elucidated. It was not an
+expression which Jesus commonly used to describe himself, but a solemn
+title which he adopted when in the great moments of his life he spoke
+about himself to the initiated as the future Messiah, while before the
+others he spoke of the Son of Man as a personality distinct from
+himself. In all cases, however, the context shows that he is speaking
+of one who is yet to come, for in all these passages mention is made
+either of the Resurrection or of the appearing upon the clouds of
+heaven. The philological objections do not therefore apply here.
+Initiated and uninitiated must understand from the situation that he
+is speaking [pg 194] of a definite personality of the future,—and not
+of man in general, even though the expression in both cases would be
+the same.
+
+The case is entirely different with another set of passages where the
+expression occurs arbitrarily as a pure self-designation, a roundabout
+way of saying “I.” Here all critical and philological objections are
+thoroughly in place.
+
+Mt 8:20,—The Son of Man hath not where to lay his head.
+Mt 11:19,—The Son of Man is come eating and drinking (in contrast to
+ the Baptist).
+Mt 12:32,—Blasphemy against the Holy Spirit is a worse crime than
+ speaking evil of the Son of Man.
+Mt 12:40,—The Son of Man will be three days in the earth, like Jonah
+ in the belly of the fish.
+Mt 13:37, 41,—The Son of Man is the Sower; the Son of Man is the
+ lord of the reapers.
+Mt 16:13,—Who do the people say that the Son of Man is?
+
+Here the expression is philologically impossible. For if Jesus had so
+used it, his hearers must simply have understood him to [pg 195] mean
+“man.” There is nothing here to indicate that the word is meant to
+express a future messianic dignity! Here in fact he designates by it
+his actual present condition! But “Son of Man” is a messianic title of
+futuristic character, since it always suggests a coming upon the
+clouds, according to Daniel 7:13-14. Furthermore, in all of these
+passages the Disciples are as yet ignorant of Jesus’ secret. For them
+the Son of Man is still an entirely distinct person. The unity of the
+subject is still completely unknown to them. Therefore they were not
+in a position to understand that by this term he refers to himself,
+but they must refer everything to that Son of Man of whose coming he
+also spoke elsewhere. Therewith, however, the passages would be
+meaningless, for they imply that Jesus is thus speaking of himself.
+
+Historically and philologically it is therefore impossible that Jesus
+could have employed the expression as a purposeless and matter of
+course self-designation. Even as a self-designation referable to the
+future messianic dignity that was to be his, only they could
+understand it who knew his secret. Hence all the passages are
+unhistorical in which, _previous to Cæsarea Philippi_ (or, for the
+Three, previous to the Transfiguration), [pg 196] he designates
+_himself_ as Son of Man. Only those in that period are historical in
+which he speaks of the Son of Man as a figure yet to come, not
+identical with himself (Mt 10:23 and Mk 8:38). The passages cited
+above, in which the expression is used without its proper significance
+as a mere self-designation, are therefore not historical, but are
+comprehensible only as the result of a literary process. How does it
+come about that a later period of Gospel composition regarded this
+expression as “Jesus’ self-designation”?
+
+This was due to a shifting of the perspective. It is observable from
+the moment when men began to write the history of Jesus upon the
+assumption that on earth he was already the Messiah. From that time on
+men lost consciousness of the fact that for the earthly existence of
+Jesus his very messiahship was something future, and that by the very
+expression Son of Man he designated himself as the future Messiah.
+Since, then, it was an historic fact that he spoke of himself as the
+Son of Man, the writers appropriated this emphatic term and without
+suspecting that it was appropriate only in certain sayings and in
+definite situations, they employed it indifferently in any passage
+where Jesus spoke of himself,—and thereby [pg 197] created these
+philological and historical impossibilities.
+
+This erroneous use was due therefore to a literary development of
+markedly secondary character. In this respect it was like the
+unhistorical use of the expression “Son of David” by Matthew. It
+agrees thereto that the “Son of Man” passages here in question belong
+likewise to a secondary stratum of St. Matthew’s Gospel.
+
+What chiefly reveals their secondary character is: the transformation
+of the simple question asked at Cæsarea Philippi (Mt 16:13); the
+application of the parable of the sower (Mt 13:37, 41); and the false
+interpretation of the saying about Jonah (Mt 12:40).
+
+No less secondary is the formulation of the speech about the sin
+against the Holy Ghost, where a contrast is drawn between blasphemy
+against the Holy Ghost and against the Son of Man (Mt 12:32), whereas
+in Jesus’ thought both came to the same thing, since it was a question
+of conscious hardening against the power of the coming Kingdom which
+worked in him. In the passages Mt 8:20 and Mt 11:19 the expression is
+arbitrarily used, for Jesus merely wishes to say: _I_ have nowhere to
+lay my head; and, _I_ eat and drink, in contrast to the ascetic
+practice of the Baptist.
+
+[pg 198]
+
+It is quite a different case which is presented by the two
+unhistorical “Son of Man” passages in St. Mark’s Gospel.
+
+Mk 2:10—The Son of Man hath authority to forgive sins upon earth.
+Mk 2:28—The Son of Man is lord of the Sabbath.
+
+The secondary character appears in the fact that Jesus is supposed to
+have used the expression here as a self-designation. The historical
+fact is that he used it in that connection in the third person,
+referring either to the Son of Man as an eschatological figure, or to
+man in general. In either case it makes sense.
+
+1. Man as such can by works of healing declare the forgiveness of sins
+upon earth.
+
+Man as man is lord of the Sabbath.
+
+2. In view of the coming of the Son of Man forgiveness of sins is
+already available, as the works of healing show.
+
+In view of the coming of the Son of Man a higher factor already
+emerges to modify the legalistic observance of the Sabbath.
+
+The Law yields to something higher. The case of David shows it.
+
+However one may explain these passages, [pg 199] one thing is clear:
+the expression did actually occur here and did somehow modify Jesus’
+statement. The only secondary trait appears in the use of the
+expression as a self-designation, whereas in fact Jesus spoke of man
+in general or of the Son of Man. These passages, therefore, are on the
+threshold between the historical and the literary-unhistorical use of
+the name “Son of Man.”
+
+We can now understand the peculiar difficulty of the “Son of Man”
+problem. Hitherto, the deeper the investigation went, so much the
+further the solution seemed to recede. This was due to the fact that
+no amount of reflection could effect the separation of passages of
+such unequal worth. Thus the literary and historical sides of the
+problem remained confounded with one another. The moment, however, the
+discovery is made, from the study of Jesus’ messianic consciousness,
+that the expression Son of Man is the only one by which he could utter
+the secret of his future dignity, the separation is given. All those
+passages are historical which show the influence of the apocalyptic
+reference to the Son of Man in Daniel: all are unhistorical in which
+such is not the case. At the same time the shifting of the perspective
+explains why for writers of a later generation this [pg 200]
+expression in Jesus’ mouth could have only the significance of an
+arbitrary self-designation, appropriate in all situations where he
+spoke of himself.
+
+Finally, the last enigma is also solved. Why does the expression
+disappear from the language of the primitive Church? Why does no one
+(with exception of Acts 7:56) designate the Messiah by the title Son
+of Man, notwithstanding that Jesus had used it exclusively to indicate
+his dignity? This is due to the fact that “Son of Man” was the
+messianic expression for a clearly defined episode of the messianic
+drama. The Messiah was the Son of Man in the moment of his
+manifestation upon the clouds of heaven to reign in judgment over the
+world. Jesus thought exclusively of that moment, since only from that
+moment on was he for men the Messiah. The primitive Church, however,
+seeing that a transitional period intervened, beheld Jesus as the
+Messiah in heaven above at the right hand of God. He was already the
+Messiah and did not have to become such at the moment of the appearing
+of the Son of Man. Because the perspective was shifted here also, one
+used the general expression “Messiah” instead of the title “Son of
+Man” which pointed to a particular scene.
+
+[pg 201]
+
+Jesus would have expressed himself inaccurately had he said, I am the
+Messiah,—for that he was to be only when he appeared in glory as the
+Son of Man.
+
+The primitive Church would have expressed itself inaccurately had it
+said, Jesus is the Son of Man,—for after the Resurrection he was the
+Messiah at the right hand of God, whose coming as Son of Man the
+Church expected.
+
+4. The Resurrection of the Dead and the Futuristic Character of Jesus’
+Messiahship.
+
+What is the significance of the resurrection-prophecies? It seems to
+us hard to admit that Jesus could have foretold so precisely an event
+of that sort. It seems much more plausible to suppose that general
+utterances of his about a glory that awaited him were editorially
+transformed _ex eventu_ into predictions of the Resurrection.
+
+Such criticism is in place so long as one holds the view that the
+prophecy of the Resurrection referred to an isolated event in the
+personal history of Jesus. So it appears, however, only to our modern
+consciousness, because we think uneschatologically even in the matter
+of the Resurrection. For Jesus and his Disciples, on the other hand,
+the [pg 202] Resurrection which he spoke about had an entirely
+different significance. It was a messianic event which signified the
+dawn of the full glory that was to come. We must eliminate from the
+Resurrection predicted by Jesus all modern notions suggestive of an
+apotheosis. The contemporary consciousness understood this
+“Restoration” (Acts 3:21) as a revelation of Jesus’ messiahship at the
+dawn of the Kingdom. Therefore when Jesus spoke of his resurrection
+the Disciples thought of the great messianic Resurrection in which he
+as the Messiah would be raised from the dead.
+
+The conversation during the descent from the mountain of
+Transfiguration is decisive on this point. Jesus spoke then for the
+first time to his most intimate disciples of “the resurrection of the
+Son of Man from the dead” (Mk 9:9). They, however, were quite unable
+to think of “the resurrection of the Son of man” apart from the
+messianic Resurrection. Their attention was entirely occupied with the
+messianic event which Jesus’ words suggested to them. They question
+therefore among themselves about the Resurrection of the dead. What
+should that mean (Mk 9:10)? That is to say, the conditions thereof, so
+far as they can see, are not yet [pg 203] fulfilled. Elijah is not yet
+come (Mk 9:11). Jesus puts their minds at rest with the hint that
+Elijah had already appeared though men did not recognise him. He means
+the Baptist (Mk 9:12-13).
+
+This conversation, in which otherwise it is impossible to detect at
+all any reasonable sequence of thought, becomes perfectly transparent
+and natural the moment it is noticed how the Disciples are unable to
+think of the resurrection which Jesus’ words suggest except in the
+same thought with the general messianic Resurrection. Therefore this
+talk during the descent from the mountain throws a clear light upon
+Jesus’ later prophecies of his Passion and Resurrection, because we
+are here in a position to observe the thoughts and questions which
+these words awaken in the hearts of the Disciples. Moreover this
+“resurrection prophecy” lacks the mention of the three days which
+furnishes precisely the occasion for the critical attitude toward the
+subsequent prophecies of the Passion. In this respect the prediction
+during the descent agrees thoroughly with the last utterance before
+the High Priest. Both lack the definite indication of the time when
+the Resurrection or the appearing upon the clouds of heaven shall take
+place. In the [pg 204] messianic event both correspond
+chronologically: resurrection and coming on the clouds signify only
+the revelation of Jesus’ messiahship on the great Resurrection Day.
+
+This expectation of the eschatological Resurrection of the dead ruled
+the consciousness of Jesus and his contemporaries. He assumes it in
+his discourses at Jerusalem. Expectation of the Kingdom and belief in
+the approaching Resurrection of the dead belong together. It is, as we
+have already observed, an error in perspective to represent Jesus’
+thought in regard to the coming Kingdom as directed toward the future
+as if it had to do with subsequent generations. So the modern mind
+thinks. It was just the opposite with Jesus. The Kingdom had to do
+with the past generations. They rise up to meet the Judgment which
+inaugurates the Kingdom.
+
+The Resurrection of the dead is the condition precedent to the
+establishment of the Kingdom. Through it all generations of the world
+are lifted out of their temporal sequence and placed before God’s
+judgment as contemporaries. For example, such a parable even as that
+of the Lord’s Vineyard requires the assumption of the Resurrection of
+the dead (Mk 12:1-12). The whole history of [pg 205] Israel is there
+described in the conduct of the husbandmen. Jesus speaks of the
+generations of Israel from the days of the Prophets unto the people
+then present to whom his warning is addressed. The parable, however,
+pictures only one generation, because when it is a question of the
+Judgment, the whole people in its consecutive generations appears
+before God as one collective whole,—which means that it is raised up
+as a whole from the dead.
+
+In the same way it is to be explained that the people of Sodom of a
+generation long gone by are assured of a more tolerable fate than the
+present inhabitants of Capernaum (Mt 11:23-24).
+
+Those who believed in the coming of the Kingdom believed also in the
+approaching Resurrection of the dead. Wherefore the attack of the
+Sadducees was directed precisely against this point. Jesus’ reply to
+them, that “when they shall rise from the dead they neither marry nor
+are given in marriage, but are as the angels in heaven” (Mk 12:25), is
+to be understood as descriptive of conditions in the Kingdom of
+heaven, into which they enter through the Resurrection from the dead.
+
+The “Resurrection of the dead” was, in [pg 206] fine, only the mode in
+which the transformation of the whole form of existence was
+accomplished upon those who had already succumbed to death. By the
+coming of the Kingdom of God, however, the earthly form of existence
+in general must be raised to another and an incomparably higher
+estate. From this point of view, those also are to experience a
+“resurrection” who before the great Event have not succumbed to death;
+for by a higher power their mode of existence, too, will suddenly be
+transformed into another, which they will then share with those that
+have been awakened from death. In comparison with this new form of
+existence the foregoing condition is a matter of indifference. It is
+all one whether from our earthly existence or from the sleep of death
+we pass into the messianic mode of being. In comparison with the
+latter all being is “death.” It alone is “life.”
+
+Wherefore, to the living, Jesus speaks of the way that leadeth unto
+“life” (Mt 7:14). He counsels men rather to part with a member of the
+body, when “life” is in question, than to fail of gaining through the
+Resurrection a part in the messianic existence (Mt 18:8, 9). The rich
+young man asks what he must do “to inherit eternal life.” Jesus [pg
+207] is very sorrowful when he will not follow the counsel given him,
+because it is so hard for a rich man “to enter into the Kingdom of
+heaven” (Mk 10:17, 25).
+
+This disparagement of the earthly form of existence goes to the length
+of sacrificing altogether the earthly life for the sake of full
+assurance of life in the coming age. Hence, with the exhortation to
+follow him in suffering and reproach, Jesus declares that “whosoever
+would save his life shall lose it.” That is to say, Whosoever, through
+anxiety about his earthly existence, makes himself unworthy that the
+Son of Man intervene for him before God, forfeits thereby the
+messianic life which commences with the Resurrection (Mk 8:35).
+
+When the Kingdom dawns it is all one whether we exist in a living or
+in a dead body. It is only with this persuasion that a man can meet
+persecution boldly. Wherefore Jesus says to the Apostles as he sends
+them forth: Be not afraid of them which kill the body but are not able
+to kill the “soul,” but fear him who hath power to destroy both “soul”
+and body in hell (Mt 10:28).
+
+St. Paul furnishes a classical instance of this same connection
+between the eschatological expectation of the early Church and [pg
+208] the Resurrection of the dead (1 Cor. 15:50-54). What we have here
+is not a specifically Pauline thought, but a primitive Christian
+conception to which Jesus had already given utterance. Flesh and
+blood, whether quick or dead, can in no wise have part in the Kingdom.
+Therefore when the hour strikes and the dead are raised incorruptible,
+the living also shall be changed, putting on incorruption and
+immortality.
+
+The Resurrection of the dead is the bridge from the “Now” to the
+“Then.” It accounts for the duality of consciousness. Hence when Jesus
+spoke of his resurrection the Disciples correlated this word with the
+great context. It signified for them the general Resurrection in which
+they too would arise in the form of existence appropriate to the
+Kingdom of God. True, they expected his resurrection,—not, however, as
+the “Easter event,” but as the dawn of the messianic Kingdom. Jesus
+was to be revealed as the risen Christ when he should come as Son of
+Man upon the clouds of heaven to usher in the messianic day.
+
+For our feeling, the death of Jesus is related to the Resurrection as
+a discord in music to its resolution. Owing to the disparagement of
+every form of existence prior [pg 209] to the messianic age, a much
+weaker accent, for the Disciples lay upon the death. What they
+conceived was an endless, eternal accord following upon a brief
+earthly prelude.
+
+Where we see a juxtaposition of messianic claim, Passion prediction,
+and Resurrection prophecy, the Disciples perceived a much stricter
+connection of thought. They beheld all in a messianic light. Hence
+they did not draw from Jesus’ words three separate conclusions: (1)
+that he was the Messiah; (2) that he must suffer and die; (3) that he
+would rise from the dead. Rather, the impression they received was
+this: Our master will after his death, at the Resurrection, be
+revealed as the Son of Man. At the same time they question within
+themselves what sort of persons they then will be and what office and
+dignity will fall to their lot in the new existence.
+
+It can thus be explained why their messianic conception was not
+completely overthrown by the notion of “the suffering and dying
+Messiah.” Jesus had revealed to them neither the suffering, nor the
+dying, nor the risen Christ; but he spoke to them of the Son of Man
+who was due to appear, and revealed to them that it was he who should
+come in that character when he had perfected himself by suffering here
+below.
+
+[pg 210]
+
+It can never be emphasised enough that in this respect Jesus’
+messiahship was completely in line with the popular conception. The
+tragedy of his life is not to be accounted for by the incompatibility
+of his notion of messiahship and the general expectation, so that only
+conflicts could ensue which must bring about his death. This
+conception first appears in the Fourth Gospel. The historical Jesus
+laid claim to messiahship only from the moment of the Resurrection.
+
+This view of Jesus’ messianic disclosures in the early Synoptic
+tradition is absolutely required by the conception of the primitive
+Church. The primitive Church assumes that Jesus’ messianic
+consciousness was futuristic when he talked to the Disciples and even
+when he gave answer to the High Priest. Even Peter’s discourse in the
+Acts dates his messiahship from the moment of the Resurrection. Until
+then he was Jesus of Nazareth. Only, the provisional condition of
+sitting on the right hand of God takes the place of the coming upon
+the clouds of heaven. “Jesus the Nazarene, a man approved of God unto
+you by mighty works and wonders and signs which God did by him in the
+midst of you (Acts 2:22), him did God raise up (Acts 2:32) and hath
+made him both Lord and [pg 211] Messiah, this Jesus whom ye crucified”
+(Acts 2:36).
+
+This testimony to the primitive conception of Jesus’ messiahship is of
+itself so weighty that it would put to silence the whole Synoptical
+tradition if that were of a different tenor. How is it conceivable
+that the Disciples proclaimed that Jesus had entered upon his
+messianic existence through the Resurrection, if already upon earth he
+had spoken of his messiahship as a dignity then actually possessed? As
+a matter of fact the early Synoptic tradition and the view of the
+primitive Church agree together completely. Both affirm with one voice
+that Jesus’ messianic consciousness was futuristic.
+
+If we had not this witness, the knowledge of Jesus’ historical
+character and personality would be forever closed to us. For after his
+death all sorts of presumptions arose to obscure the consciousness of
+the futuristic character of his messiahship. His resurrection as
+Messiah coincided with the general Resurrection which should usher in
+the messianic age—such was the perspective of the Disciples before his
+death. After his death his resurrection as Messiah constituted a fact
+for itself. Jesus was the Messiah _before_ the messianic age! That is
+the fateful shifting [pg 212] of the perspective. Therein lies the
+tragical element—but the magnificent as well—in the whole phenomenon
+of Christianity.
+
+The primitive Christian consciousness made the most strenuous efforts
+to fill the breach, trying in spite of it to conceive of Jesus’
+resurrection as the dawn of the messianic era in the general rising of
+the dead. There was an effort to make it intelligible as analogous to
+a somewhat protracted interval between two scenes of the first act of
+a drama. Properly, however, they already stood within the messianic
+Resurrection. Thus for Paul, Jesus Christ, proved to be the Messiah
+through the Resurrection of the dead, “is the first fruits of them
+that sleep” (1 Cor. 15:20). The whole structure of Pauline theology
+and ethics rests upon this thought. Because they find themselves
+within this period, believers are in reality buried with Christ and
+with him raised again through baptism. They are “new” creatures, they
+are the “righteous,” whose citizenship is in heaven. Until we grasp
+this fundamental notion we cannot perceive the unity in the manifold
+complications of St. Paul’s world of thought.
+
+The Christian historical tradition sought another way out. It assumed
+a sort of preresurrection which coincided with the resurrection [pg
+213] of Jesus. It lent to this the colouring of the messianic Day. Mt
+27:50-53 furnishes an example in legendary form of such a method of
+reconciling fact and theory. With Jesus’ death upon the cross a new
+world era dawned. When he yielded up his spirit the veil of the Temple
+was rent from the top to the bottom and earthquakes, the signs of the
+end of the world, shook the earth; the rocks were rent; the graves
+opened; and many bodies of the saints that had fallen asleep were
+raised. After Jesus’ resurrection they go forth out of the tombs into
+the holy city and appear unto many. So this narrative clings to the
+conception that the general Resurrection of the dead under the omens
+of the messianic Day comes in conjunction with Jesus’ death and
+consequent resurrection,—but still only as a sort of prelude.
+
+Time, indeed, proved mightier than the original conceptions.
+Inexorably it thrust itself like a splitting wedge between Jesus’
+resurrection and the expected general Resurrection of the messianic
+Day, and with the temporal coincidence it destroyed also the casual
+[causal] connection in the original sense. The messiahship of Jesus
+stood up solidly out of the past. Those who confessed it and at the
+same time expected the Kingdom as a future [pg 214] event lost all
+consciousness of the fact that in the preaching of Jesus his
+messiahship and the Kingdom were both of them future and coincident
+events. They began to regard the Gospel history from the point of view
+that _Jesus was the Messiah._ The title for this new view of the
+Gospel history was written by St. Paul. It reads: _“Jesus
+Christ,”_—the office and dignity of the risen Lord is combined with
+the historical personality in one idea. The Fourth Gospel has drawn
+the logical consequence therefrom and has so depicted the history of
+Jesus as if he had come upon earth as the Messiah.
+
+It is the task of the historical investigator to emancipate himself
+for a moment from the unhistorical perspective and place the Synoptic
+accounts in the right light. Only then, when one has grasped the
+futuristic element in Jesus’ messianic consciousness, can one
+understand why he revealed his dignity to the Disciples as a “secret,”
+why he designated himself thereby as the Son of Man, and in what sense
+he spoke of his resurrection.
+
+5. The Betrayal by Judas—the Last Disclosure of the Secret of
+Messiahship.
+
+What did Judas actually betray? According to the accounts of our
+Gospels it [pg 215] looks as if he had informed the Sanhedrin where at
+a particular hour they could apprehend Jesus. But, even if this
+indication of the place did play some part in the betrayal of Judas,
+it could only have been incidental. Where Jesus abode they could at
+any time find out, since he did nothing to make his coming and going
+secret. If then they desired to seize him, they had only to send a spy
+after him as he left Jerusalem in the evening, and they could have got
+all the information they wanted. For this purpose they did not need
+one of the inner circle.
+
+As a matter of fact, however, the principal difficulty lay in an
+entirely different direction. Not to _arrest_ him but to _convict_ him
+was what they could not accomplish, for they could bring nothing
+against him. With respect to him and his following they found
+themselves in the embarrassing fix into which every conscientious
+church discipline must necessarily fall some time or another: these
+people were too pious for them, pious beyond proper limits, inasmuch
+as they with too great enthusiasm believed what the others with seemly
+moderation of feeling confessed in their creed,—namely, that the
+Kingdom is near. They could not get a conviction on the ground of the
+title of Forerunner [pg 216] which the people attributed to him, for
+he had justified this attribution by signs. Moreover he had never
+openly claimed for himself such a dignity. Nevertheless the manner of
+his behaviour was for them dangerous in the highest degree. At the
+head of the pious populace he terrorised them. For this reason they
+would gladly have made away with him—and could not.
+
+One can understand the attitude of the Sanhedrin and their
+difficulties if one steadily keeps in mind that, in view of Jesus’
+whole activity, the thought had not occurred to anybody that he could
+take himself to be the Messiah. Thus they knew no charge to bring
+against him, and had nothing for it but to try to catch him in his
+speech and discredit him with the people—and in this they were not
+successful.
+
+Then Judas appeared before them and put the deadly weapon into their
+hand. As they heard what he told them “they were glad,” for now was he
+delivered into their power. Judas now seeks a favourable moment to
+deliver the betrayed into their hands (Mk 14:11).
+
+What he had betrayed to them we can see from the process of the trial.
+The witnesses of the Pharisees can adduce nothing that would justify
+his conviction. When, however, [pg 217] the witnesses have withdrawn,
+the High Priest puts the question to Jesus directly, whether He is the
+Messiah. To prove such a claim on Jesus’ part they could not adduce
+the necessary witnesses,—for there were none. The High Priest is here
+in possession of Jesus’ secret. That was the betrayal of Judas!
+Through him the Sanhedrin knew that Jesus claimed to be something
+different from what the people held him to be, though he raised no
+protest against it.
+
+They got the decisive charge through the betrayed secret of Cæsarea
+Philippi. To be Elijah, the prophet of the last times, was no
+religious crime. But to claim to be Messiah, that was blasphemy! The
+perfidy of the charge lay in the High Priest’s insinuation that Jesus
+held himself then to be the Messiah, just as he stood there before
+him. This Jesus repudiated with a proud word about his coming as Son
+of Man. Nevertheless he was condemned for blasphemy.
+
+We have therefore three revelations of the secret of messiahship,
+which so hang together that each subsequent one implies the foregoing.
+On the mountain near Bethsaida was revealed to the Three the secret
+which was disclosed to Jesus at his baptism. That was after the
+harvest. A few weeks later it was [pg 218] known to the Twelve, by the
+fact that Peter at Cæsarea Philippi answered Jesus’ question out of
+the knowledge which he had attained upon the mountain. One of the
+Twelve betrayed the secret to the High Priest. This last revelation of
+the secret was fatal, for it brought about the death of Jesus. _He was
+condemned as Messiah although he had never appeared in that rôle._
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 219]
+
+CHAPTER IX
+
+THE SECRET OF THE PASSION
+
+
+1. The Pre-Messianic Affliction.
+
+THE reference to the Passion belonged as a matter of course to the
+eschatological prediction. A time of unheard of affliction must
+precede the coming of the Kingdom. Out of these woes the Messiah will
+be brought to birth. That was a view prevalent far and wide: in no
+other wise could the events of the last times be imagined.
+
+According to this view Jesus’ words must be interpreted. It will
+appear then that in his preaching of the Kingdom he brought into sharp
+prominence the thought of the Affliction of the last times. We always
+assume that when he speaks of persecutions which his Disciples shall
+encounter he means to predict what they must go through when they are
+left alone and orphaned on earth after his death. That is totally
+false. After his death Jesus will be Messiah through the Resurrection,
+and therewith the glory of the Kingdom dawns. Not what they must
+withstand after his death, but what they are to be in the Kingdom [pg
+220] is the thought which concerns the Disciples on the way to
+Jerusalem.
+
+When Jesus speaks of suffering and persecution it is a question of the
+afflictions which his followers must bear with him before the dawn of
+the Kingdom. What is meant is the last desperate attack of the powers
+of this world at enmity with God, which shall sweep like a flood over
+those who in expectation of the Kingdom represent the divine power in
+the godless world. Hence Jesus constitutes the focus upon which the
+Affliction concentrates. He is the rock upon which the waves dash
+themselves to pieces. Whosoever would not be torn away by the flood
+must cling stedfastly to him.
+
+When he says that his mission is not to bring peace upon earth but a
+sword, when he speaks of the uprising which he brings about, in which
+the most sacred earthly ties shall be broken, in which one must follow
+him laden with the cross and count one’s earthly life for naught (Mt
+10:34-42), he means by this the great persecution of the last times.
+He who hastens the coming of the Kingdom brings also this Affliction
+to pass, for it is out of this travail indeed that the Kingdom and the
+Messiah are born.
+
+Hence the harsh accord heard throughout [pg 221] the messianic
+harmonies! Jesus concludes the Beatitudes with the intimation that his
+Disciples are blessed if they are hated and persecuted and all manner
+of evil is spoken against them for his sake. Then have they indeed
+reason to rejoice and be exceeding glad, for in what they must endure
+is revealed their right to membership in the Kingdom of God. While
+they are still afflicted by the power of this world their reward is
+already prepared in heaven (Mt 5:11, 12).
+
+“Preach, saying, the Kingdom of God is at hand,” was Jesus’ injunction
+to the Apostles when sending them out. Therewith, however, he prepared
+them impressively for the Affliction of the last times, for the hand
+of the world-clock approaches the great hour. They must know it, in
+order that they may not think that something strange has befallen them
+when they are brought to trial by the world-power, when uprising and
+persecution threaten them and bring their life into danger. They must
+know it, in order that they may not doubt and deny him and be offended
+in him when he is delivered into the hands of men, for he himself as
+the mighty preacher of the Kingdom has incited this uprising. When,
+however, the world-power appears to conquer, then God in his
+omnipotence [pg 222] stands above. Not those that kill the body must
+they fear, but the almighty Lord who in the Judgment can destroy both
+soul and body in hell. In this last uprising the world-power judges
+itself: after the Judgment comes the Kingdom. That is the fundamental
+thought of the charge to the Apostles.
+
+Likewise the embassage to the Baptist concludes with a similar
+intimation. The Kingdom is near, he would have them say to him; my
+preaching, signs, and wonders confirm it; and he attains blessedness
+whosoever is not offended in me, i. e. whosoever is faithful to me in
+the pre-messianic Affliction.
+
+His warning of the heavy time to come is directed most impressively,
+however, to those whom the Apostles’ preaching has drawn about him in
+trustful expectation of the Kingdom. In the gathering dusk of evening
+he had celebrated with them the great Supper beside the sea. As one
+who knew himself to be the Messiah he had distributed to them sacred
+food, and thereby, without their suspecting it, had consecrated them
+to be partakers of the messianic feast. The following morning,
+however, he called them about him at Bethsaida and exhorted them to be
+ready to sacrifice their life in the Affliction. Whosoever [pg 223]
+shall be ashamed of him and of his words in the humiliation which must
+overtake him in this adulterous and sinful world, him will the Son of
+Man refuse to recognise when he shall appear in the glory of his
+Father surrounded by his angels (Mk 8:35-38).
+
+2. The Idea of the Passion in the First Period.
+
+The Passion therefore belonged to Jesus’ preaching from the beginning.
+In the Affliction of the last times his followers must pass with him
+through suffering to glory—so his hearers understood him. Only, they
+did not know that he with whom they must suffer would be revealed as
+Messiah.
+
+In Jesus’ messianic consciousness the thought of suffering acquired
+now, as applied to himself, a mysterious significance. The messiahship
+which he became aware of at his baptism was not a possession, nor a
+mere object of expectation; but in the eschatological conception it
+was implied as a matter of course that through the trial of suffering
+he must become what God had destined him to be. His messianic
+consciousness was never without the thought of the Passion. Suffering
+is the way to the revelation of messiahship!
+
+[pg 224]
+
+What he experienced in this age represented the hidden life and labour
+of the Messiah. Suffering, however, was allotted to this rôle. It was
+Jewish doctrine that the Messiah must be full of chastisement, for the
+sufferings are necessary to the making of the perfectly righteous man
+(Weber, p. 343).
+
+This messianic consciousness of Jesus shows the same deepening of
+moral tone as does his eschatology. According to the customary
+modernising conception, it is assumed that during the greater part of
+his ministry Jesus did not think of the Passion, but was first obliged
+to entertain that thought by the malicious enmity of the Scribes. Thus
+his messiahship receives in the first period an ethical-idyllic cast,
+in the second, a modern hue of resignation. The
+historic-eschatological picture is at once livelier, deeper, and more
+moral. Jesus’ character did not undergo an “evolution” through the
+acceptance of the idea of the Passion. From the beginning he knew
+himself as Messiah only in so far as he was resolved through suffering
+to be purified unto perfection. As the one who is destined to bear
+rule in the new age he must beforehand be delivered into the power of
+ungodliness in order that he may there approve [pg 225] himself for
+the divine lordship he is to exercise. Out of such a messianic
+consciousness as this he adjures those about him to remain true so
+that he can recognise them as his own when the glory dawns. Thus the
+active ethical trait which constituted the depth of the secret of the
+Kingdom is a controlling factor also in the secret of messiahship.
+
+The historical problem presents itself now in this form: In the first
+period Jesus expressed the thought of the Passion much more frequently
+than in the second, and he uttered it openly. Every discourse of some
+length concludes with such an intimation. His own Disciples were
+familiar with the thought of seeing him humiliated in the Affliction.
+In spite of this, however, the disclosure at Cæsarea Philippi appeared
+to the Disciples a new thing, and so it was in fact. For it was no
+longer a question simply of the suffering which the great herald of
+the Kingdom must undergo in company with his own in the final
+Affliction; but now he suffers who is to be the Messiah. This
+suffering, moreover, does not any longer occur in the general
+Affliction of the last times, but Jesus suffers alone, and his
+suffering is now represented as a purely earthly, historical event! He
+will [pg 226] be delivered to the Council and by it condemned to
+death! That was the new thing which remained a secret for the
+Disciples.
+
+3. The “Temptation” and the Divine Omnipotence.
+
+A peculiar note of hesitancy appears in the thought of the Passion. At
+one time death seems an absolute necessity; then again—for example, in
+Gethsemane—Jesus recognises once more the possibility that the Passion
+may still be spared him. But as a matter of fact the idea of the
+Passion subsisted without respect to earthly success or failure.
+Therefore the hesitancy ought not to be brought into connection with
+this. As Jesus journeyed towards Jerusalem to die he did not in a
+corner of his heart indulge the thought that God in his omnipotence
+might perhaps be able nevertheless to make his way a triumphal march
+and show himself through him victorious over the Pharisees and the
+Council. That, according to his feeling, would have been a “human” way
+of thinking, such as he had reproved in Peter (Mk 8:33). For in the
+affairs of God’s Kingdom he cannot oppose to one another the
+opposition of the Scribes and the divine omnipotence; it is a question
+of a divine drama [pg 227] in which they were mere subordinate actors
+with a prescribed rôle, like the minions that arrested him at their
+behest. The hesitancy must therefore have its ground in the divine
+will itself.
+
+It is the specific characteristic of Jesus’ view, that the divine will
+has indeed, on the one hand, designedly preordained the messianic
+drama in the well known form; yet, on the other hand again, God
+remains sovereignly free with respect to his plan. By a messianic
+programme established once and for all the divine omnipotence behind
+it is in no wise bound! It knows no determinism at all.
+
+Jesus expected of this omnipotence that it could still receive into
+the estate of blessedness even such as by their behaviour had
+forfeited membership in the Kingdom. According to the accepted
+standards it is indeed impossible that the rich can enter into life.
+But with God all things are possible (Mk 10:27).
+
+It was a maxim that whosoever would reign with the coming Messiah must
+suffer with Jesus. But yet he dared not promise his two intimate
+Disciples, James and John, the seats upon the throne, although he
+expected that they would share his Passion. [pg 228] He might by this
+infringe upon God’s omnipotence (Mk 10:35-40).
+
+Thus the Affliction also of the last times had its place indeed in the
+divinely ordained course of the messianic drama. But yet it lay in
+God’s unrestricted omnipotence that he might eliminate it and permit
+the Kingdom to dawn without this season of trial. Therefore men might
+pray God that he would suffer that heavy hour of probation to pass by.
+Jesus enjoined this upon his Disciples in the same prayer in which he
+taught them to make petition for the coming Kingdom. He teaches them
+to implore God for the final state of blessedness, in which his name
+will be hallowed and his will be done on earth as it is in heaven; but
+at the same time they are to beg him not to lead them into the
+“Temptation,” not to give them into the power of the Evil, not to
+oblige them to make satisfaction for their sins by the endurance of
+the Affliction of the last times; but to deliver them by his
+omnipotence from the power of the Evil when the ungodly world for the
+last time asserts itself at the coming of the Kingdom for which they
+pray. That is the inner connection of the last three petitions of the
+Lord’s Prayer.
+
+The Lord’s Prayer thus exhibits in the [pg 229] first three and the
+last three petitions a purely eschatological character. We have the
+same contrast as in the Beatitudes, the charge to the Apostles, the
+embassage to the Baptist, and the discourse at Bethsaida. First it is
+a question of the coming of the Kingdom, then of the Affliction of the
+last times. We perceive from the Lord’s Prayer, however, that there is
+no absolute necessity for this Affliction, but that it is only
+relatively determined in God’s almighty will.
+
+The Affliction, in fact, represents in its extremest form the
+repentance requisite for the Kingdom. Whosoever comes through that
+test approved makes satisfaction for his transgressions in the godless
+æon. Through conflict and suffering men wrest themselves free from
+this power to become instruments of the divine will in the Kingdom of
+God. That is to be conceived collectively. The faithful adherents of
+the Kingdom as a community make the satisfaction. The individual
+thereby perfects and approves himself. Such is God’s will. Jesus,
+however, prays with them to God that he may be pleased in his
+omnipotence to forgive them the debt without satisfaction, as they
+forgive their debtors. That means remission pure and simple, without
+atonement. May it please [pg 230] God not to lead them through the
+“Temptation,” but straightway to release them from the power of the
+world.
+
+Only so can one understand how Jesus throughout his ministry can
+assume forgiveness of sins and yet here expressly prays for it; and
+how he can speak of a temptation which comes from God. It is a
+question in fact of the general messianic remission of debts and the
+Temptation of the messianic Affliction. Therefore these petitions
+constitute the conclusion of the Kingdom-prayer.
+
+What Jesus here in common prayer petitions for the community, that he
+implores for himself when his hour is come. In Gethsemane he
+prostrates himself before God. In moving prayer he appeals to God’s
+omnipotence: Abba, Father, all things are possible unto thee (Mk
+14:36). He would that the cup of suffering might pass his lips without
+his needing to taste it. Also he rouses the three Disciples, bidding
+them to watch and pray God that he may spare them the Temptation, for
+the flesh is weak.
+
+4. The Idea of the Passion in the Second Period.
+
+With the revelation at Cæsarea Philippi cease all intimations that the
+believers must [pg 231] pass with Jesus through the Affliction.
+According to the secret which he imparts to the Disciples he alone
+suffers. In Jerusalem he addressed not one urgent word, either to the
+people or to the Disciples, about following him in suffering. Indeed
+he actually takes back what he before had said. The morning after the
+Supper by the seashore, addressing those whom he had consecrated unto
+the messianic banquet, he makes their blessedness dependent upon
+following him in suffering. To the partakers of the Last Supper at
+Jerusalem he calmly stated beforehand that they would all be
+“offended” in him that night! He coupled this with no condemnation—for
+it is so determined in the Scripture! Is it not written, “I will smite
+the shepherd, and the sheep shall be scattered”? Therefore, even if
+they are offended in him, if even they forsake him, in his glory he
+will still gather them again, and as Messiah—for that he is as the
+risen one—he will go before them unto Galilee (Mk 14:26-28).
+
+What at an earlier period he had required of all, that he now does not
+expect even of him who boasted that he alone would stand by him.
+“Before the cock crow twice thou shalt deny me thrice,” said he to
+Peter (Mk 14:29, 31).
+
+[pg 232]
+
+This change must be connected with the form which the idea of the
+Passion assumed in the second period. There must have occurred an
+alteration in the conception of the Affliction of the last times. The
+others are freed from the trial of suffering, Jesus suffers alone;—and
+in fact the humiliation consists in the death to which the scribes
+consign him. It is by this means that the final affliction now
+accomplishes itself. His faithful followers are spared. _He suffers in
+their stead, for he gives his life a ransom for many._
+
+Jesus has not disclosed in what way this secret was made known to him
+in the days of solitude after the mission of the Twelve. The form of
+the secret of the Passion shows, however, that two experiences had
+influence upon him.
+
+First, the death of the Baptist. The Baptist for him was Elijah. If he
+was slain by the hand of man before the messianic Day, such was God’s
+will, and so it was foreordained in the messianic drama. This occurred
+while the Disciples were away. His embassage to the Baptist perhaps
+never reached him. He must come now to an understanding of this
+matter. For this cause he wishes to withdraw into solitude with his
+companions.
+
+[pg 233]
+
+How much he was preoccupied with the thought of the Baptist’s death is
+shown by the conversation which followed the revelation to the Three
+on the mountain. It was ordained in the Scripture that Elijah must
+meet such a fate at the hands of men. So also it is written of the Son
+of Man that he must suffer many things and be set at naught (Mk
+9:12-13).
+
+Hitherto he had spoken only in general terms of the final Affliction
+as an event of the last times. Now, however, it has been fulfilled
+upon the Baptist as an _historical event._ That is a sign, which
+indicates how it will be fulfilled upon himself.
+
+This indication came precisely at the time when he was compelled by
+the course of events to reflect upon the final Affliction. After the
+return of the Twelve he had expected it as an impending event. But it
+failed to occur. What is more, the Kingdom failed therewith to appear!
+In sending out the Twelve he had told them that they would be
+surprised by the overflowing woes ere they had gone through all the
+cities of Israel,—and they had returned without witnessing the
+beginning of the woes or the dawn of the Kingdom.
+
+The report with which they returned [pg 234] showed, however, that all
+was ready. Already the power of ungodliness was broken, for else the
+unclean spirits would not have been subject to them. The Kingdom was
+compellingly hastened by the repentance practised since the days of
+the Baptist. In this respect also the measure was full,—that was
+proved by the multitudes which thronged about him in faithful
+expectation. So all was ready—and still the Kingdom did not come! The
+delay of the eschatological coming of the Kingdom,—that was the great
+fact which drove Jesus at that time once and again into solitude to
+seek light upon the mystery.
+
+Before the Kingdom could come the Affliction must arrive. But it
+failed to arrive. It must be brought about in order that the Kingdom
+may thus be constrained to come. Repentance and the subjugation of the
+power of ungodliness did not avail by themselves; but the violent
+stormers of the Kingdom must be reinforced by one stronger still, the
+future Messiah, who brings down upon himself the final Affliction in
+the form in which it had already been accomplished upon Elijah. Thus
+the secret of the Kingdom merges in the secret of the Passion.
+
+The conception of the final Affliction contains [pg 235] the thought
+of atonement and purification. All they who are destined for the
+Kingdom must win forgiveness for the guilt contracted in the earthly
+æon by encountering stedfastly the world-power as it collects itself
+for a last attack. For through this guilt they were still subject to
+the power of ungodliness. This guilt constitutes a counter weight
+which holds back the coming of the Kingdom.
+
+But now God does not bring the Affliction to pass. And yet the
+atonement must be made. Then it occurred to Jesus that he as the
+coming Son of Man must accomplish the atonement in his own person. He
+who one day shall reign over the believers as Messiah now humbles
+himself under them and serves them by giving his life a ransom for
+many, in order that the Kingdom may dawn upon them. That is his
+mission in the estate which precedes his celestial glory. “For this he
+is come” (Mk 10:45). He must suffer for the sins of those who are
+ordained for his Kingdom. In order to carry this out, he journeys up
+to Jerusalem, that there he may be put to death by the secular
+authority, just as Elijah who went before him suffered at the hand of
+Herod. That is the secret of the Passion. Jesus did actually die for
+the sins of men, [pg 236] even though it was in another sense than
+that which Anselm’s theory assumes.
+
+5. Isaiah 40[-66]: The Secret of the Passion Foretold in the
+Scripture.
+
+“How is it written of the Son of Man? That he must suffer many things
+and be set at naught” (Mk 9:12). The new form of the secret of the
+Passion is derived from the Scripture. In the picture of the suffering
+servant of God Jesus recognised himself. There he found his vocation
+of suffering depicted in advance.
+
+In order, however, to understand how his secret came to him from out
+the Scripture, the picture of the suffering servant of God must be set
+in the great framework in which it belongs. The modern-historical
+solution cannot do this. It confines itself to the notion of a meek
+self-surrender. As soon, however, as it is once perceived that Jesus’
+idea of the Passion was eschatological, it is evident also in what a
+great context he must view the figure of the suffering servant of God.
+Accordingly, Isa. 40-66 was nothing else but the prophetic
+representation of the events of the last time in the midst of which he
+knew himself to be.
+
+The passage commences with the proclamation [pg 237] that God’s reign
+is about to begin. The preparer of the way comes upon the scene. He
+cries that the earthly passes away when the Lord, dealing reward and
+recompense, appears in his glory. The hour dawns in which he gathers
+his flock and brings in the era of peace.
+
+The Elect is there. He proclaims righteousness in truth. God has put
+his spirit upon him (Isai. 42:1 ff.). He shall establish judgment upon
+the earth; the cities wait upon his teaching. But before the glory
+dawns and the bearer of the divine spirit rules with power and
+righteousness over the peoples he must pass through an estate of
+humiliation. Others do not understand why he is put to shame. They
+think God has rejected him, and know not that he bears their
+infirmities, is pierced for their transgressions, and smitten for
+their offences. The oppressed servant is meek and openeth not his
+mouth. For the transgression of the people he is stricken to death.
+Then, however, will the Lord glorify him. He hath called him to this
+from his mother’s womb. He is ordained to bring again Jacob and to
+save Israel. He shall be for a light to the Gentiles, that God’s
+salvation may extend unto the ends of the earth (Isai. 49:1 ff.; Isai.
+52:1 ff.; Isai. 53:1 ff.).
+
+[pg 238]
+
+Upon the delineation of the suffering of the servant of God there
+follows a description of the judgment upon the whole world and upon
+Israel (Isa. 54-65). In the end, however, the glory of God breaks
+forth. He is enthroned above the new heaven and the new earth (Isa. 65
+and 66). When the Judgment is accomplished, then the rejoicing breaks
+out, for the blessed out of the whole world, out of every tribe and
+nation, will gather unto him and do him reverence.
+
+One must grasp the dramatic unity in these chapters in order to enter
+into sympathy with one who sought here mysterious intimation about the
+things of the last time. Jesus’ idea of the Passion is in the end
+completely absorbed in that of the Deutero-Isaiah. Like the servant of
+God, he too is destined to reign in glory. But first he appears, meek
+and unrecognised, in the rôle of a preacher who works righteousness.
+He must pass also through suffering and humiliation ere God permit the
+glorious consummation to dawn. What he endures is an atonement for the
+iniquity of others. This is a secret between himself and God. The
+others cannot and need not understand it, for when the glory dawns
+they will recognise that he has suffered for them. Wherefore Jesus did
+not need to explain [pg 239] his Passion to the people and to the
+Disciples, and ought not to do so. It must remain a secret,—so it is
+written in the Scripture. Even to those to whom he foretold what was
+coming he uttered it as a secret. At his appearing as Son of Man the
+scales must fall from their eyes. In the glory of the Kingdom they
+then shall recognise that he has suffered in order that they may be
+spared and have peace. The secret is intelligible only
+retrospectively, from the point of view of the glory that shall be
+revealed.
+
+Therefore it makes no difference if his own followers turn away from
+him in his humiliation and men are offended in him as though he were
+chastised of God. The Scripture does not reckon it against them as
+sacrilege, but has so ordained it. The moment therefore the secret of
+the Passion is made clear to him by the Scripture he no more says,
+Whosoever is ashamed of me in my humiliation, the same is condemned;
+but, Ye shall all be offended in me,—knowing at the same time that
+they all shall be gathered about him at the Resurrection.
+
+Under the influence, therefore, of the Deutero-Isaiah the idea of the
+general Affliction of the last times was transformed into the personal
+secret of Jesus’ Passion.
+
+[pg 240]
+
+6. The “Human” Element in the Secret of the Passion.
+
+The innermost nature of the idea of suffering underwent no change in
+consequence of the secret of the Passion of the second epoch. For
+Jesus, suffering, even in this form, remained pre-eminently the moral
+condition of the dignity ordained to him.
+
+Now, however, the Affliction exhibits the concrete traits of a
+determinate event. Jesus brings it down from the vague heights of
+apocalyptic drama to the level of human history. Therein lies
+something prophetic of the future of Christianity. After Jesus’ death
+the whole messianic drama of the last times is dissolved in human
+history. This development began with the secret of the Passion.
+
+Thus it is, too, that the secret of the Passion, as compared with the
+idea of suffering of the first period, exhibits more human traits.
+There is a quality of compassionate consideration for others in the
+thought that he makes satisfaction in the Passion for the adherents of
+the Kingdom, in order that they may be exempted from the trial in
+which perchance they might prove weak. The petition, “Lead us not into
+the Temptation, but [pg 241] deliver us from the Evil,” is now
+fulfilled in his Passion.
+
+This deeply human trait is especially evident in Gethsemane. Only over
+the three intimate Disciples still hovers the possibility that they
+may be obliged to pass with him through suffering and temptation. The
+sons of Zebedee, to secure their claim that they sit with him upon the
+throne, boasted that they could drink with him his cup and undergo
+with him the baptism of suffering—and this prospect he held out to
+them (Mk 10:38-40). Peter, however, swore that he would not deny him;
+even if all others should forsake him, he desired to die with him (Mk
+14:31). These three Jesus had taken with him to the place where he
+prayed. While he implored God that the cup might pass him by, there
+overcame him a sorrowful anxiety for the Three. If God does now
+actually send them with him through the Passion, will they hold out as
+they are bold to believe? Wherefore he is mindful of them in that sad
+hour. Twice he arouses himself and wakes them out of sleep, bidding
+them watch and pray to God that he lead them not into the Temptation,
+even if he will not spare him this cup; for the spirit is willing, but
+the flesh is weak. That is perhaps [pg 242] the most touching moment
+in Jesus’ life. Some have dared to call Gethsemane Jesus’ weak hour;
+but in reality it is precisely the hour in which his supernatural
+greatness is revealed in his deeply human compassion.
+
+7. The Idea of the Passion in the Primitive Church. The Shifting of
+the Perspective.
+
+Jesus carried with him to the grave the secret of the Passion which
+was to be revealed to the inheritors of the Kingdom at its coming. But
+the Kingdom did not come. Thus it is to be explained that though he
+indeed had given intimation of his Passion to the Disciples, yet they,
+when the event came to pass, knew no interpretation of it.
+Nevertheless, in some way they had to explain it, by the help of such
+intimations as they could recall. This accounts for the fact that the
+theory of the early Church regarding the Passion of Jesus was far
+poorer than his Secret. The explanation of the Church focussed
+principally upon one fact: In consequence of the Passion and the
+Resurrection from the dead he is the Messiah. In this sense the
+Passion and the Exaltation are foreordained in the Scripture.
+
+While Jesus’ secret brought his death and the dawning of the Kingdom
+into the closest [pg 243] temporal and causal connection, for the
+primitive Church, on the other hand, a past event, as such,
+constituted the object to be explained, since the Kingdom had not
+arrived and the original causal connection was dissolved along with
+the temporal.
+
+Now with reference to his death Jesus had spoken also of atonement and
+forgiveness of sins. But the thoughts which he associated therewith
+the events had rendered entirely impossible. The indefinite “many,”
+who were to apply the ransom to themselves in the knowledge that he
+had suffered for them, simply did not exist; for the Kingdom had not
+yet appeared. Only from that point of vantage, however, could one
+apprehend that he had performed the Atonement of Affliction for the
+inheritors of the Kingdom.
+
+In the meantime the situation was entirely different: “the believers”
+had taken the place of the “many.” Those who believe in the
+messiahship of Jesus have the forgiveness of sins,—this sentence, as
+the sermon at Pentecost shows, was a constituent of the earlier
+Apostolic preaching (Acts 2:38). But to what extent one had thereby
+forgiveness of sins,—in that consisted the problem. This, however, was
+historically insoluble, for according to Jesus’ secret of the Passion
+[pg 244] the forgiveness of sins applied not to those who believe in
+Jesus-Christ, but to the inheritors of the Kingdom. Therefore, however
+profound they may be, and however true to the religious consciousness
+of their time, none of the attempts to explain the significance of the
+Passion, from Paul to Ritschl, apprehend the thought of Jesus, because
+they proceed upon an entirely different assumption.
+
+As all of these theories sought nevertheless to legitimate themselves
+historically, we witness the astonishing spectacle, that the most
+diverse interpretations of his Passion are put into the mouth of
+Jesus,—of which, however, not one can even remotely explain how out of
+such a conception the primitive Apostolic estimate of the Death could
+have been derived. The same is true of the modern-historical solution.
+If Jesus taught the Disciples to understand the ethical significance
+of his death, why did the primitive Christian explanation of the
+Passion confine itself to the notion of conformity with Scripture and
+the “forgiveness of sins”?
+
+To this question the modern-historical solution furnishes no answer.
+The eschatologico-historical, on the other hand, is able to take
+account perspectively of the necessary distortion which Jesus’ idea of
+the Passion [pg 245] underwent in the primitive Church. It indicates
+which elements alone of the Passion secret could still subsist after
+his death. Because it grasps the connection between the early
+Christian interpretation and the thought of Jesus the
+eschatologico-historical solution is the right one.
+
+The abolition of the causal connection between the death of Jesus and
+the realisation of the Kingdom was fatal to the early Christian
+eschatology. With the secret of the Passion, the secret of the Kingdom
+likewise perished. This, however, meant nothing less than that
+eschatology lost precisely that specific “Christian” character which
+Jesus had imparted to it. The active ethical element which served to
+moralise it dropped out. Thus the eschatology of the early Church was
+“dechristianised” by Jesus’ death. Therewith it sank back again to the
+level of contemporary Jewish thought. The Kingdom is again an object
+of expectation merely. That moral conversion is effective actively to
+hasten its coming,—this secret was buried with Jesus. Now men repented
+and strove after moral renewal _as in the days of the Baptist._
+
+This dechristianising was manifest especially in the matter of the
+final Affliction. [pg 246] According to the Passion idea of the first
+period, the believers must suffer along with the Messiah; according to
+that of the second, he was resolved to endure the Affliction for them.
+In the early Church the believers expected the Affliction _before_ the
+appearing of the Messiah, as was the case in the contemporary Jewish
+conception; for the Passion secret of Jesus was not known to them.
+Therefore the Jewish apocalypses belonged to them just as much as to
+the other Jews, only with the difference that the crucified Jesus was
+to be the coming Messiah. Early Christian eschatology was therefore
+still “Christian” only through the _person_ of Jesus, no longer
+through his _spirit,_ as was the case in the secret of the Kingdom of
+God and in the secret of the Passion.
+
+This furnishes a criterion for judging “the Synoptic apocalypse” (Mark
+13). Even though it may contain single eschatological sayings
+attributable to Jesus, the discourse as such is necessarily
+unhistorical. It betrays the perspective of the time after Jesus’
+death. During the days at Jerusalem Jesus could speak of no general
+Affliction before the coming of the Son of Man. The Synoptic
+apocalypse stands in direct contradiction to the secret of the
+Passion, since this indeed simply [pg 247] abolishes the general
+Affliction of the last times. Therefore it is unhistorical.
+Apocalyptic discourses with intimation of the final Affliction belong
+to the Galilean period at the time of the mission of the Twelve. The
+discourse to the Apostles on that occasion is the historical Synoptic
+apocalypse. About a time of affliction after his death Jesus never
+uttered a word to his Disciples, for it lay beyond his field of
+vision.
+
+Therefore with the death of Jesus, and precisely by reason of it,
+eschatology—notwithstanding that the primitive Christian community
+still completely lived in it—was virtually done away with. It was
+destined to be forced out of the Christian “Weltanschauung,” for it
+was “dechristianised” by the fact that in parting with the secret of
+the Kingdom of God and the idea of the Passion it had forfeited also
+the inner ethical life which was breathed into it by Jesus. A tree in
+full bloom stricken at the root,—such was the fate of eschatology, to
+wilt and wither, although no one at first suspected it was doomed. In
+the fact that subsequent history compulsorily created in the Church an
+uneschatological view of the world, it only accomplished what in the
+nature of things was already determined by Jesus’ death.
+
+[pg 248]
+
+The death of Jesus the end of eschatology! The Messiah who upon earth
+was not such—the end of the messianic expectation! The view of the
+world in which Jesus lived and preached was eschatological: the
+“Christian view of the world” which he founded by his death carries
+mankind forever beyond eschatology! That is the great secret of the
+Christian “scheme of salvation.”
+
+For Jesus and his Disciples his death was, according to the
+eschatological view, merely a _transitional_ event. As soon, however,
+as the event occurred it became the _central fact_ upon which the new,
+uneschatological view was built up. In primitive Christianity the old
+and new were still side by side.
+
+The adherents of Jesus believed in the coming of the Kingdom because
+his imposing personality accredited the message. The Church after his
+death believed in his messiahship and expected the coming of the
+Kingdom. We believe that in his ethical-religious personality, as
+revealed in his ministry and suffering, the Messiah and the Kingdom
+are come.
+
+The situation may be likened to the course of the sun. Its brightness
+breaks forth while it is still behind the mountains. The dark clouds
+take colour from its rays, and the conflict [pg 249] of light and
+darkness produces a play of fantastic imagery. The sun itself is not
+yet visible: it is there only in the sense that the light issues from
+it. As the sun behind the morning glow,—so appeared the personality of
+Jesus of Nazareth to his contemporaries in the pre-messianic age.
+
+At the moment when the heaven glows with intensest colouring the sun
+itself rises above the horizon. But with this the wealth of colour
+begins gradually to diminish. The fantastic images pale and vanish
+because the sun itself dissolves the clouds upon which they are
+formed. As the rising sun above the horizon,—so appeared Jesus Christ
+to the primitive Church in its eschatological expectation.
+
+As the sun at midday,—so he appears to us. We know nothing of morning
+and evening glow; we see only the white brilliance which pervades all.
+But the fact that the sun now shines for us in such a light does not
+justify us in conceiving the sunrise also as if it were a brilliant
+disk of midday brightness emerging above the horizon. Our modern view
+of Jesus’ death is true, true in its inmost nature, because it
+reflects his ethical-religious personality in the thoughts of our
+time. But when we import this into the history [pg 250] of Jesus and
+of primitive Christianity we commit the same blunder as were we to
+paint the sunrise without the morning glow.
+
+In genuine historical knowledge there is liberating and helping power.
+Our faith is built upon the personality of Jesus. But between our
+world-view and that in which he lived and laboured there lies a deep
+and seemingly unbridgeable gulf. Men therefore saw themselves obliged
+to detach as it were his personality from his world-view and touch it
+up with modern colours.
+
+This produced a picture of Jesus which was strangely lifeless and
+vague. One got a hybrid figure, half modern, half antique. With much
+else that is modern, men transferred to him our modern psychology,
+without always recognising clearly that it is not applicable to him
+and necessarily belittles him. For it is derived from mediocre minds
+which are a patchwork of opinions and apprehend and observe themselves
+only in a constant flux of development. Jesus, however, is a
+superhuman personality moulded in one piece.
+
+Thus modern theology does violence to history and psychology, inasmuch
+as it cannot prove what right we have to segregate Jesus from his age,
+to translate his personality into the terms of our modern thought, and
+to conceive [pg 251] of him as “Messiah” and “Son of God” outside of
+the Jewish framework.
+
+Genuine historical knowledge, however, restores to theology full
+freedom of movement! It presents to it the personality of Jesus in an
+eschatological world-view, yet one which is modern through and through
+because _His_ mighty spirit pervades it.
+
+This Jesus is far greater than the one conceived in modern terms: he
+is really a superhuman personality. With his death he destroyed the
+form of his “Weltanschauung,” rendering his own eschatology
+impossible. Thereby he gives to all peoples and to all times the right
+to apprehend him in terms of their thoughts and conceptions, in order
+that his spirit may pervade their “Weltanschauung” as it quickened and
+transfigured the Jewish eschatology.
+
+Therefore may modern theology, just by reason of a genuine historical
+knowledge, claim freedom of movement, without being hampered
+continually by petty historical expedients which nowadays are often
+resorted to at the expense of historical veracity. Theology is not
+bound to graze in a paddock. It is free, for its task is to found our
+Christian view of the world solely upon the personality of Jesus
+Christ, irrespective of the [pg 252] form in which it expressed itself
+in his time. He himself has destroyed this form with his death.
+History prompts theology to this unhistorical step.
+
+As Jesus gave up the ghost, the Roman centurion said, “Truly this man
+was the Son of God” (Mk 15:39). Thus at the moment of his death the
+lofty dignity of Jesus was set free for expression in all tongues,
+among all nations, and for all philosophies.
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 253]
+
+CHAPTER X
+
+SUMMARY OF THE LIFE OF JESUS
+
+
+THE “Life of Jesus” is limited to the last months of his existence on
+earth. At the season of the summer seed-sowing he began his ministry
+and ended it upon the cross at Easter of the following year.
+
+His public ministry may be counted in weeks. The first period extends
+from seed time to harvest; the second comprises the days of his
+appearance in Jerusalem. Autumn and winter he spent in heathen
+territory alone with his Disciples.
+
+Before him the Baptist had appeared and had borne emphatic witness to
+the nearness of the Kingdom and the coming of the mighty pre-messianic
+Forerunner, with whose appearance the pouring out of the Holy Ghost
+should take place. According to Joel, this among other miracles was
+the sign that the Day of Judgment was imminent. John himself never
+imagined that he was this Forerunner; nor did such a thought occur to
+the people, for he had not ushered in the age of miracles. [pg 254] He
+is a prophet,—that was the universal opinion.
+
+About Jesus’ earlier development we know nothing. All lies in the
+dark. Only this is sure: at his baptism the secret of his existence
+was disclosed to him,—namely, that he was the one whom God had
+destined to be the Messiah. With this revelation he was complete, and
+underwent no further development. For now he is assured that, until
+the near coming of the messianic age which was to reveal his glorious
+dignity, he has to labour for the Kingdom as the unrecognised and
+hidden Messiah, and must approve and purify himself together with his
+friends in the final Affliction.
+
+The idea of suffering was thus included in his messianic
+consciousness, just as the notion of the pre-messianic Affliction was
+indissolubly connected with the expectation of the Kingdom. Earthly
+events could not influence Jesus’ course. His secret raised him above
+the world, even though he still walked as a man among men.
+
+His appearing and his proclamation have to do only with the near
+approach of the Kingdom. His preaching is that of John, only that he
+confirms it by signs. Although his secret controls all his preaching,
+yet no [pg 255] one may know of it, for he must remain unrecognised
+till the new æon dawns.
+
+Like his secret, so also is his whole ethical outlook ruled by the
+contrast of “Now and Then.” It is a question of repentance unto the
+Kingdom, and the conquest of the righteousness which renders one fit
+for it,—for only the righteous inherit the Kingdom. This righteousness
+is higher than that of the Law, for he knows that the law and the
+Prophets prophesied until John,—with the Baptist, however, one finds
+oneself in the ages of the Forerunner, immediately before the dawn of
+the Kingdom.
+
+Therefore, as the future Messiah, he must preach and work that higher
+morality. The poor in spirit, the meek, those that endure suffering,
+those that hunger and thirst after righteousness, the merciful, the
+pure in heart, the peacemakers,—these all are blessed because by this
+mark they are destined for the Kingdom.
+
+Behind this ethical preaching looms the secret of the Kingdom of God.
+That which, as performed by the individual, constitutes moral renewal
+in preparation for the Kingdom, signifies, as accomplished by the
+community, a fact through which the realisation of the Kingdom in a
+supernatural way will [pg 256] be hastened. Thus individual and social
+ethics blend in the great secret. As the plentiful harvest, by God’s
+wonderful working, follows mysteriously upon the sowing, so comes also
+the Kingdom of God, by reason of man’s moral renewal, but
+substantially without his assistance.
+
+The parable contains also the suggestion of a chronological
+coincidence. Jesus spoke at the season of seed-sowing and expected the
+Kingdom at the time of the harvest. Nature was God’s clock. With the
+last seed-sowing he had set it for the last time.
+
+The secret of the Kingdom of God is the transfiguration in celestial
+light of the ethics of the early prophets, according to which also the
+final state of glory will be brought about by God only on condition of
+the moral conversion of Israel. In sovereign style Jesus effects the
+synthesis of the apocalyptic of Daniel and the ethics of the Prophets.
+With him it is not a question of eschatological ethics, rather is his
+world view an ethical eschatology. As such it is modern.
+
+The signs and wonders also come under a double point of view. For the
+people they are merely to confirm the preaching of the nearness of the
+Kingdom. Whosoever now does not believe that the time is so far
+advanced, [pg 257] he has no excuse. The signs and wonders condemn
+him, for they plainly attest that the power of ungodliness is coming
+to an end.
+
+For Jesus, however, there lay behind this affirmation the secret of
+the Kingdom of God. When the Pharisees wished to ascribe these very
+signs to the power of Satan, he alluded to the secret by a parable. By
+his acts he binds the power of ungodliness, as one falls upon a strong
+man and renders him harmless before attempting to rob him of his
+possessions. Wherefore, in sending out his Apostles, he gives them,
+together with the charge to preach, authority over unclean spirits.
+They are to deal the last blow.
+
+A third element in the preaching of the Kingdom was the intimation of
+the pre-messianic Affliction. The believers must be prepared to pass
+with him through that time of trial, in which they are to prove
+themselves the elect of the Kingdom by stedfast resistance to the last
+attack of the power of the world. This attack will concentrate about
+his person; therefore they must stand by him even unto death. Only
+life in God’s Kingdom is real life. The Son of Man will judge them
+according as they have stood by him, Jesus, or no. Thus Jesus at the
+conclusion of the [pg 258] Beatitudes turns to his own Disciples with
+the words “Blessed are ye when men persecute you for my sake.” The
+charge to the Apostles turns into a consideration of the Affliction.
+The embassage to the Baptist about the imminence of the Kingdom
+concludes with the word “Blessed is he whosoever shall not be offended
+in me.” At Bethsaida, the morning after he had celebrated the Supper
+by the seashore, he adjured the multitude to stand by him, even when
+he shall become an object of shame and scorn in this sinful
+world,—their blessedness depends upon this.
+
+This Affliction meant not only a probation but also an atonement. It
+is foreordained in the messianic drama, because God requires of the
+adherents of the Kingdom a satisfaction for their transgressions in
+this æon. But he is almighty. In this omnipotence he determines the
+question of membership in the Kingdom and the place each shall occupy
+therein, without himself being bound by any determining cause
+whatsoever. So also in view of his omnipotence the necessity of the
+final Affliction is only relative. He can abrogate it. The last three
+petitions of the Lord’s Prayer contemplate this possibility. After
+beseeching God that he would send the [pg 259] Kingdom, that his name
+might be blessed and his will be done on earth as it is in heaven, men
+beg him to forgive them the transgressions and spare them the
+Temptation, rescuing them directly from the power of evil.
+
+This was the content of Jesus’ preaching during the first period. He
+remained throughout this time on the northern shore of the lake.
+Chorazin, Bethsaida, and Capernaum were the principal centres of his
+activity. From thence he made an excursion across the lake to the
+region of the Ten Cities and a journey to Nazareth.
+
+Precisely in the towns which were the scenes of his chief activity he
+encountered unbelief. The curse which he must utter over them is proof
+of it. The Pharisees, moreover, were hostile and sought to discredit
+him with the people, on account of his very miracles. In Nazareth he
+had experience of the fact that a prophet is without honour in his own
+country.
+
+Thus the Galilean period was anything but a fortunate one. Such
+outward ill[ ]success, however, signified nothing for the coming of
+the Kingdom. The unbelieving cities merely brought down judgment upon
+themselves. Jesus had other mysterious indications for measuring the
+approach of the Kingdom. By [pg 260] these he recognised that the time
+was come. For this reason he sent forth the Apostles just as they were
+returning from Nazareth, _for it was harvest time._
+
+By means of their preaching and their signs the reputation of his
+mighty personality spread far and wide. Now begins the time of
+success! John in prison hears of it and sends his disciples to ask him
+if he is “he that should come,” for from his miracles he concluded
+that the time of the mighty Forerunner whom he had heralded had
+arrived.
+
+Jesus performed signs, his Disciples had power over the spirits. When
+he spoke of the Judgment he laid stress upon the fact that the Son of
+Man stood in such solidarity with him that he would recognise only
+such as had stood by him, Jesus. The people therefore opined that he
+might be the one for whom all were looking, and the Baptist desired to
+have assurance on this point.
+
+Jesus cannot tell him who he is. “The time is far advanced”—that is
+the gist of his reply. After the departure of the messengers Jesus
+turned to the people and signified in mysterious terms that the time
+is indeed much further advanced than the Baptist dreamed in asking
+such a question. The era of the Forerunner had already begun [pg 261]
+with the appearance of the Baptist himself. From that time on the
+Kingdom of God is with violence compelled to draw near. He himself who
+asks the question is Elijah—if they could comprehend it. Men were not
+able to perceive that the man in prison was Elijah. When he began his
+preaching, they knew not the time. That was due not alone to the fact
+that John performed no miracles, but to the hardening of their hearts.
+They are unreasonable children that do not know what they want. Now
+there is one here who performs signs,—but even on his testimony they
+do not believe the nearness of the Kingdom. So the curse upon Chorazin
+and Bethsaida concludes the “eulogy upon the Baptist.”
+
+The sending of the Twelve was the last effort for bringing about the
+Kingdom. As they then returned, announced to him their success, and
+reported that they had power over the evil spirits, it signified to
+him, _all is ready._ So now he expects the dawn of the Kingdom in the
+most immediate future,—it had seemed to him, indeed, already doubtful
+whether the Twelve would return before this event. He had even said to
+them that the appearing of the Son of Man would overtake them before
+they had gone through the cities of Israel.
+
+[pg 262]
+
+His work is done. Now he requires to collect himself and to be alone
+with his Disciples. They enter a boat and sail along the coast towards
+the north. But the multitude which had gathered about him at the
+preaching of the Disciples, in order to await the Kingdom with him,
+now follow after them along the shore and surprise them at their
+landing upon a lonely beach.
+
+As it was evening the Disciples desired that he would send the people
+away to find food in the neighbouring hamlets. For him, however, the
+hour is too solemn to be profaned by an earthly meal. Before sending
+them away he bids them sit down and celebrates with them an
+anticipation of the messianic feast. To the community that was
+gathered about him to await the Kingdom, he, the Messiah to be,
+distributes hallowed food, mysteriously consecrating them thereby to
+be partakers of the heavenly banquet. As they did not know his secret,
+they understood as little as did his Disciples the significance of his
+act. They comprehended only that it meant something wonderfully
+solemn, and they questioned within themselves about it.
+
+Thereupon he sent them away. He ordered the Disciples to skirt the
+coast to Bethsaida. [pg 263] For his part he betook himself to the
+mountain to pray and then followed along the shore on foot. As his
+figure appeared to them in the obscurity of the night they
+believed—under the impression of the Supper where he stood before them
+in mysterious majesty—that his supernatural apparition approached them
+over the turbulent waves through which they were toiling to the shore.
+
+The morning after the Supper by the seashore he collected the people
+and the Disciples about him at Bethsaida and warned them to stand by
+him and not to deny him in the humiliation.
+
+Six days later he goes with the Three to the mountain where he had
+prayed alone. There he is revealed to them as the Messiah. On the way
+home he forbade them to say anything about it until at the
+Resurrection he should be revealed in the glory of the Son of Man.
+They, however, still remark the failure of Elijah to appear, who yet
+must come before the Resurrection of the dead can take place. They
+were not present at the eulogy over the Baptist to hear the mysterious
+intimation he let fall. He must therefore make it clear to them now
+that the beheaded prisoner was Elijah. They should take no offence at
+his fate, for it was so ordained. He also who [pg 264] is to be Son of
+Man must suffer many things and be set at naught. So the Scripture
+will have it.
+
+The Kingdom which Jesus expected so very soon failed to make its
+appearance. This first eschatological delay and postponement was
+momentous for the fate of the Gospel tradition, inasmuch as now all
+the events related to the mission of the Twelve became unintelligible,
+because all consciousness was lost of the fact that the most intense
+eschatological expectation then inspired Jesus and his following.
+Hence it is that precisely this period is confused and obscure in the
+accounts, and all the more so because several incidents remained
+enigmatical to those even who had a part in the experience. Thus the
+sacramental Supper by the seashore became in the tradition a
+“miraculous feeding,” in a sense totally different from that which
+Jesus had in mind.
+
+Therewith, too, the motives of Jesus’ disappearance became
+unintelligible. It seems to be a case of flight, while on the other
+hand the accounts give no hint how matters had come to such a pass.
+The key to the historical understanding of the life of Jesus lies in
+the perception of the two corresponding points at which the
+eschatological expectation [pg 265] culminated. During the days at
+Jerusalem there was a return of the enthusiasm which had already
+showed itself in the days at Bethsaida. Without this assumption we are
+left with a yawning gap in the Gospel tradition between the mission of
+the Twelve and the journey to Jerusalem. Historians find themselves
+compelled to _invent_ a period of Galilean defeat in order to
+establish some connection between the recorded facts,—as if a section
+were missing in our Gospels. _That is the weak point of all the “lives
+of Jesus.”_
+
+By his retreat into the region of the Genesareth Jesus withdrew
+himself from the Pharisees and the people in order to be alone with
+his Disciples, as he had in vain tried to do since their return from
+their mission. He urgently needed such a retreat, for he had to come
+to an understanding about two messianic facts.
+
+Why is the Baptist executed by the secular authority before the
+messianic time has dawned?
+
+Why does the Kingdom fail to appear notwithstanding that the tokens of
+its dawning are present?
+
+The secret is made known to him through the Scripture: God brings the
+Kingdom [pg 266] about _without the general Affliction._ He whom God
+has destined to reign in glory accomplishes it upon himself by being
+tried as a malefactor and condemned. Wherefore the others go free: he
+makes the atonement for them. What though they believe that God
+punishes him, though they become offended in him who preached unto
+them righteousness,—when after his Passion the glory dawns, then shall
+they see that he has suffered for them.
+
+Thus Jesus read in the Prophet Isaiah what God had determined for him,
+the Elect. The end of the Baptist showed him in what form he was
+destined to suffer this condemnation: he must be put to death by the
+secular authority as a malefactor in the sight of all the people.
+Therefore he must make his way up to Jerusalem for the season when all
+Israel is gathered there.
+
+As soon therefore as the time came for the Passover pilgrimage he set
+out with his Disciples. Before they left the north country he asked
+them whom the people took him to be. For reply they could only say
+that he was taken for Elijah. But Peter, mindful of the revelation on
+the mountain near Bethsaida, said: Thou art the Son of God. Whereupon
+Jesus informed them of his secret. [pg 267] Yes, he it is who shall be
+revealed as Son of Man at the Resurrection. But before that, it is
+decreed that he must be delivered to the high priests and elders to be
+condemned and put to death. God so wills it. For this cause they are
+going up to Jerusalem.
+
+Peter resents this new disclosure, for in the revelation on the
+mountain there was nothing said to such an effect. He takes Jesus
+apart and appeals to him energetically. Whereupon he is sharply
+rebuked as one who gives ear to human considerations when God speaks.
+
+This journey to Jerusalem was the funeral march to victory. Within the
+secret of the Passion lay concealed the secret of the Kingdom. They
+marched after him, and knew only that when all this was accomplished
+he would be Messiah. They were sorrowful for what must come to pass;
+they did not understand why it must be so, and they durst not ask him.
+But above all, their thoughts were occupied about the conditions that
+awaited them in the approaching Kingdom. When once he was Messiah,
+what would they then be? That occupied their minds, and about it they
+talked with one another. But he reproved them and explained why he
+must [pg 268] suffer. Only through humiliation and the meek sacrifice
+of service is one prepared to reign in the Kingdom of God. Therefore
+must he, who shall exercise supreme authority as Son of Man, make now
+an atonement for many by giving up his life in meek sacrifice.
+
+With the arrival upon the Jewish territory begins the second period of
+Jesus’ public ministry. He is again surrounded by the people. In
+Jericho a multitude gathers to see him pass through. By the healing of
+a blind beggar, the son of Timæus, the people are convinced that he is
+the great Forerunner, just as they thought already in Galilee. The
+jubilant multitudes prepare for him a festal entry into Jerusalem. As
+the one who according to prophecy precedes the Messiah they acclaim
+him with _Hosanna. Hosanna in the highest,_ however, is their acclaim
+of the Kingdom about to appear. Therewith the same situation is
+reached again as in the great days near Bethsaida: Jesus is thronged
+by the multitudes expectant of the Kingdom.
+
+The instruction contained in the parables which were uttered at
+Jerusalem has to do with the nearness of the Kingdom. They are cries
+of warning, with a note of menace as well for those that harden their
+hearts [pg 269] against the message. What agitates men’s minds is not
+the question, Is he the Messiah, or no? but, Is the Kingdom so near as
+he says, or no?
+
+The Pharisees and Scribes knew not what hour had struck. They showed a
+complete lack of sensibility for the nearness of the Kingdom, for else
+they could not have propounded to him questions which in view of the
+advanced hour had lost all significance. What difference does it make
+now about the Roman tribute? What do the farfetched Sadduceean
+arguments amount to against the possibility of the resurrection of the
+dead? Soon, with the advent of the Kingdom, all earthly rule is done
+away, as well as the earthly human nature itself.
+
+If only they understood the signs of the times! He proposes to them
+two questions, which should cause them to ponder and hence take note
+that the time they live in is pregnant with a great secret which is
+not dreamed of in the learning of the Scribes.
+
+_By what authority did the Baptist act?_ If they but knew that he was
+the Forerunner, as Jesus had mysteriously suggested to the people,
+then they must know too that the hour of the Kingdom had struck.
+
+_How is the Messiah at one time David’s [pg 270] Son—that is,
+subordinate to him; at another, David’s Lord—that is, his superior?_
+If they could explain that, then would they understand also how he who
+now labours lowly and unknown in behalf of God’s Kingdom shall be
+revealed as Lord and Christ.
+
+But as it is they do not even suspect that the messianic indications
+harbour _secrets._ With all their learning they are blind leaders of
+the blind, who, instead of making the people receptive for the
+Kingdom, harden their hearts, and instead of drawing out from the Law
+the higher morality which renders men meet for the Kingdom, labour
+against it with their petty outward precepts and draw the people after
+them to perdition. Hence: Woe to the Pharisees and scribes!
+
+True, even among them are such as have kept an open eye. The scribe
+who put to him the question about the great commandment and welcomed
+his reply is commended as “having understanding” and therefore “not
+far from the Kingdom of God,”—for he shall belong to it when it
+appears.
+
+But the mass of the Pharisees and scribes understand him so little
+that they decree his death. They had no effective charge to bring
+against his behaviour. A disrespectful word about the Temple—that was
+all. [pg 271] _Then Judas betrayed to them the secret._ Now he was
+condemned.
+
+In the neighbourhood of death Jesus draws himself up to the same
+triumphant stature as in the days by the seaside,—for with death comes
+the Kingdom. On that occasion he had celebrated with the believers a
+mystic feast as an anticipation of the messianic banquet; so now he
+rises at the end of the last earthly supper and distributes to the
+Disciples hallowed food and drink, intimating to them with a solemn
+voice that this is the last earthly meal, for they are soon to be
+united at the banquet in the Father’s Kingdom. Two corresponding
+parables suggest the secret of the Passion. For him, the bread and
+wine which he hands them at the Supper are his body and his blood, for
+by the sacrifice of himself unto death he ushers in the messianic
+feast. The parabolic saying remained obscure to the Disciples. It was
+also not intended for them, its purpose was not to explain anything to
+them,—_for it was an enigma-parable._
+
+Now, as the great hour approaches, he seeks again, as after the Supper
+by the seashore, a lonely spot where he may pray. He bears the
+Affliction for others. Therefore he can say to the Disciples
+beforehand that in the [pg 272] night they shall all be offended in
+him—and he does not need to condemn them, for the Scripture had so
+determined it. What endless peace lies in this word! Indeed, he
+comforts _them:_ after the Resurrection he will gather them about him
+and go before them in messianic glory unto Galilee, retracing the same
+road along which they had followed him on his way to death.
+
+It still remained, however, within the scope of God’s omnipotence to
+eliminate the Affliction for him also. Wherefore, as once he prayed
+with the believers, “And lead us not into the Temptation,” so now he
+prays for himself, that God may permit the cup of suffering to pass
+his lips by. True, if it be God’s will, he feels himself strong enough
+to drink it. He is sorrowful rather for the Three. The sons of
+Zebedee, to gain the seats upon the throne, have boasted that they can
+drink with him the cup of suffering and receive with him the baptism
+of suffering. Peter swore that he would stand by him even if he must
+die with him. He knows not what God has ordained for them,—whether he
+will lay upon them what they desire to undertake. Therefore he bids
+them remain near him. And while he prays God for himself he thinks of
+them and twice wakes them up, bidding [pg 273] them remain awake and
+beseech God that he may not lead them through the Temptation.
+
+The third time he comes to them the betrayer with his band is near.
+The hour is come,—therefore he draws himself up to the full stature of
+his majesty. He is alone, his Disciples flee.
+
+The hearing of witnesses is merely a pretence. After they have gone
+the High Priest puts directly the question about the messiahship. “I
+am,” said Jesus, referring them at the same time to the hour when he
+shall appear as Son of Man on the clouds of heaven surrounded by the
+angels. Therefore he was found guilty of blasphemy and condemned to
+death.
+
+On the afternoon of the fourteenth of Nisan, as they ate the Paschal
+lamb at even, he uttered a loud cry and died.
+
+
+
+
+
+[pg 274]
+
+POSTSCRIPT
+
+
+THE judgments passed upon this realistic account of the life of Jesus
+may be very diverse, according to the dogmatic, historical, or
+literary point of view of the critics. Only, with the _aim_ of the
+book may they not find fault: _to depict the figure of Jesus in its
+overwhelming heroic greatness and to impress it upon the modern age
+and upon the modern theology._
+
+The heroic recedes from our modern “Weltanschauung,” our Christianity,
+and our conception of the person of Jesus. Wherefore men have
+humanised and humbled him. Renan has stripped off his halo and reduced
+him to a sentimental figure, coward spirits like Schopenhauer have
+dared to appeal to him for their enervating philosophy, and our
+generation has modernised him, with the notion that it could
+comprehend his character and development psychologically.
+
+We must go back to the point where we can feel again the heroic in
+Jesus. Before that mysterious Person, who, in the form of his time,
+knew that he was creating [pg 275] upon the foundation of his life and
+death a moral world _which bears his name,_ we must be forced to lay
+our faces in the dust, without daring even to wish to understand his
+nature. Only then can the heroic in our Christianity and in our
+“Weltanschauung” be again revived.
+
+
+
+
+
+TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
+
+I have used scans of two copies of the original version of the book:
+one from the New York Public library (scanned by Google) and one from
+the University of Princeton. This was necessary because both books had
+considerable hand-written additions/changes that obscured the original
+text. Both are available from the Internet Archive.
+
+The formatting of both the .htm and .txt files has followed that of a
+similar book, The Quest of the Historic Jesus, already in Project
+Gutenberg. Evidently this was a poor choice since several of the problems
+identified in my first submission were copied from that book.
+
+I have included page numbers in the format [pg xxx] for
+both .htm and .txt.
+
+I have made several changes to the printer’s text, which are listed
+below. Each change has been surrounded with [] characters, if the
+change was only an addition of some characters. If some characters
+have been changed, the correct word is placed after the incorrect word
+and surrounded with [] characters. Scripture references in the
+original book are formatted as (chapter)(verse). In the .txt version I
+have used the more common form (chapter):(verse).
+
+Within the printed book both ill success and illsuccess appear. The
+two-word version seemed the better choice. (see 4. below)
+
+Several terms appear in both two-word and hypenated forms:
+high-priest, morning-glow, world-clock, modern-historical, far-reaching,
+passion-idea, coming-one, jesus christ. I left all these as they are in the
+book. I decided to harmonize fore-ordained (see below).
+
+ 1. page 5: self-(line break)consciousness becomes selfconsciousness
+ (as on page 138).
+ 2. page 64: Mk 2:23-3, 6 becomes Mk 2:23-[3:6]
+ 3. page 67 (twice), 152, 157, 167: ff) changed to ff[.])
+ 4. page 68, 69, 87, 116, 259, : illsuccess changed to ill[]success
+ 5. page 89: comission changed to com[m]ssion
+ 6. page 90: Corazin changed to C[h]orazin
+ 7. page 117: [not] inserted into Mt 10:5, 6
+ 8. page 120: dominination changed to domination
+ 9. page 140: scripture reference corrected from Joel 3:28 to 2:28
+ 10. page 213: casual changed to causal
+ 11. page 236: Isaiah 40:66 changed to Isaiah 40-66
+ 12. page 242: changed fore-ordained to foreordained
+
+In the .txt version I have used utf8 encoding and the following markers:
+
+ 1. italic text surrounded by _
+ 2. footnote references in the form _(_number_)_
+
+
+
+
+
+
+*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 75886 ***
diff --git a/75886-h/75886-h.htm b/75886-h/75886-h.htm
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..ff0c7ab
--- /dev/null
+++ b/75886-h/75886-h.htm
@@ -0,0 +1,7220 @@
+<!DOCTYPE html>
+<html lang="en">
+<head>
+ <meta http-equiv="content-type" content="text/html; charset=utf-8">
+ <title>The Mystery of the Kingdom of God | Project Gutenberg</title>
+ <meta name="author" content="Albert Schweitzer">
+ <meta name="publisher" content="Actonian Press">
+ <meta name="generator" content="BBEdit 9.6">
+ <style>
+
+#pg-header div, #pg-footer div {
+ all: initial;
+ display: block;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 1em;
+ margin-left: 2em;
+}
+#pg-footer li {
+ all: initial;
+ display: block;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 1em;
+ text-indent: -0.6em;
+}
+#pg-footer #project-gutenberg-license {
+ font-size: 110%;
+ margin-top: 0;
+ margin-bottom: 0;
+ text-align: center;
+}
+#pg-header-heading {
+ all: inherit;
+ text-align: center;
+ font-size: 120%;
+ font-weight:bold;
+}
+#pg-footer-heading {
+ all: inherit;
+ text-align: center;
+ font-size: 120%;
+ font-weight: normal;
+ margin-top: 0;
+ margin-bottom: 0;
+}
+#pg-header #pg-machine-header p {
+ text-indent: -4em;
+ margin-left: 4em;
+ margin-top: 1em;
+ margin-bottom: 0;
+ font-size: medium
+}
+#pg-header #pg-header-authlist {
+ all: initial;
+ margin-top: 0;
+ margin-bottom: 0;
+}
+#pg-header #pg-machine-header strong {
+ font-weight: normal;
+}
+#pg-header #pg-start-separator, #pg-footer #pg-end-separator {
+ margin-bottom: 3em;
+ margin-left: 0;
+ margin-right: auto;
+ margin-top: 2em;
+ text-align: center
+}
+
+ h2 {margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; text-align: center}
+ h4 {margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; text-align: center}
+ h3 {margin-top: 1em; margin-bottom: 1em; text-align: left; font-style: italic}
+ .drop { text-indent: 0pt}
+ .drop:first-letter { font-size:xx-large}
+
+.tei {
+ margin: 0;
+ padding: 0;
+ font-size: 100%;
+ font-weight: normal;
+ font-style: normal
+ }
+body.tei {
+ margin: 4ex 10%;
+ text-align: justify
+ }
+div.tei {
+ margin: 2em 0
+ }
+p.tei {
+ margin: 0 0 1em 0;
+ text-indent: 0
+ }
+blockquote.tei {
+ margin: 2em 4em
+ }
+hr.doublepage {
+ margin: 4em 0;
+ height: 5px
+ }
+hr.page {
+ margin: 4em 0;
+ height: 2px
+ }
+ul.tei-index {
+ list-style-type: none
+ }
+dl.tei {
+ margin: 1em 0
+ }
+span.tei-pb {
+ position: absolute;
+ left: 1%;
+ width: 8%;
+ font-style: normal
+ }
+table.tei {
+ border-collapse: collapse
+ }
+:link {
+ border: none
+ }
+:visited {
+ border: none
+ }
+ </style>
+<!--
+Version created for Project Gutenberg April 2025
+
+ p {text-indent: 2em; margin-bottom: 0em; margin-top: 0em; padding-left: -2em;}
+
+-->
+</head>
+<body class="tei">
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 75886 ***</div>
+<div class="tei" style="margin-bottom: 5.00em; margin-top: 5.00em">
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center"><span style="font-size: 173%">THE MYSTERY OF</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.73em"><span style="font-size: 173%">THE KINGDOM OF GOD</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center"><span style="font-size: 120%">THE SECRET OF</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.20em"><span style="font-size: 120%">JESUS’ MESSIAHSHIP AND PASSION</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.20em"><span style="font-size: 120%">BY</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.44em"><span style="font-size: 144%">ALBERT SCHWEITZER</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.00em">Author of “The Quest of the Historical Jesus”</p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.44em"><span style="font-size: 144%">Translated With an Introduction By</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.20em"><span style="font-size: 120%">WALTER LOWRIE</span></p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.00em">NEW YORK</p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.00em">DODD, MEAD AND COMPANY</p>
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1.00em">1914</p>
+</div>
+<div class="tei" style="text-align: center">
+<img alt="Cover Art" src="images/cover.jpg" id="img_images_cover.jpg">
+</div>
+<hr class="page">
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<p style="text-align: center; line-height: 0">DEDICATED</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">WITH SINCERE RESPECT</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">AND DEVOTION</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">TO</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center"><b>DR. H. J. HOLTZMANN</b></p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">BY</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">HIS GRATEFUL PUPIL</p>
+<p style="line-height: 0; text-align: center">ALBERT SCHWEITZER</p>
+
+<hr class="page">
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page003">[pg 003]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg003"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_p" class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 3.46em; margin-top: 3.46em">
+<span style="font-size: 173%">PREFACE</span></h2>
+
+<p class="drop tei">THE attempt to write a life of Jesus, commencing not at
+the beginning but in the middle, with the thought of the
+Passion, must of necessity sometime be made. Strange
+that it has not been made earlier, for it is in the air!</p>
+
+<p>The fact is that all presentations of the life of Jesus
+are satisfactory up to a certain point,—the inception of
+the thought of the Passion. There, however, the
+connection fails. Not one of them succeeds in rendering
+intelligible why Jesus now suddenly counts his death necessary,
+and in what sense he conceives it as a saving act. In order
+to establish this connection one must try the experiment
+of making the thought of the Passion the point of
+departure, for the sake of rendering the former and latter
+periods of the life of Jesus comprehensible. If we do not
+understand the idea of the Passion, may not that be due
+to the fact that we have formed an erroneous notion of
+the first period of the life of Jesus and so have precluded
+for ourselves in advance all possibility of attaining insight
+into the genesis of the Passion idea?</p>
+
+<p>The last years of research have revealed on
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page004">[pg 004]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg004"></a>
+what slight grounds our historical conception of the life of
+Jesus really rests. It cannot be concealed that we are
+confronted by a difficult antinomy. Either Jesus really took
+himself to be the Messiah, or (as a new tendency of the
+study now seems to suggest) this dignity was first ascribed
+to him by the early Church. In either case the “Life of
+Jesus” remains equally enigmatical.</p>
+
+
+<p>If Jesus really regarded himself as Messiah, how
+comes it that he acted as if he were not Messiah? How is
+it to be explained that his office and dignity seem to have
+nothing to do with his public activity? How are we to
+account for the fact that only after his public activity was
+ended (not to reckon the last few days at Jerusalem) did
+he disclose to his Disciples who he was, and at the same
+time enjoined upon them strict silence with regard to this
+<i>secret?</i> It explains nothing to suggest that such conduct
+was prescribed by motives of prudence or by pedagogical
+considerations. In the Synoptical accounts where is there
+even the slightest hint that Jesus wished to educate the
+Disciples and the people up to a knowledge of his
+messiahship?</p>
+
+<p>The more one thinks about it the more clearly one
+recognises how little the assumption that Jesus took
+himself to be the Messiah
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page005">[pg 005]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg005"></a>
+suffices to explain his “life,”
+inasmuch as no connection whatever results between his
+selfconsciousness and his public activity. It may sound banal
+to ask the question, but it is one which cannot on that
+account be avoided, why Jesus never tried through
+instruction to raise the people up to the new ethical
+conception of messiahship. The attempt would not have been so
+hopeless as one commonly assumes, for at that time there
+was a deep spiritual movement going on in Israel. Why
+did Jesus maintain persistent silence about his conception
+of messiahship?</p>
+
+<p>On the other hand, if one assumes that he did not take
+himself to be the Messiah, it must be explained how he
+came to be made Messiah after his death. Certainly it
+was not on the ground of his public activity, for this had
+nothing to do with his messiahship. But then again, what
+was the significance of the revelation of the secret of his
+messiahship to the Twelve and the confession before the
+high-priest? It is a mere act of violence to declare these
+scenes unhistorical. If one resolves upon such aggression,
+what is there then left of the whole Gospel tradition?</p>
+
+<p>And withal one should not forget, that if Jesus did not
+take himself to be the Messiah, this means the death
+blow to the Christian
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page006">[pg 006]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg006"></a>
+faith. The judgment of the early
+Church is not binding upon us. The Christian religion is
+founded upon the messianic consciousness of Jesus,
+whereby he himself in a signal manner sharply
+distinguished his own person from the rank of the other
+preachers of religious morality. If now he did not take
+himself to be the Messiah, then the whole of Christianity
+rests—to use honestly a much perverted and abused
+word—upon a “value judgment” formed by the adherents of
+Jesus of Nazareth after his death!</p>
+
+<p>Let us not forget that we are dealing here with an
+antinomy from which only one conclusion can be drawn,
+namely, that what has hitherto been accounted the
+“historical” conception of the messianic consciousness of Jesus
+is false, because it does not explain the history. Only that
+conception is historical which makes it intelligible how
+Jesus could take himself to be the Messiah without finding
+himself obliged to make this consciousness of his tell as
+a factor in his public ministry for the Kingdom of
+God,—rather, how he was actually compelled to make the
+messianic dignity of his person a secret! Why was his
+messiahship a secret of Jesus? To explain this means to
+understand his life.</p>
+
+<p>This new conception of the life of Jesus has
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page007">[pg 007]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg007"></a>
+grown out of a perception of the nature of this antinomy. How far
+it is capable of solving the problem may be determined
+by the result of further discussion. I publish this new view
+as a <i>sketch,</i> since it belongs of necessity within the frame
+of this work on the Lord’s Supper. I hope, however, from
+the criticism of its general lines to reach greater clearness
+with regard to many exegetical details before I can think
+of giving these thoughts definitive shape in an elaborated
+“life of Jesus.”</p>
+
+<p>I have generally been able only to suggest the literary
+foundation, as comports with the sketchy character of this
+presentation. Any one, however, who is thoroughly
+familiar with this subject will readily perceive that behind
+many an assertion here made there lurks more detailed
+study of Synoptic texts than appears at the first glance.</p>
+
+<p>For the Synoptic question especially, the new
+conception of the life of Jesus is of great importance. From this
+point of view the composition of the Synoptists appears
+much simpler and clearer. The artificial redaction with
+which scholars have felt themselves compelled to operate
+is very much reduced. The Sermon on the Mount, the
+commission to the Twelve, and the eulogy of the Baptist
+are not “composite speeches,” but were for the most
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page008">[pg 008]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg008"></a>
+part delivered as they have been handed down to us. Also the
+form of the prophecy of the Passion and the Resurrection
+is not to be ascribed to the early Church, but Jesus did
+actually speak to his Disciples in these words about his
+future. This very simplification of the literary problem
+and the fact that the credibility of the Gospel tradition is
+thereby enhanced is of great weight for the new
+interpretation of the life of Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>This simplification rests, however, not upon a naïve
+attitude towards the Gospel accounts, but is brought
+about by insight into the laws whereby the early
+Christian conception and estimate of the person of Jesus
+conditioned the representation of his life and work. Here is
+a question which hitherto has not been treated perhaps
+systematically enough.</p>
+
+<p>On the one hand it is indeed certain that the early
+Church had a significant influence upon the representation
+of the public activity of Jesus. But on the other hand we
+have again in the very nature of the early Christian faith
+justification for the presumption that the Church did not
+alter the main lines of the account, and above all that it
+did not “fabricate facts” in the life of Jesus. For in fact
+the early Church maintained an attitude of indifference
+towards the life of Jesus as such!
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page009">[pg 009]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg009"></a>
+The early Christian
+faith had not the least interest in this earthly life, because
+the messiahship of Jesus was grounded upon his
+resurrection, not upon his earthly ministry, and the disciples
+looking forward expectantly to the coming of the Messiah in
+glory were interested in the earthly life of Jesus of
+Nazareth only in so far as it served to illustrate his sayings.
+There was absolutely no such thing as an early Christian
+conception of the life of Jesus, and the Synoptic Gospels
+contain nothing of the sort. They string together the
+narratives of the events of his public ministry without
+trying to make them intelligible in their sequence and
+connection, or to enable us to perceive the “development” of
+Jesus. Then in the course of time, as the eschatological
+expectation waned, as the emphasis upon the earthly
+appearing of Jesus as the Messiah began to preponderate,
+and thus led to a particular view (a theory) of the life
+of Jesus, the accounts of his public ministry had already
+assumed so fixed a form that they could not be affected
+by this process. The Fourth Gospel furnishes a historical
+picture of the life of Jesus, but it stands in much the same
+relation to the Synoptic account of the public ministry of
+Jesus as does Chronicles to the books of Samuel and
+Kings. The
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page010">[pg 010]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg010"></a>
+difference between the Fourth Gospel and the
+Synoptics consists precisely in the fact that the former
+furnishes a “life of Jesus” whereas the Synoptics give an
+account of his public ministry.</p>
+
+
+<p>The faith of the early Church influenced by immanent
+laws the mode in which the public ministry of Jesus was
+represented, just as the Deuteronomic reform affected
+men’s conception of the course of events during the
+period of the judges and the Kings. It was a case of
+inevitable and unconscious shifting of the perspective. The
+new view here presented takes due account of this
+shifting of the perspective, and from this reckoning it results
+that the influence which the belief of the early Christian
+community exerted upon the Synoptical accounts does not
+go nearly so deep as we have hitherto been inclined to
+suppose.</p>
+
+<p><i>Strassburg, August, 1901.</i></p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page011">[pg 011]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg011"></a></p>
+<hr class="page">
+<p class="tei" style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 3.46em; margin-top: 3.46em">
+<span style="font-size: 173%; text-align: center">TABLE OF CONTENTS</span></p>
+<ul class="tei tei-index">
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_p">Author’s Preface [3]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_i">Translator’s Introduction [17]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_12">Footnotes</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_1" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER I</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_1" style="font-size: 90%">THE MODERN “HISTORICAL” SOLUTION</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_1">1. Summary account of it [59]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_2">2. The four assumptions upon which it is based [63]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_3">3. The two contrasted periods (first assumption) [64]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_4">4. The influence of the Pauline theory of the atonement upon the formulation of the Synoptical prediction of the Passion (second assumption) [70]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_5">5. The Kingdom of God as an ethical entity in the Passion Idea (third assumption) [73]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_6">6. The form of the Prediction of the Passion (fourth assumption) [80]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_1_7">7. Résumé [81]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_2" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER II</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_2" style="font-size: 90%">THE “DEVELOPMENT” OF JESUS</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_2_1">1. The Kingdom of God as an ethical and as an eschatological fact [84]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_2_2">2. The eschatological character of the charge to the Twelve [87]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_2_3">3. The new view [92]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_3" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER III</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_3" style="font-size: 90%">THE PREACHING OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_3_1">1. The new morality as repentance [94]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_3_2">2. The ethics of Jesus and modern ethics [99]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_4" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER IV</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_4" style="font-size: 90%">THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_1">1. The parables of the secret of the Kingdom of God [106]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_2">2. The secret of the Kingdom of God in the address to the people after the mission of the Twelve [110]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_3">3. The secret of the Kingdom of God in the light of the Prophetic and Jewish expectation [112]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_4">4. The secret of the Kingdom of God and the assumption of a fortunate Galilean period [115]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_5">5. The secret of the Kingdom of God and the universalism of Jesus [117]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_6">6. The secret of the Kingdom of God and Jesus’ attitude towards the Law and the State [119]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_4_7">7. The modern element in Jesus’ eschatology [120]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_5" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER V</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_5">The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Thought of the Passion [124]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_6" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER VI</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_6" style="font-size: 90%">THE CHARACTER ASCRIBED TO JESUS ON THE GROUND OF HIS PUBLIC MINISTRY</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_1">1. The problem and the facts [127]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_2">2. Jesus is Elijah through his solidarity with the Son of Man [135]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_3">3. Jesus is Elijah through the signs which proceed from Him [139]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_4">4. The victory over demons and the secret of the Kingdom of God [143]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_5">5. Jesus and the Baptist [145]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_6">6. The Baptist and Jesus [147]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_6_7">7. The blind man at Jericho and the ovation at the entrance of Jesus to Jerusalem [156]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_7" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER VII</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_7" style="font-size:90%">AFTER THE MISSION OF THE TWELVE LITERARY AND HISTORICAL PROBLEMS</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_7_1">1. The voyage on the lake after the return of the Twelve [164]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_7_2">2. The supper by the seashore [168]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_7_3">3. The week at Bethsaida [174]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_8" style="font-size: 130%; text-align: center">CHAPTER VIII</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_8" style="font-size: 90%; text-align: center">THE SECRET OF MESSIAHSHIP</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_8_1">1. From the Mount of Transfiguration to Cæsarea Philippi [180]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_8_2">2. The futuristic character of Jesus’ messiahship [185]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_8_3">3. The Son of Man and the futuristic character of Jesus’ messiahship [190]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_8_4">4. The resurrection of the dead and the futuristic character of Jesus’ messiahship [201]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_8_5">5. The betrayal by Judas—the last disclosure of the secret of messiahship [214]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_9" style="font-size: 130%; text-align: center">CHAPTER IX</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-bottom: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_9" style="font-size: 90%; text-align: center">THE SECRET OF THE PASSION</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_1">1. The pre-messianic affliction [219]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_2">2. The idea of the Passion in the first period [223]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_3">3. The “Temptation” and the divine omnipotence [226]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_4">4. The idea of the Passion in the second period [230]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_5">5. Isaiah 40-66: the secret of the Passion foretold in the Scripture [236]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_6">6. The “human” element in the secret of the Passion [240]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_9_7">7. The idea of the Passion in the primitive Church. The shifting of the perspective [242]</a></li>
+<li style="text-align: center; margin-top: 1em"><a href="#mbp_toc_10" style="font-size: 130%">CHAPTER X</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_10">Summary of the Life of Jesus [253]</a></li>
+<li><a href="#mbp_toc_11">Postscript [274]</a></li>
+</ul>
+
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<h1 style="font-size: 150%; text-align: center">THE MYSTERY OF<br>
+THE KINGDOM OF GOD</h1>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page017">[pg 017]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg017"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_i">AN INTRODUCTION</h2>
+<h4>BY THE TRANSLATOR</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_i_1">1. An Account of Schweitzer’s Work and Its Reception.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">THE work which is here translated was published in
+1901 as the <i>second</i> part of a treatise entitled <i>Das
+Abendmahl.</i> The full title reads: <i>The Lord’s Supper in
+connection with the Life of Jesus and the History of Early
+Christianity.</i> This second part was issued separately
+and bore also the following sub-title: <i>Das Messianitäts
+und Leidensgeheimnis. Eine Skizze des Lebens Jesu.</i></p>
+
+<p>It implies no disparagement of Schweitzer’s novel and
+important study of the Lord’s Supper that this second
+part is here separated from the first and published by
+itself in English. This part is really independent. It has
+moreover a much broader scope and appeals to a far wider
+interest than does the treatise as a whole. There is reason
+to fear that, appearing as a part of a study of the Lord’s
+Supper and under that title, it might be ignored by many
+of the persons who most would desire to read it. The scant
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page018">[pg 018]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg018"></a>
+attention accorded at first to Schweitzer’s work in
+Germany may be ascribed in part to that very cause, and
+there appears to be no other reason to account for the fact
+that the “Sketch” has not yet been publicly noticed in
+England or America, so far as the translator is aware.</p>
+
+<p>It will not be denied, even by those who are least
+inclined to agree with the views of the Author, that this first
+work of the young Strassburg student did not deserve the
+oblivion which seemed to threaten it for some years after
+its appearance. It is manifest now that Schweitzer’s theory,
+to say the least of it, must be <i>reckoned</i> with by every one
+who would seriously study the Gospels or the Life of Jesus.
+Obviously it was not the weakness of the book, but rather
+its strong originality, and in particular the trenchant way
+in which it demolished the “liberal life of Jesus,” which
+accounts for the passive hostility with which it was greeted.
+In fact it contained more than could be readily digested at
+once either by a liberal or a conservative mind. Most of
+the New Testament students in Germany had collaborated
+in the fabrication of the “liberal life of Jesus” and they
+could not patiently endure to see their work destroyed.
+Those among us who fancy that German
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page019">[pg 019]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg019"></a>
+professors are bloodless beings who live in an atmosphere purified of
+passion and prejudice, need to be informed that on the
+contrary they are human, all too human. The animosities of
+party and school and the jealousies of the cathedra have
+been proverbial for generations. The reception accorded
+to Schweitzer’s work does not seem creditable. It was met
+by something like a conspiracy of silence.</p>
+
+<p>Schweitzer, however, <i>compelled</i> attention by the
+publication in 1906 of a much larger work entitled, <i>“Von
+Reimarus zu Wrede,”</i> which is a history of the study of
+the life of Jesus during the last century. A work like this,
+practically the only one of its sort, supplied a felt need and
+could not be passed by without notice. Schweitzer’s own
+view, however, though it was presented clearly in this
+volume, was still not taken due account of in
+Germany. Jülicher’s supercilious criticism in <i>“Neue Linien”</i>
+(190—) is characteristic of the treatment it received. The
+translator knows of no prominent scholar in Germany who
+has cordially welcomed Schweitzer’s view, nor of any that
+has thoroughly and ably opposed it. They have been
+occupied there rather with Wrede’s<a id="in1-ref" href="#in1"> <sup>1</sup> </a>acute criticism of the
+messianic element in the Gospels
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page020">[pg 020]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg020"></a>
+and with the denial by
+Drews<a id="in2-ref" href="#in2"> <sup>2</sup> </a>and others of the historical existence of Jesus.
+To destructive criticism of this sort Schweitzer’s own work
+is the best answer. The only work which seriously reckons
+with this new point of view is a brief but magisterial book
+by H. J. Holtzmann: <i>Das messianische Bewusstsein Jesu,</i>
+1907.</p>
+
+<p>Very different was the reception of Schweitzer’s latter
+work in England. The interest there centred at once
+upon Schweitzer’s own view. In 1907, the year after its
+publication, Professor Sanday delivered a course of
+lectures at Oxford and Cambridge in which he
+enthusiastically accepted Schweitzer’s position with hardly a
+reservation.<a id="in3-ref" href="#in3"> <sup>3</sup> </a>In 1910 this second work of Schweitzer’s
+was translated into English and published under the title:
+<i>The Quest of the Historical Jesus,</i> with a preface by
+Professor Burkitt. By this time the interest in Schweitzer and
+his theory had become a furore among the younger men in
+Oxford and Cambridge. But just then there came an
+emissary from Germany, Professor Ernst von Dobschütz, who
+essayed to disprove Schweitzer’s theory in a course of
+lectures delivered at
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page021">[pg 021]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg021"></a>
+Oxford in 1909.<a id="in4-ref" href="#in4"> <sup>4</sup> </a>Whereupon
+Professor Sanday, in a pathetic article in the <i>Hibbert Journal</i>
+for October, 1911, retracted his support of Schweitzer’s
+position. He felt that he had been over hasty in adopting
+it. And so indeed it seems he was, for it appears that in
+preparing his lectures he had not taken the pains to read
+the “Sketch,” that is to say, Schweitzer’s first and
+fundamental and most carefully reasoned argument for his view.
+By the same token Canon Sanday seems to have been
+over hasty in making his retraction, for he had not <i>yet</i> read the
+“Sketch,”—and von Dobschütz’ criticism after all is not
+very impressive.</p>
+
+<p>In America the whole question has been simply ignored.
+It generally takes, in fact, about a decade for an important
+foreign work to reach us,—except in the case of a very few
+scholars who have already gained our ear. According to
+this reckoning it is time the “Sketch” were translated. In
+view both of the acceptance which Schweitzer’s theory has
+met with in England and of the opposition made to it
+there, it is high time that his most cogent and careful
+statement of his position be made known. For although
+Schweitzer’s position is restated in his latter work already
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page022">[pg 022]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg022"></a>
+translated into English, and is there also illuminated from
+various sides, particularly in its relation to Wrede’s
+work—which appeared in the same year as the “Sketch” and is so
+strikingly like it so far as its criticism goes and so different
+in its result,—yet it cannot be adequately appreciated
+without a study of the earlier work.</p>
+
+<p>It is known that Albert Schweitzer has for some time
+been preparing to go as medical missionary to the Congo.
+But in spite of his medical studies he has recently found
+time to publish a brilliant “History of Pauline Study since
+the Reformation.”<a id="in5-ref" href="#in5"> <sup>5</sup> </a>This is in a way a continuation of the
+history of the study of the life of Jesus. Here again
+Schweitzer has a view of his own: in all the complexity of
+Paul’s thought he perceives a unity which is due to the
+pervading eschatological outlook. Fortunately, this view
+of his own, instead of being appended to the historical
+study, as in the former book, is to be published separately
+under the title: <i>Die Mystic des Apostles Paulus.</i> This
+practical measure will insure that it shall not be
+overlooked. It is to be hoped too that it will not have to wait
+long for an English translation.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page023">[pg 023]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg023"></a></p>
+
+<p>Professor Schweitzer found time also to prepare a new
+and much enlarged edition of his <i>Geschichte der
+Leben-Jesu-Forschung</i> (History of the Study of the Life of
+Jesus), which is the title by which he now more aptly
+describes his well known work. He has brought this history
+down to date, and in the short concluding chapter he
+suggests a number of pregnant reflections which will later be
+referred to in this introduction with the aim of conciliating
+this archæological world of Jesus’ thought with our
+religious estimate of his person. It must be recognised from
+the outset that <i>time</i> is necessary for such an adjustment.
+The perception of the eschatological character of the
+Gospels is a sudden emergency: we have not yet had time
+to assimilate it.</p>
+
+<p>At this writing Professor Schweitzer is already at work
+as medical missionary in Africa. It is of interest to know
+that his plan is to return after three years to Europe, and
+again after an equal period; to Africa. On account of the
+radical character of his critical works he was not accepted
+as a fellow-worker in any of the German missions and is
+labouring in conjunction with (though independently and
+at his own expense) the station of the Paris Evangelical
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page024">[pg 024]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg024"></a>
+Missionary Society at Lambarene in French Equatorial
+Africa—the country which used to be called the French
+Congo. “Schweitzer as Missionary” is the title of an
+article in the <i>Hibbert Journal</i> for July 1914 based upon the
+printed circular letters which he sends to his friends and
+supporters. In a letter to the translator he speaks of his
+efforts to mitigate the scourge of leprosy and the sleeping
+sickness as an example of “practical eschatology.”</p>
+
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_i_2">2. The Significance of Schweitzer’s Work.</h3>
+
+<p>The opportuneness of Schweitzer’s eschatological
+interpretation of the life of Jesus appears the more manifest
+the more one knows of the recent history of Gospel study.
+To bring that out clearly is the special purpose of the
+Author in his <i>Quest of the Historical Jesus,</i> particularly
+in chapters I, XIX, and XX. It could not be done better.
+At all events such a task is obviously beyond the scope of
+this introduction. Here it need only be pointed out that
+Schweitzer’s theory, striking as it is, did not spring into
+being without roots in a soil prepared for it. The
+eschatological question itself had been sharply brought to the fore.
+Contention for and against the recognition of it as an important
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page025">[pg 025]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg025"></a>
+element in the Gospels was the order of the day.
+All that tended to concentrate attention upon the problem
+of the personal consciousness of Jesus (as, in particular,
+Baldensperger’s work),<a id="in6-ref" href="#in6"> <sup>6</sup> </a>was a direct preparation for
+Schweitzer. Johannes Weiss had already stood out as the
+foremost champion of eschatology in the Gospel.<a id="in7-ref" href="#in7"> <sup>7</sup> </a>His
+recognition of eschatology was confined, however, to the
+<i>teaching of Jesus.</i> Hence he did not avail himself of it for
+the solution of the historical problems. For this reason he
+cannot be regarded as an exponent—to use Schweitzer’s
+phrase—of “thoroughgoing eschatology” (konsequente
+Eschatologie). But the solution Schweitzer proposed was
+already “in the air,” as he said himself in his preface.
+That presentiment was strikingly fulfilled in the fact that
+in the selfsame year Wrede published a book with a title
+almost identical, which envisaged the same problems in the
+same way, only that it sought to solve them by eliminating
+eschatology as an intrusion in the historical narrative, thus
+resulting in “thoroughgoing scepticism.” Schweitzer is
+justified in insisting that his work and
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page026">[pg 026]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg026"></a>
+Wrede’s cannot be
+played off against each other, but constitute a combined
+attack, so far as concerns the criticism of the common, liberal
+life of Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>There is nothing audacious in Schweitzer’s
+proclamation of the collapse of the liberal life of Jesus. He does
+not claim to have destroyed it, he merely attests the fact
+of its collapse. “The Jesus of Nazareth who appeared as
+the Messiah, proclaimed the morality of the kingdom of
+God, established the kingdom of heaven upon earth, and
+died in order to consecrate his work,—this Jesus never
+existed. It is a figure sketched by Rationalism, enlivened
+by Liberalism, and dressed up by Modern Theology in the
+clothes of historical science.”<a id="in8-ref" href="#in8"> <sup>8</sup> </a>This fabric did not fall
+by reason of the strength of any attack from without, but
+collapsed through its inherent weakness, “shattered and
+cloven by the actual historical problems which one after
+another emerged and would not down in spite of all the
+cunning, art, artifice, and force” which was expended upon
+this picture of Jesus during the last hundred years. In spite
+of the protestation that this picture still stands
+undemolished, no one can be found any more to write a liberal
+life of Jesus. On
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page027">[pg 027]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg027"></a>
+the other hand sceptical works have
+multiplied so rapidly that it would be difficult to enumerate
+them here. After Kalthoff<a id="in9-ref" href="#in9"> <sup>9</sup> </a>and Drews<a id="in10-ref" href="#in10"> <sup>10</sup> </a>the designation
+of “thoroughgoing scepticism” can hardly be applied to
+Wrede’s theory. All the books of this class owe what
+appearance of strength they have, not to their inherent
+worth, but to the weakness of the theory which opposes
+them—the current liberal life of Jesus. Solely with a view
+to maintaining the integrity of this picture it has been
+found necessary from time to time to sacrifice so much of
+the documentary evidence—the Synoptic Gospels or their
+sources—upon which the history of Jesus reposes, that in
+the end it seems not very unreasonable for Drews and
+others to assume, from the admissions of their opponents,
+that there is no convincing historical evidence for the
+existence of Jesus, and that the real task of the scholar is
+to show how such a figure was invented.</p>
+
+<p>“It is extraordinary,” says Schweitzer in the last
+chapter of the new edition of his History of the Life of Jesus
+Study, “how it has fared with the study of the life of
+Jesus. It set out to find the historical
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page028">[pg 028]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg028"></a>
+Jesus, and fancied
+that when he was found he could be set, just as he is, in the
+midst of our age as Teacher and Saviour. It loosed the
+bands which fettered him to the rock of ecclesiastical
+dogma, and rejoiced when life and movement returned to
+the figure and the historical man Jesus was seen
+approaching. He did not stay, however, but passed our age by and
+returned again to his own. That is what astonished and
+alarmed the theology of the last decades,—that by no
+violence of misinterpretation could they succeed in keeping
+him in our age, but had to let him go. He returned to his
+own age with the same necessity that the freed pendulum
+swings back to its original position.</p>
+
+<p>“The historical foundation of Christianity, as
+rationalism, liberalism, and modern theology count it, exists no
+longer,—which, however, is not to say that Christianity
+has therefore lost its historical foundation. The work
+which historical theology believed it must carry out, and
+which it sees falling to pieces at the very moment when the
+completion was near, is only the terra cotta veneer of the
+true, indestructible, historical foundation, which is
+independent of any historical
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page029">[pg 029]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg029"></a>
+knowledge and proof—simply
+because it is there, it exists.</p>
+
+
+<p>“Jesus is something to our world because a mighty
+stream of spiritual influence has gone forth from him and
+has penetrated our age also. This fact will be neither
+shaken nor confirmed by an historical knowledge.</p>
+
+<p>“One fancied he could be more to our time by the fact
+that he entered it vitally as a man of our humanity. That,
+however, is not possible. For one reason, because this Jesus
+never so existed. Also, because historical knowledge,
+though it can clarify spiritual life already existing, can
+never awaken life. It is able to reconcile the present with
+the past; to a certain degree it can transport the present
+into the past; but to construct the present is not within its
+power.</p>
+
+<p>“One cannot estimate highly enough what the study of
+the life of Jesus has accomplished. It is a great and unique
+demonstration of veracity and love of the truth,—one of
+the most significant occurrences in the whole spiritual life
+of mankind. What the modern-liberal and the popularising
+investigation has done, in spite of all its errors, for the
+present and for the coming state of religion can only be
+measured when one takes
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page030">[pg 030]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg030"></a>
+into comparison the Roman
+Catholic—or more broadly the Latin—culture and
+literature which has been touched little or not at all by the
+influence of these spirits.</p>
+
+<p>“And yet the disillusion had to come. We modern
+theologians are too proud of our historical learning, too
+proud of our historical Jesus, too confident in our faith in
+what our historical theology can spiritually contribute to
+the world. The notion that by historical knowledge we can
+construct a new and vigorous Christianity and let loose
+spiritual forces in the world dominates us like a fixed idea
+and does not permit us to perceive that all we have done
+thereby is to assail, not the great religious problem itself,
+but one of the problems of general culture which is
+entrenched in front of it, and which we would solve as well
+as we can. We thought that we had to lead our age as it
+were through a by-path, through the historical Jesus, in
+order that it might come to Jesus who is present spiritual
+power. The by-path is now barred by real history.</p>
+
+<p>“We were in danger of putting ourselves between men
+and the Gospels and not leaving the individual any longer
+alone with the sayings of Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>“We were in danger, too, of presenting to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page031">[pg 031]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg031"></a>
+them a Jesus
+that was too little, because we had forced him into man’s
+measure and into the mould of average human psychology.
+Read through the ‘lives of Jesus’ since the sixties and
+behold what they have made of the imperial words of our
+Lord, what a weak and ambiguous sense they have put
+upon his peremptory, other-worldly requisitions, in order
+that he might not clash with our ideals of civilisation and
+his other-worldliness might be brought to terms with our
+this-worldliness. Many of his greatest words one finds
+lying in a corner, a heap of discharged spring-bolts. We
+make Jesus speak with our time another language than that
+which passed his lips.</p>
+
+<p>“Thereby we ourselves became impotent and deprived
+our own thoughts of their proper energy by transposing
+them into history and making them speak to us out of
+antiquity. It is nothing less than a tragedy for modern
+theology that it confounds with history everything it
+attempts to expound, and is actually proud of the virtuosity
+with which it contrives to discover its own thoughts in the
+past.</p>
+
+<p>“Therefore there is hopeful significance in the fact
+that modern theology with its study of the life of Jesus,
+however long it may resist
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page032">[pg 032]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg032"></a>
+by the invention of fresh shifts
+and expedients, must in the end find itself deluded in its
+manufactured history, overcome by real history and by
+the facts—which according to Wrede’s fine saying are
+often more radical than theories.</p>
+
+
+<p>“What is the historical Jesus to us when we keep him
+clear of any admixture of the present with the past? We
+have the immediate impression that his person, in spite of
+all that is strange and enigmatical, has something great to
+say to all ages, as long as the world endures, may views
+and knowledge change never so much, and that it means
+therefore to our religion also a far-reaching enrichment.
+It behooves us to bring this elementary feeling to a clear
+expression, so that it may not soar away in dogmatic
+assertions and phrases and beguile historical science ever anew
+into the hopeless undertaking of modernising Jesus by
+diluting or explaining away what is historically
+conditioned in his preaching, as though he would become more
+to us thereby.</p>
+
+<p>“The whole study of the life of Jesus has in fine only
+the one aim, of establishing the natural and unbiased
+conception of the earliest accounts. In order to know Jesus
+and to apprehend him there is need of no preparatory
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page033">[pg 033]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg033"></a>
+erudition. It is also not requisite that a man comprehend
+the details of Jesus’ public ministry and be able to
+construct with them a ‘life of Jesus.’ His nature, and that
+which he is and wills, appears in certain lapidary
+expressions of his and forces itself upon us. One <i>knows</i> him
+without knowing much about him, and apprehends the
+eschatological note even if he attain no clear conception
+of the details. For this is the characteristic thing about
+Jesus, that he looks beyond the perfection and blessedness
+of the individual to the perfection and blessedness of the
+world and of an elect humanity. His will and his hope is
+fixed upon the Kingdom of God.”</p>
+
+<p>It is much to be wondered at that conservative scholars
+have not generally recognised the strong constructive
+consequences of Schweitzer’s theory, in particular the proof
+it incidentally affords of the historical worth of the
+Synoptic Gospels. Schweitzer rehabilitates the credit of
+S. Mark’s Gospel simply by showing that no important
+parts of it need be discarded on the ground that they are
+inconsistent with the sketch which he draws of the history
+of Jesus. When it is objected to him that he bases his view
+upon “the weakest passages,” it is time we make clear to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page034">[pg 034]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg034"></a>
+ourselves that “strong” and “weak” in this connection
+mean no more than <i>consistent</i> or <i>inconsistent</i> with the
+<i>assumptions</i> of the modern “liberal life of Jesus.” It is
+only a roundabout way of begging the question. Generally
+speaking, such a document as Mark, antecedent to any
+theory we may attempt to apply, must be presumed to be
+of pretty equal value throughout. That theory which,
+without artifice or violence, best accords with the greatest
+number of facts recorded, and so best preserves the credit
+of the documents upon which it seeks to found itself, is
+presumably the right theory. Schweitzer’s view, as he
+himself says in the Preface, greatly simplifies and clarifies
+the Synoptic problem. It is no longer necessary to attribute
+so much to “the editor’s hand.” The Sermon on the
+Mount, the Charge to the Twelve, and the Eulogy over
+the Baptist are not collections of scattered sayings, but
+were in the main delivered as they have come down to
+us. Especially important is the recognition that even for
+constructing the history of Jesus Mark by itself does not
+suffice: the discourses in Matthew are invaluable
+indications.</p>
+
+<p>Nor is this the only positive and comforting element
+in Schweitzer’s view. In the Postscript he has himself
+laid stress upon the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page035">[pg 035]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg035"></a>
+aim of his work: “to impress upon
+the modern age and upon modern theology the figure of
+Jesus in its overwhelming heroic greatness.” And this he
+has accomplished in unexpected ways. The figure of Jesus
+which we have striven so hard to bring into nearness and
+sympathy through our psychological analysis has eluded
+our grasp, and under the hands of the historian and
+archæologist it has receded inexorably into the remote
+past and into a corner of Galilee. It looks to us strange
+and even petty in its remote Galilean surroundings. Now
+that figure, by the force of an elemental energy, is seen to
+break the shackles which would bind it to a particular
+time and place and become—not modern, indeed,
+but—universal.</p>
+
+<p>One may easily be so much absorbed with the
+difficulties in the way of accepting Schweitzer’s construction as to
+ignore the light which it sheds upon some of the major
+difficulties of the traditional view with which we have
+long wrestled in vain. One may mention at least eight
+obscure points which are illuminated for the first time
+by the eschatological view of the Gospel history.
+1. Jesus’ use of the title “Son of Man,”—commonly in the third
+person and with a futuristic sense, as denoting a dignity and
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page036">[pg 036]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg036"></a>
+power which were <i>not yet</i> his. Jesus was the Messiah
+designate. 2. The position of John the Baptist: it was
+Jesus alone that discovered in him the character of Elijah
+“the Coming One” (cf. Jn 1<sup>21</sup> ). 3. The conception of
+the Kingdom of God as a <i>gift,</i> to be received passively as
+by a little child—and yet as a thing that “violent men”
+must wrest to themselves “by force.” 4. The relation of
+Jesus’ messianic expectation to that which was current
+among the people. Jesus moralised the popular
+eschatological ideal by combining it with the preaching of the
+Prophets. That Jesus opposed a purely moral ideal to a
+popular political agitation is doubly a fiction. 5. The
+significance of the Mission of the Twelve and its connection
+with the popular excitement which drew five thousand
+men into the desert by the seashore. 6. The significance
+of the Transfiguration, coming <i>before</i> the Confession of
+Peter, and explaining how the knowledge of Jesus’
+Messiahship was given by divine revelation. 7. The character
+of the secret which Judas possessed and was in a position
+to betray. Our notion that during the last days in
+Jerusalem every one knew of Jesus’ claim to be the Christ is
+plainly contrary to the record. The famous disputes
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page037">[pg 037]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg037"></a>
+of those days would have taken a very different form if the
+question which agitated all minds was, Is he the Christ?
+or is he not? 8. Jesus’ notion of the <i>necessity</i> of his death,
+his resolution to die at Jerusalem, and his conception that
+he was giving his life as “a ransom for <i>many.”</i></p>
+
+<p>Unquestionably it is no easy matter to assimilate so
+novel and striking a view as that of Schweitzer. To bring
+it into relation with the presuppositions of our religious
+view in general involves demolition and reconstruction—a
+labor heavy and grievous to the soul. The mind
+instinctively recoils from such a labour and is fain to protect
+itself by a general repudiation and denial. Moreover the
+Author has presented his view with a naked simplicity
+which, while it renders it easier to understand and more
+difficult to confute, makes it also, one must confess, more
+difficult to accept. We are not inclined to accept opinions
+in the face of a display of force, and as it were at the
+muzzle of a gun—even when the gun is loaded with logic.
+Practically we must first contrive to see how the opinions
+may be made acceptable. This task the Author has not
+unreasonably left to us,—although a careful study of his
+work will reveal many suggestions helpful to this end.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page038">[pg 038]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg038"></a>
+The translator has read this little book not once but many times
+and through a course of years, with ever increasing
+appreciation of its worth—not only in view of its logical
+force but of its <i>acceptability.</i> On the other hand, many of
+us have felt that the liberal life of Jesus was becoming
+increasingly more <i>unacceptable.</i></p>
+
+
+<p>Canon Sanday confesses<a id="in11-ref" href="#in11"> <sup>11</sup> </a>that he recoils from
+Schweitzer’s view chiefly on account of his “tendency to
+push things to extremes at the dictates of logical
+consistency.” It is <i>too</i> “thoroughgoing.” It seems indeed as
+though the Author were inclined to press this word to
+an extreme, proposing to explain <i>all</i> the words and acts
+of Jesus with reference to his eschatological outlook. But
+that is only a threat. What he <i>has</i> done falls very far
+short of it, and it is upon <i>that</i> we have to pass judgment.
+<i>That,</i> in fact, is “thoroughgoing” enough to justify the
+term even if it went no further. The principle of
+“thorough” might very well apply to the construction of the
+history as a whole without implying that every trait of
+Jesus’ life and teaching was coloured by it and that he
+himself was so obsessed by a single idea that he was
+unable to see things as they are.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page039">[pg 039]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg039"></a>
+This is precisely what the
+Gospels do not permit us to believe. It is manifest that
+Jesus had a peculiarly acute sensibility to his surroundings,
+whether it were nature or human society, and responded
+feelingly, spontaneously. His sense of right and wrong
+was so clearly intuitive that he could deal sovereignly with
+the Law. Schweitzer himself furnishes suggestions which
+tend to render even the word “Interimsethik” acceptable.
+Jesus’ moral teaching was oriented towards the coming
+Kingdom. It was “penance” in preparation for the
+Kingdom of God. But it was not for all this an arbitrary
+penance: like the ethics of the Prophets it was the
+prescription of righteousness. In one sense at least, it was not of
+merely transitory importance. From the expectation of
+the approaching Kingdom it received a sharpness of
+emphasis which it could not otherwise have had,—but it was
+a <i>true</i> emphasis. It described the conduct appropriate to
+man in this present world <i>so long as this world shall
+last</i>—a conduct which is justified here by the expectation of
+a better world to come, “beyond good and evil” if you
+will.</p>
+
+<p>“Thoroughgoing eschatology” is surely not
+incompatible with the recognition of a deeper
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page040">[pg 040]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg040"></a>
+intuition in Jesus
+which is necessary to explain the intensity of this very
+eschatology itself. It would be a rigorous extreme indeed
+which would exclude the recognition of Jesus’
+God-consciousness—his consciousness of God as Father—as the
+primary and all-controlling fact of his religious experience.
+Nothing is more obvious than that out of that
+consciousness he acted and spoke <i>immediately.</i> And when his acts
+were influenced and his speech coloured by the
+eschatological outlook, what was that ultimately but the
+consciousness of God’s <i>nearness?</i> How could the expectation of a
+divine world be so constant and so vivid without the
+feeling that it is in a sense locally near, imminent, impending,
+ready to break in, indeed actually intruding upon this
+present world, as it were “the finger of God” touching
+us here? Intuitional feeling, presentiment, insight, does
+not readily distinguish between nearness in time and in
+space. Jesus’ eschatology was an expression of his
+God-consciousness—the most eminent expression of it.</p>
+
+<p>Eschatology in the strict sense, with all its apocalyptic
+features, has long ago passed out of our view of the world.
+Schweitzer shows us with what justification the Church
+discarded it. But the feeling that was behind
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page041">[pg 041]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg041"></a>
+it remains, and
+still constitutes the fundamental experience of religion.
+It is the feeling of a divine environment, close to us,
+unspeakably close, imminent, intruding even upon the
+every-day world.</p>
+
+<blockquote><div><br>
+“This is the finger of God, <br>
+The flash of the will that can,<br>
+Existent behind all laws,<br>
+That made them, and lo! they are.”
+<br><br></div></blockquote>
+
+<p>Intuitional feeling is not especially inclined to express
+the sense of God in terms of time. Space is the category
+more familiar to it. Wordsworth finds terms to express
+what is so intangible.</p>
+
+<blockquote><div><br>
+“Those obstinate questionings <br>
+Of sense and outward things, <br>
+Fallings from us, vanishings; <br>
+Blank misgivings of a creature <br>
+Moving about in worlds not realised <br>
+High instincts, before which our mortal nature <br>
+Did tremble like a guilty thing surprised.”
+<br><br></div></blockquote>
+
+<p>Apocalyptic eschatology no one could even wish to
+revive. But this does not mean that Biblical
+eschatology—the expectation of the great Event—must be dissolved in
+the modern hope of the gradual amelioration of the
+world in the course of historical evolution. We cannot but
+feel how great a breach that would constitute between
+our thought and the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page042">[pg 042]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg042"></a>
+mind of Jesus. Schweitzer remarks
+upon the heavy dose of “resignation” which such a view
+implies. Strange that we do not more often realise this!
+Does our optimism blind us to the fact that we shall not
+partake in “the far off divine event”—except our spirit
+survive the bodily death? <i>There</i>—in the hope of life
+beyond death—is the expectation which we substitute for
+apocalyptic eschatology,—a substitution so natural that
+it came about without observation. S. Paul lived in the
+expectation of the coming of the Lord, but he evidently
+felt no sense of incongruity when he expressed the feeling
+that “to depart and be with Christ is very far
+better”—he was referring to the natural death of the body and
+the hope of life immediately beyond it. This is the hope
+which has ever since characterised the Christian Church.
+To dwell upon that hope, to set our “affections upon things
+above, where Christ is, seated at the right hand of
+God”—that is “heavenly mindedness.” With respect to the
+feeling at the base of it, it is not so very different from
+apocalyptical eschatology. In this view Christian ethics
+still remains “conditional”—you may call it <i>Interimsethik</i>
+if you like. The conduct it requires of us is conditioned
+by the hope of a future
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page043">[pg 043]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg043"></a>
+life and is absurd under any other
+supposition. “The practice of the presence of God” is the
+most fundamentally important religious exercise. But if
+we succeed in persuading ourselves that here and now we
+have the only kingdom of God we shall ever know; if all
+our interest and effort is absorbed in realising a kingdom
+of God upon earth; then not only have we need of
+“resignation,” but we cannot avoid feeling the breach between
+our thought and activity and that of Jesus. We are puzzled
+to distinguish between worldly and heavenly mindedness
+because even our religious interest is focussed upon this
+earth, as the sphere not only of our moral duty but of
+our ultimate hope—the gradual evolution of a perfect
+human society. That is what we have made of the
+Kingdom of God, interpreting it uneschatologically. Is not this
+after all a more credulous hope than that which expects
+a divine intervention, a “regeneration” of heaven and
+earth, which shall prepare the fit abode for the perfect
+society? And does it not strike at the very roots of the
+religious sentiment when we distract the mind from its
+natural interest and curiosity about the Beyond? Our
+personal fate is not so much involved in the far off
+amelioration of human society as in something
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page044">[pg 044]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg044"></a>
+much nearer, very
+near and imminent, the estate just beyond death. It is not
+altogether without reason that in Christian dogmatics the
+name of eschatology has been applied to this topic. The
+earlier type of eschatology Jesus himself has rendered
+forevermore impossible. It is likely that the first objection
+<i>we</i> feel to apocalyptic eschatology lies in the fact that it
+was expressed in terms of an erroneous cosmology and
+is therefore incompatible with our modern view of the
+world. But as a matter of fact apocalyptic eschatology
+vanished from the vital creed of the Church long before
+the cosmology upon which it was founded was proved to
+be false. It was Jesus who brought it to an end. Another
+sort of eschatology promptly took its place—another
+heavenly hope, which was substantially not apocalyptic.
+Yet this doctrine too—the early Christian notion of the
+soul and of heaven—was necessarily founded upon the
+opinions of ancient science. The doctrine of the soul and
+the doctrine of heaven, being less directly affected by the
+findings of modern science, have been more slow to change
+in conformity with our changed view of the world than
+has, for example, the doctrine of creation. But in their
+old form they are none the less incompatible
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page045">[pg 045]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg045"></a>
+with our
+modern thought; and for this reason we feel forced to
+put <i>every</i> sort of eschatology aside, we are no longer able
+to place the heavenly hope, and the heavenly mindedness
+which it prompts, in the central position which belongs to
+them. That is to say, we urgently need to express the
+Christian doctrine of the soul in terms of the highest
+modern psychology and to express our heavenly hope in
+terms of a modern cosmology. We need a new cosmology!
+That may seem to express an unpractical and fantastic
+desire. But it will not so seem to any one who knows what
+his theory of the soul and his grandiose cosmology meant
+practically and religiously to Gustav Theodor Fechner,<a id="in12-ref" href="#in12"> <sup>12</sup> </a>
+or who has experienced what this may mean for the
+orientation of his own personal religion. The old view of the
+world has passed away: we have been too slothful and
+cowardly to take full possession of the new. There is really
+nothing in the modern view of the world which effectually
+precludes us from directing our hope and orienting our
+life towards the Beyond, as did Jesus in his way, and as
+the early Church did in its way. From the moment that
+Jesus passed into the invisible and was there felt and
+recognised as the correspondent
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page046">[pg 046]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg046"></a>
+of our religious faculty
+we find that spatial terms better express the substance of
+our heavenly mindedness than do temporal. We “seek
+the things that are above, where Christ is, seated on the
+right hand of God.” To recognise that our “citizenship
+is in heaven” is not to render ourselves inept for the
+performance of our duty upon earth. Rather it needs to be
+reflected whether, without the detachment, without the
+superiority to earthly circumstance, happy or untoward,
+which comes from setting our “mind on the things that
+are above,” we possess any fulcrum for doing a real work
+upon the world.</p>
+
+<p>The eschatological interpretation of the Gospels does
+not thrust Jesus so far from us as we are prone to think:
+rather calls us to approach nearer to him, to share again
+more closely “the mind which was in Christ Jesus” and
+which in one form or another has been at all times the
+chief inspiration of the Church.</p>
+
+<p>In his “Concluding Reflections” Schweitzer says:
+“Every full view of life, cosmic philosophy,
+<i>Weltanschauung</i> (the German word it is impossible to translate)
+contains side by side elements which are conditioned by
+the age as well as others which are unconditioned, for it
+consists in the very fact that a penetrating <i>will</i> has
+pervaded and
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page047">[pg 047]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg047"></a>
+constituted the conceptual material furnished
+it by history. This latter is subjected to change. Hence
+there is no <i>Weltanschauung,</i> however great and profound
+it may be, which does not contain perishable material. But
+the will itself is timeless. It reveals the unsearchable and
+primary nature of a person and determines also the final
+and fundamental definition of his <i>Weltanschauung.</i> May
+the conceptual material alter never so much, with
+consequent diversity between the new <i>Weltanschauung</i> and the
+old, yet these in reality only lie just so far apart as the
+wills which constitute them diverge in direction. The
+differences which are determined by the alteration of the
+conceptual material are in the last analysis merely
+secondary in importance, however emphatically they may make
+themselves felt; for the same will, however different be
+the conceptual material in which it manifests itself, always
+creates <i>Weltanschauungen</i> which in their nature
+correspond with one another and coincide.</p>
+
+<p>“Since the time when man attained the conditions
+precedent to such an apprehension and judgment of things
+as we might call in our sense a <i>Weltanschauung</i>—that is,
+since the individual learned to take into consideration the
+totality of being, the world as a
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page048">[pg 048]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg048"></a>
+whole, and to reflect as
+a knowing and willing subject upon the reciprocal relations
+of a passive and active sort which subsist between himself
+and the All—no far-reaching development has really
+occurred in the spiritual life of humanity. The problems of
+the Greeks turn up again in the most modern philosophy.
+The scepticism of to-day is essentially the same as that
+which came to expression in ancient thought.</p>
+
+<p>“The primitive, late-Jewish metaphysic in which Jesus
+expressed his <i>Weltanschauung</i> aggravates exceedingly the
+difficulty of translating his ideas into the formulas of our
+time. The task is quite impossible so long as one tries to
+accomplish it by distinguishing in detail between the
+permanent and the transitory. And what results as the
+consequence of this procedure is so lacking in force and
+conclusiveness that the enrichment it contributes to our
+religion is rather apparent than real.</p>
+
+<p>“In truth there can be no question of making
+distinction between transitory and permanent, but only of
+transposing the original constitutive thought of that
+<i>Weltanschauung</i> into terms familiar to us. How would the Will
+of Jesus—apprehended in its immediateness, in its
+definiteness and in its whole
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page049">[pg 049]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg049"></a>
+compass—how would it vitalise
+our thought material and construct from it a
+<i>Weltanschauung</i> of so moral and so mighty a sort that it could be
+counted the modern equivalent of that which he created
+in terms of the late-Jewish metaphysics and eschatology?</p>
+
+<p>“If one tries, as has been done hitherto almost
+invariably, to reconcile Jesus’ <i>Weltanschauung</i> with ours any
+way it will go—which can be accomplished only by paring
+away all that is characteristic—this procedure strikes also
+at the will which is manifested in these conceptions.</p>
+
+<p>“It loses its originality and is no longer able to exert
+an elemental influence upon us. Hence it is that the Jesus
+of modern theology is so extraordinarily lifeless. Left in
+his eschatological world he is greater and, for all the
+strangeness, he affects us more elementally, more mightily
+than the modern Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>“Jesus’ deed consists in the fact that his original and
+profound moral nature took possession of the late-Jewish
+eschatology and so gives expression, in the thought
+material of the age, to the hope and the will which are intent
+upon the ethical consummation of the world. All attempts
+to avert one’s vision from this <i>Weltanschauung</i> as a whole
+and to make Jesus’ significance for us to consist in
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page050">[pg 050]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg050"></a>
+his revelation of the “fatherhood of God,” the “brotherhood
+of man,” and so forth, must therefore of necessity lead to
+a narrow and peculiarly insipid conception of his religion.
+In reality he is an authority for us, not in the sphere of
+knowledge, but only in the matter of the will. His destined
+rôle can only consist in this, that he as a mighty spirit
+quickens the motives of willing and hoping which we and
+our fellowmen bear within us and brings them to such a
+height of intensity and clarity as we could not have
+attained if we were left to ourselves and did not stand under
+the impression of his personality, and that he thus
+conforms our <i>Weltanschauung</i> to his own in its very nature,
+in spite of all the diversity of thought material, and
+awakens in it the energies which are active in his.</p>
+
+<p>“The last and deepest knowledge of things comes from
+the will. Hence the movement of thought which strives to
+frame the final synthesis of observations and knowledge
+in order to construct a <i>Weltanschauung</i> is determined in
+its direction by the will, which constitutes the primary and
+the inexplicable ultimate essence of the persons and ages
+in question.</p>
+
+<p>“If our age and our religion have not apprehended the
+greatness of Jesus and have
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page051">[pg 051]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg051"></a>
+been frightened back by the
+eschatological colour of his thought, this was due only in
+part to the fact that they could not accommodate
+themselves to the strangeness of it all. The decisive reason was
+another. They lacked the strong and clear stamp of a will
+and a hope directed towards the moral consummation of
+the world, which are decisive for Jesus and for his
+<i>Weltanschauung.</i> They were devoid of eschatology,—using the
+word here in its broadest and most general sense. They
+found in themselves no equivalents for the thoughts of
+Jesus, and were therefore not in a position to transpose
+his <i>Weltanschauung</i> from the late-Jewish terms of thought
+into their own.</p>
+
+<p>“There was no answering chord of sympathy. Hence
+the historical Jesus had to remain strange to them to a
+very great extent, and that not only with respect to his
+thought material but also with respect to his very nature.
+His ethical enthusiasm and the immediateness and might
+which characterised his thought seems to them excessive
+because they know nothing that corresponds to it in their
+own thought and experience. So they were constantly
+intent upon making out of the “enthusiast” a modern man
+and theologian duly observant of metes and bounds
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page052">[pg 052]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg052"></a>
+in all his doings. Conservative theology, like the older
+orthodoxy to which it is akin, was not able to do anything with
+the historical Jesus, because it likewise makes far too little
+of the great moral ideas which in his eschatology were
+struggling for life and practical expression.</p>
+
+<p>“It was therefore the lack of an inward tuning to the
+same pitch of will and hope and desire which made it
+impossible to attain a real knowledge of the historical
+Jesus and a comprehensive religious relationship with him.
+Between him and a generation which was lacking in all
+immediateness and in all enthusiasm directed towards the
+final aims of humanity and of being, there could be no
+lively and far-reaching fellowship. For all its progress
+in historical perception it really remained more estranged
+from him than was the rationalism of the eighteenth and
+the beginning of the nineteenth century, which was brought
+closer to him by its enthusiastic faith in the possibility of
+rapid progress towards the moral perfection of
+humanity.”</p>
+
+<p>I marvel that Schweitzer in his “Concluding
+Reflections” can dwell so insistently upon one side of Jesus’
+eschatology and ignore so completely the other. Jesus’
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page053">[pg 053]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg053"></a>
+eschatology, the white light of his conception of the
+Kingdom of God, has come to us through the medium of history
+refracted in two rays of different colour and of different
+direction. One represents more specifically the
+other-worldly side of Jesus’ preaching, the hope of eternal
+blessedness beyond death,—which the dogmatic
+theologians are pleased to call “eschatology,” as though our
+modern idea really reflected Jesus’ conception in its
+totality. Commonly this is what we understand by the
+“Kingdom of Heaven.” To denominate the other ray,
+Schweitzer has appropriated (with as questionable a
+right) the “Kingdom of God.” He means to indicate by
+this simply the moral development of humanity, here and
+under present terrestrial conditions. We readily
+understand what he means, because that is what <i>we</i> mean
+commonly by “the kingdom of God upon earth.” We are
+convinced that the progress of mankind in true worldly
+culture and civilisation constitutes a high moral aim which
+we dare not relinquish; but we have all experienced the
+difficulty of reconciling this secular enthusiasm with the
+other-worldliness of Jesus. Schweitzer helps us in a
+measure to surmount this difficulty. He also makes it in a
+measure clear to us <i>how</i> (for the fact itself was
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page054">[pg 054]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg054"></a>
+patent) this
+enthusiasm for the progress of humanity has been
+reinforced by Jesus’ preaching. But it is a mistake to expect
+of this one coloured ray that it can ever give back to us
+the whole white light of Jesus’ inspiration. We can not
+return again to Jesus’ conception. History stands in the
+way—real history, not written narrative. Nor shall we
+ever be able to combine again in one white light the
+“broken lights” which have come to us from his teaching.
+But we have the two rays, and in their separateness they
+are both familiar to us. Our eyes bear better the coloured
+light. Celestial blue denotes the heavenly hope; red will
+do for this earth and our passionate hopes for its
+betterment. But why behave as if we had only one colour and
+all of Jesus’ light must be forced into that? Schweitzer
+ignores the heavenly hope (the thought of life beyond
+death) as though it were no longer open to the modern
+man. One may get a notion of what it still may mean to
+the modern scientific mind from Gustav Theodor
+Fechner’s <i>Büchlein vom Leben nach dem Tode,</i> or more
+largely from his <i>Zend-Avesta,</i> or his <i>Tagesansicht.</i>
+Though to be sure it can mean nothing to one who is
+bound by a materialistic philosophy. At all events it is
+certain that Jesus’ will and aspiration can be
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page055">[pg 055]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg055"></a>
+much more readily and fully expressed in these terms than in the
+terms of ethical and social progress here below. To
+translate his thought into these terms requires no elaborate
+effort. The first generation of his disciples did it without
+knowing what they did. Schweitzer himself observes in
+another place that our modern faith in the final but slow
+perfection of the world “requires a larger dose of
+resignation” than most people are aware. And how can any
+perfection upon this earth be final, since none can be
+eternal?</p>
+
+<p>We are all of us feeling after a solution of our modern
+difficulties. Schweitzer’s effort after a tolerable
+accommodation is poignantly personal like ours—and like ours it
+is tentative. It is too early to hope for complete
+satisfaction. Yet his efforts obviously tend in the same direction
+as ours. Schweitzer perceives that “in the last resort our
+relation with Jesus is a mystical one.” For the sake of
+this acknowledgment, as well as for other reasons which
+will be evident, I am fain to conclude this Introduction
+with Schweitzer’s own words—the words with which he
+concludes his latest book:</p>
+
+<p>“In the last resort our relationship to Jesus is of a
+mystical sort. No personality of the past can be installed
+in the present
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page056">[pg 056]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg056"></a>
+by historical reflection or by affirmations
+about his authoritative significance. We get into relation
+with him only when we are brought together in the
+recognition of a common will, experience a clarification,
+enrichment, and quickening of our will by his, and find ourselves
+again in him. In this sense every deeper relationship
+between men is of a mystical sort. Our religion, therefore,
+so far as it proves itself specifically Christian, is not so
+much ‘Jesus-cult’ as Jesus-mystic.</p>
+
+<p>“It is only thus that Jesus creates fellowship among us.
+It is not as a symbol that he does it, nor anything of the
+sort. In so far as we with one another and with him are of
+one will, to place the Kingdom of God above all, and to
+serve in behalf of this faith and hope, so far is there
+fellowship between him and us and the men of all generations
+who lived and live in the same thought.</p>
+
+<p>“From this it will be manifest also in what way the
+free and the confined movements of religion which now
+go side by side will come together in unity. False
+compromises are of no avail. All concessions by which the
+free conception seeks to approach the confined can only
+result in ambiguity and inconsequence. The differences lie
+in the thought
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page057">[pg 057]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg057"></a>
+material which is presupposed on either
+side. All efforts after an agreement in this sphere are
+hopeless. These differences appear so prominent because there
+is a lack of elementary and vital religiousness. Two
+threads of water wind along side by side through the
+boulders and gravel of a great stream bed. It is of no
+avail that one seeks here and there to clear out of the
+way the masses that are piled up between them, in order
+that they may flow on in one bed. But when the water
+rises and overflows the boulders they find themselves
+together as a matter of course. So will the confined and the
+free spirit of religion come together when will and hope
+are directed again towards the Kingdom of God, and the
+fellowship with the spirit of Jesus becomes in them
+something elemental and mighty, and they are thereby brought
+so near together in the essence of their <i>Weltanschauung</i>
+and religion that the differences of thought material still
+exist indeed, but sink beneath the surface, as the boulders
+are covered by the rising flood and in the end barely
+glimmer out of the depths.</p>
+
+<p>“The names by which Jesus was called in the thought
+material of late Judaism—Messiah, Son of Man, and Son
+of God—have
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page058">[pg 058]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg058"></a>
+become to us historical parables. Even
+when he applied these titles to himself, this was an
+historically conditioned expression of his apprehension of
+himself as a commander and ruler. We find no
+designation that might express his nature for us.</p>
+
+<p>“Unknown and nameless he comes to us, as he
+approached those men on the seashore that knew not who
+he was. He says the same word: But do thou follow me!
+and he sets before us the tasks which we in our
+generation must accomplish. He commands. And to those that
+obey him, wise and unwise, he will reveal himself in what
+may be given them to experience in his fellowship of peace
+and activity, conflict and suffering, and as an unutterable
+secret they shall come to know who he is. ...</p>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_12">FOOTNOTES</h2>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in1-ref" id="in1">1</a> <i>Das Messiasgeheimnis in den Evangelien,</i> 1901.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in2-ref" id="in2">2</a> <i>Christusmythe.</i>
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in3-ref" id="in3">3</a> <i>The Life of Christ in Recent Research,</i> 1907.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in4-ref" id="in4">4</a> <i>Eschatology of the Gospels,</i> 1910.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in5-ref" id="in5">5</a> <i>Geschichte der paulinischen Forschung,</i> 1911.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in6-ref" id="in6">6</a> <i>Das Selbstbewusstsein Jesu,</i> 1st ed., 1888.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in7-ref" id="in7">7</a> <i>Die Predigt Jesu vom Reiche Gottes,</i> 2d ed., 1900; also <i>Das
+älteste Evangelium,</i> 1903.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in8-ref" id="in8">8</a> <i>Quest of the Historical Jesus,</i> cap. XX.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in9-ref" id="in9">9</a> <i>Das Christus-Problem,</i> 1902.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in10-ref" id="in10">10</a> <i>Op. cit.</i>
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in11-ref" id="in11">11</a> <i>Hibbert Journal,</i> Oct., 1911, p. 84.
+</p>
+
+
+<p><a href="#in12-ref" id="in12">12</a> <i>Vide The Living Word</i> by Elwood Worcester, 1908.
+</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page059">[pg 059]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg059"></a></p>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_1">CHAPTER I</h2>
+<h4>THE MODERN “HISTORICAL” SOLUTION</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_1">1. Summary Account of It.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">THE Synoptical texts do not explain how the idea of
+the Passion forced itself upon Jesus and what it meant
+to him. The speeches of Peter and Paul viewed the
+Passion in the aspect of a divine necessity which was
+prophesied by the Scripture. The Pauline theory likewise has
+nothing to do with history.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore the idea of the Passion as it is developed
+here in connection with an account of Jesus’ life is not
+directly furnished by the texts but is deduced from them
+by implication. One is left here to the unavoidable
+necessity of formulating a theory, the truth of which can only
+be judged by the measure of clearness and order which it
+introduces into the Synoptic accounts.</p>
+
+<p>All of the theoretical constructions which have an
+outspoken historical interest coincide in an alleged solution
+which we denominate the modern-historical. What is
+historical about it is the interest which prompts
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page060">[pg 060]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg060"></a>
+the endeavour to explain history. The modern factor in it is the
+psychological sympathy of comprehension by the help of which
+one endeavours to show how, under the impression of
+particular experiences, the idea of the Passion forced itself
+upon Jesus and was given by him a religious significance.
+This solution is based upon the following considerations:</p>
+
+<p>For Jesus there could be no question of constituting a
+ground for the forgiveness of sins. That he already
+assumed, as the petition in the Lord’s Prayer shows,—it
+flowed indeed quite naturally from the pardoning
+father-love of God. Now the thought of the ransom
+(Mk 10<sup>45</sup> ) recalls the Pauline theory of the atonement with
+its juridical character. This, indeed, has reference to the
+forgiveness of sins. It is therefore to be presumed that
+the juridical notion of the atonement, like the thought of
+the forgiveness of sins, was strange to Jesus, since it is
+not suggested by anything in the whole character of his
+teaching. Consequently the expressions about the
+significance of his Passion are in their traditional form
+influenced somehow or another by Pauline conceptions.</p>
+
+<p>If one takes due account of this influence, the historical
+saying (Mk 10<sup>45</sup>) contains the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page061">[pg 061]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg061"></a>
+notion of serving
+through sacrifice. This thought is here expressed in its
+highest potency. We stand upon the border where the
+heightened conception of service leads to that of sacrifice
+and atonement. The value of this sacrifice for others
+consists in the fact that this suffering death which Jesus
+underwent is at the same time the inaugural act through
+which the new morality of the Kingdom of God receives
+emphatic sanction and the new condition contemplated in
+the idea of the Kingdom is itself realised. This deed is the
+efficient first factor in a chain of transformations the
+supernatural conclusion of which is his “coming again”
+in glory, where the New Covenant which he sealed with
+his blood is fulfilled in him.</p>
+
+<p>Therewith it is also explained why the determination
+to encounter suffering and death could and must suggest
+itself. The realisation of the Kingdom of God was Jesus’
+mission. This he had undertaken to effect at first within
+narrow limits during his Galilean ministry. Through his
+preaching of the new morality grounded upon faith in the
+divine Father, and under the influence of the power which
+proceeded from him, the beginnings of this Kingdom
+developed. It was a happy, successful period—the “Galilean spring
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page062">[pg 062]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg062"></a>
+time,” Keim called it. The climax of this period
+was reached with the mission of the Disciples. Through
+their preaching the glorious seed was to be strewn abroad
+everywhere. As they upon their return announced to him
+their success he broke out with the cry of exultation which
+accounted the victory already present (Mt 11<sup>25-27</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Then came the time of defeat. The opposition was
+contrived and carried out from Jerusalem (Mk 7<sup>1</sup>). Before
+this the sympathy of the people delivered him from the
+consequences of occasional friction with the officials. Now,
+however, as the opposition was systematically pursued,
+even his followers fell away from him. It was ominous
+that the discussion about ceremonial purification brought
+to light the contradiction in which Jesus found himself
+with the legal tradition (Mk 7<sup>1-23</sup>). Before spring had
+again returned to the land he had been obliged to leave
+Galilee. Far away in the north, in quiet and solitary
+retirement, he collected his energies in the effort perfectly
+to understand himself.</p>
+
+<p>For the realisation of the Kingdom there remained but
+one way still open to him,—namely, conflict with the
+power which opposed his work. He resolved to carry this
+conflict into the capital itself. There fate should decide.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page063">[pg 063]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg063"></a>
+Perhaps the victory would fall to him. But, even if it
+should turn out that in the course of earthly events the
+fate of death awaited him inevitably, so long as he trod
+the path which his office prescribed, this very suffering of
+death must signify in God’s plan the performance by
+which his work was to be crowned. It was then God’s will
+that the moral state appropriate to the Kingdom of God
+should be inaugurated by the highest moral deed of the
+Messiah. With this thought he set out for
+Jerusalem—in order to remain Messiah.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_2">2. The Four Assumptions of the Modern-Historical
+Solution.</h3>
+
+<p>1. The life of Jesus falls into two contrasted epochs.
+The first was fortunate, the second brought disillusion
+and ill success.</p>
+
+<p>2. The form of the Synoptical Passion-idea in
+Mk 10<sup>45</sup> (his giving himself a ransom for many) and in
+the institution of the Lord’s Supper (Mk 14<sup>24</sup>: his
+blood given for many) is somehow or another influenced
+by the Pauline theory of the atonement.</p>
+
+<p>3. The conception of the Kingdom of God as a
+self-fulfilling ethical society in which service is the highest law
+dominated the idea of the Passion.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page064">[pg 064]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg064"></a></p>
+
+<p>4. If Jesus’ Passion was the inaugural act of the new
+morality of the Kingdom of God, the success of it
+depended upon the Disciples being led to understand it in
+this sense and to act in accordance with it. The
+Passion-idea was a reflection.</p>
+
+<p>Are these assumptions, considered individually,
+justified?</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_3">3. The Two Contrasted Periods. (First Assumption.) </h3>
+
+<p>The period of ill success is dated from the time
+following the mission of the Twelve. What are the events of the
+supposedly fortunate period? We pass over the vexatious
+discussion with the Pharisees about the healing of the
+paralytic (Mk 2<sup>1-12</sup>), over the question of fasting
+(Mk 2<sup>18-22</sup>), and that of the observance of the
+Sabbath (Mk 2<sup>23</sup>-[3<sup>6</sup>]). Already in Mk 3<sup>6</sup> it has come to
+the point of a murderous attack. Jesus has to renounce
+his family because they wish to fetch him home by force
+as one who is mentally incompetent (Mk 3<sup>20-22</sup>, Mk 3<sup>31-35</sup>).
+At Nazareth he is rejected (Mk 6<sup>1-6</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>In the same period occurs the attack which shocked him
+most profoundly. The Pharisees discredited him with the
+people by
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page065">[pg 065]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg065"></a>
+charging that he was in league with the devil
+(Mk 3<sup>22-30</sup>). How deeply this saying wounded him
+may be seen from his reference to it in the commission to
+the Twelve. He prepared his Disciples for a similar
+experience. “If they have called the master of the house
+Beelzebub, how much more those of his household”
+(Mt 10<sup>25</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Such are the well known events of the “successful
+period”! But they are nothing in comparison with those
+which he hints at when he is sending out the Twelve. In
+general terms he has already pronounced those blessed
+who are reproached and persecuted for his sake
+(Mt 5<sup>11, 12</sup>). Now he leads his Disciples to expect
+oppression and distress (Mt 10<sup>17-25</sup>). Faithfulness to him
+involves the endurance of enmity (Mt 10<sup>22</sup>), the
+severance of the dearest ties (Mt 10<sup>37</sup>), and the bearing of
+the cross (Mt 10<sup>38</sup>). The Galilean period is to be
+regarded as a <i>happy</i> one: the commission to the Twelve is
+<i>pessimistic</i> in tone. How does that agree?</p>
+
+<p>The hints also which he drops at that time in the
+presence of the people point to bitter catastrophes. What must
+have occurred in Chorazin, in Capernaum, and in
+Bethsaida that he calls down upon them the wrath of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page066">[pg 066]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg066"></a>
+the Day of Judgment, in which it shall be more tolerable for Tyre
+and Sidon than for them (Mt 11<sup>20-24</sup>)!</p>
+
+<p>Because this gloomy tone accords ill with the happy
+Galilean period, there is an obvious temptation to regard
+the Matthean speeches of the time of the Apostles’
+mission as compositions which include fragments belonging
+to a later period. Where, however, could Jesus have
+spoken such words? So long as he remained in the north
+after the flight he made no speeches, and the utterances
+of the Jerusalem days have their own peculiar character,
+so that it is hard to know where to introduce references
+to Galilean occurrences and warnings to the Disciples in
+prospect of their journey.</p>
+
+<p>Moreover, it is a fact that nothing is related about
+conspicuous successes in the first period. The successes first
+begin with the mission of the Twelve. Jesus celebrates the
+great moment of their return with words of enthusiasm
+(Mt 11<sup>25-27</sup>). Are we to suppose now that in the sequel
+the Pharisees triumphed over him completely and the
+people deserted him? Of such a retrogression of his cause
+the texts, however, record nothing. The discussion about
+ceremonial purification (Mt 7<sup>1-23</sup>) does not furnish
+what was expected
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page067">[pg 067]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg067"></a>
+of it. Jesus had already at an earlier
+time come into much hotter conflict with the theologians
+of the capital (Mk 3<sup>22-30</sup>). In the question about the
+laws of purification it was not he that was worsted.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus’ defeat has been inferred from the fact that the
+“flight” to the north followed this scene (Mk 7<sup>24</sup> ff[.]).
+But the accounts do not in the least represent this
+departure as a flight, nor do they account for this journey to
+the north as a result of the previous controversy; rather
+it is <i>we</i> who interpolate a fictitious causal connection in
+the chronological sequence of the narrative. If Jesus
+immediately before this was supported by the popular favour
+and now leaves the region, we have a fact before us which
+stands unexplained in the texts. That it was a flight is an
+unprovable conjecture.</p>
+
+<p>No importance need be attached to the fact that
+subsequently Jesus again appears on two occasions surrounded
+by a multitude (Mk 8<sup>1-9</sup>: feeding of the 4000; and
+Mk 8<sup>34</sup> ff[.]: the scenes before and after the
+Transfiguration). This fact might perhaps be attributed to a literary
+reconstruction of the respective accounts,—as may be
+considered established, for example, in the case of the
+<i>doublette</i> of the feeding of the multitude.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page068">[pg 068]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg068"></a></p>
+
+<p>Decisive, however, is the reception which the
+Passover caravan accorded to Jesus as he overtook it at
+Jericho. This ovation was not accorded to the man who
+had lost ground before the Pharisees in his own country
+and among his own people and at last had been forced
+to flee, but to the celebrated prophet emerging from his
+retirement. If this Galilean populace supported him now
+by their acclaim and enabled him to terrorise the
+magistrates in the capital for several days—for his purification
+of the Temple was nothing else but that—and to expose
+the scribes with his dry irony, is it possible that they did
+it for the man who a few weeks before had to yield to
+these theologians in his own land?</p>
+
+<p>If one insists upon speaking of a successful period, it is
+the <i>second</i> that must be so denominated. For wherever
+Jesus appears in public after the return of the Twelve he
+is accompanied by a devoted multitude—in Galilee, from
+the Jordan to Jerusalem, and in the capital itself. The
+surly Jewish populace is an invention of the Fourth
+Evangelist. Then, too, the illegality of his secret arrest
+and hasty conviction shows what the Council feared from
+the popular favour in behalf of Jesus. That was the only
+“ill[ ]success” of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page069">[pg 069]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg069"></a>
+the second period. It was indeed a fatal one.</p>
+
+<p>The first and successful Galilean period is therefore
+in reality a time of humiliation and ill[ ]success. There is a
+double reason for regarding it nevertheless as a “happy”
+time. In the first place there is an æsthetic element in it,
+which Keim in particular strongly emphasises. A series of
+parables drawn from nature, as well as the wonderful
+speech against worldly care (Mt 6<sup>25-34</sup>), seem hardly
+intelligible except as the reflection of a glad and cheerful
+sense for the beauty of nature.</p>
+
+<p>With this is associated, in the second place, an <i>historical
+postulate.</i> In the first period no trace is discoverable of the
+idea of the Passion: the second is dominated by it. Hence
+the first was successful, the second unsuccessful,—for
+otherwise there is no way of accounting, psychologically
+or historically, for the change.</p>
+
+<p>The historical facts speak differently. In the real period
+of ill[ ]success the resolution to suffer did not come to light.
+In the successful second period, on the other hand, Jesus
+disclosed to his Disciples that he must be put to death by
+the scribes. Thus the relation was the reverse.
+Herewith modern-historical psychology finds itself before an
+enigma.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page070">[pg 070]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg070"></a></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_4">4. The Influence of the Pauline Theory of the Atonement
+upon the Formulation of the Synoptical Prediction
+of the Passion. (Second Assumption.)</h3>
+
+<p>No proof can be brought to support the contention that
+the Passion passages in the Synoptic Gospels are
+influenced by Pauline conceptions. Here again we have a sort
+of postulate. For if the juridical character of Mk 10<sup>45</sup>
+and Mk 14<sup>24</sup> cannot be set down to the account of the
+Pauline medium, one must assume that Jesus’ own notion
+of the Passion contained this bold conception of
+atonement. The modern-historical solution, however, is not
+adapted to that alternative.</p>
+
+<p>As a matter of fact it is demonstrable that no Pauline
+influence can be discerned here. According to Paul, Jesus
+said at the Last Supper: My body for <i>you</i> (1 Cor. 11<sup>24</sup>).
+In the same manner Luke has: My body which is given
+for <i>you;</i> the blood which is shed for <i>you</i> (Lk 22<sup>19, 20</sup>).
+Both the older Synoptists invariably write instead of this:
+for <i>many.</i> Mk 10<sup>45</sup> = Mt 20<sup>28</sup>: to give his life a
+ransom for <i>many.</i> Mk 14<sup>24</sup> = Mt 26<sup>28</sup>: my blood of the
+covenant which is shed for <i>many</i>. In the one case the
+persons who are to benefit by the Passion are definitely
+determined: they
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page071">[pg 071]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg071"></a>
+are the Disciples. In the other case it
+is a question of an indefinite number.</p>
+
+<p>Nothing is accomplished by the argument that it comes
+in the end substantially to the same thing. Why, according
+to the older Synoptists, did Jesus speak of the <i>many,</i>
+according to Paul, of <i>his own?</i> The sole explanation lies in
+the fact that Paul wrote from the standpoint of the
+Church after the death of Jesus. From this point of view
+the saving efficacy of Jesus’ death is applied to a
+determinate community, to those, namely, who believe on him.
+The Disciples represent this community of believers in the
+historical sayings of Jesus, because from the standpoint
+of the Church, founded as it was upon belief in the
+Messiah, one could not conceive that Jesus’ words about his
+Passion could have any other reference but to the
+believers.</p>
+
+<p>The early Synoptic “for many” is uttered, however,
+from the <i>historical standpoint.</i> That is to say, it is
+appropriate to the time when Jesus did not yet require belief
+in his messiahship, when consequently the number of
+persons whom his death is to benefit is left indeterminate. Of
+only one thing is he certain, that it is greater than the
+circle of his Disciples: hence he said, “for many.” Had
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page072">[pg 072]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg072"></a>
+he used the expression, “for you,” which Paul thought it
+natural to attribute to him, the Disciples must have
+concluded from it that he was dying for them alone, inasmuch
+as they could not then have the feeling that they were
+representatives of a future community of believers,
+according to the conception which was so obvious to Paul
+and the Church.</p>
+
+
+<p>Inasmuch as this <i>“for many”</i> has held its place, in spite
+of the fact that Paul, writing from the churchly point of
+view, felt instinctively the necessity of substituting <i>“for
+you”</i> (though he thereby coined an expression which is
+historically impossible), one is not justified in assuming
+any sort of Pauline influence upon the traditional form
+of the early Synoptic Passion-idea. The bold theory of
+the atonement in the Synoptists is therefore historical.
+Any softening of it, such as the modern-historical solution
+must assume, is without justification.</p>
+
+<p>Hence in the interpretation of Jesus’ saying the first
+requisite is to do justice to the expression “for many.”
+Because they have not done this, all expositions of the
+significance of Jesus’ death—from Paul to Ritschl—are
+unhistorical. One has but to substitute, for the community
+of believers with which they deal, the indeterminate and
+unqualified
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page073">[pg 073]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg073"></a>
+“many” of the historical saying, and their
+interpretation become simply meaningless. That
+interpretation alone is historical which renders it
+intelligible why, according to Jesus, the atonement accomplished
+by his death is to redound to the benefit of a number which
+is intentionally left indeterminate.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_5">5. The Kingdom of God as an Ethical Entity in the
+Passion Idea. (Third Assumption.)</h3>
+
+<p>(a). Mk 10<sup>41-45</sup>. Service as the ethical conduct
+prescribed in expectation of the coming Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The sons of Zebedee had advanced the claim to sit on
+either side of the Lord in his glory, i. e. when he should
+reign as Messiah upon his throne. The other Disciples
+object to this. Jesus calls them together and speaks to
+them about serving and ruling in connection with the
+Kingdom of God.</p>
+
+<p>In this saying one is accustomed to find the ethical
+conception of the Kingdom of God. There is to be a
+revaluation of all values. The greatest in the Kingdom of heaven
+is he who becomes least, like a child (Mt 18<sup>4</sup>), and
+the ruler is he who serves. Self-humiliation and the
+meekness of service, such is the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page074">[pg 074]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg074"></a>
+new morality of the Kingdom
+of God which comes into force through Jesus’ service
+unto death.</p>
+
+<p>With this, however, the fact is ignored that the
+Kingdom in which one reigns is thought of as a future thing,
+whereas the serving applies to the present! In our ethical
+fashion of viewing the matter, serving and reigning
+coincide logically and chronologically. With Jesus, however,
+it is not at all a question of a purely ethical exchange of
+the notions of serving and ruling; rather it is a contrast
+which develops in a chronological sequence. There is a
+sharp distinction made between the present and the future
+æon. He who is one day to count among the greatest in
+the Kingdom of God must <i>now</i> be as a child! He who
+advances a claim to a position of rule therein must <i>now</i>
+serve! The more lowly the position of humble service
+which one <i>now</i> assumes, in the time when the earthly
+rulers exercise authority by force, so much the more lofty
+will be his station as ruler when earthly force is done away
+and the Kingdom of God dawns. Hence he especially must
+humble himself even unto death who is to come as the
+Son of Man upon the clouds of heaven to judge and to
+rule the world. Before he mounts his throne he drinks
+the cup of suffering,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page075">[pg 075]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg075"></a>
+which they also must taste who
+would reign with him!</p>
+
+<p>So soon as one pays due attention to this “now and
+then” in Jesus’ speech, the trivial parallelism of phrase
+is replaced by a real and effective climax. The descending
+stages of service correspond to the ascending stages of
+rule.</p>
+
+
+<p>1. Whosoever would become great <i>among you,</i> shall
+be <i>your</i> servant—Mk 10<sup>43</sup>.</p>
+
+<p>2. Whosoever <i>of you</i> would be first, shall be
+bondservant of <i>all</i> (others)—Mk 10<sup>44</sup>.</p>
+
+<p>3. Therefore the Son of Man expected the post of
+highest rule because he was not come to be served but
+to serve, in giving his life a ransom for <i>many</i>—Mk 10<sup>45</sup>.</p>
+
+<p>The climax is a double one. The service of the
+Disciples extended only to <i>their</i> circle: the service of Jesus
+to an unlimited number, namely, to all such as were to
+benefit by his suffering and death. In the case of the
+Disciples it was merely a question of unselfish <i>subjection:</i> in
+the case of Jesus it meant the bitter <i>suffering of death.</i>
+Both count as serving, inasmuch as they establish a claim
+to a position of rule in the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The ordinary explanation does not satisfy the early
+Synoptic text but only that of Lk 22<sup>24-27</sup>. This text
+has torn the narrative from
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page076">[pg 076]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg076"></a>
+its proper connection, so
+that it appears as a dispute among the Disciples “which
+of them is accounted to be the greatest.”</p>
+
+<p>With this, the “now and then” is eliminated from the
+situation, and it is only a question of a purely ethical
+inversion of the ideas of ruling and serving. Accordingly,
+Jesus’ speech, too, runs on in a lifeless parallelism. He
+that is greater among you, let him become as the younger,
+and he that is chief, as he that doth serve (Lk 22<sup>26</sup>).
+Instead of exemplifying by his own sacrifice of himself
+unto death for the great generality of men the conduct
+required of those who would reign with him, he speaks
+only of his serviceable character as displayed towards the
+Disciples: But I am in the midst of you as he that serveth
+(Lk 22<sup>27</sup>). By this he means a serving that is at the same
+time ruling. In the case of the two older Synoptists,
+however, it is not at all a question of the proclamation of the
+new morality of the Kingdom of God, where serving is
+ruling; rather it is a question of the significance of humility
+and service in <i>expectation of the Kingdom of God.</i> Service
+is the fundamental law of <i>interim-ethics.</i></p>
+
+<p>This thought is much deeper and more vital than the
+modern play upon words which we attribute to the Lord.
+Only through lowliness
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page077">[pg 077]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg077"></a>
+and childlikeness in this æon is
+one worthily prepared to reign in the Kingdom of God.
+Only he who is here morally purified and ennobled through
+suffering can be great there. Hence suffering is for Jesus
+the moral means of acquiring and confirming the
+messianic authority to which he is designated.</p>
+
+<p>Earthly rule, because it depends upon force, is an
+emanation of the power of ungodliness. Authority in the
+Kingdom of God, where the power of this world is
+destroyed, signifies emanation from the divine power. Only
+he can be the bearer of such authority who has kept
+himself free from the contamination of earthly rule. To allot
+it to such as have prepared themselves through suffering
+is God’s affair and his alone (Mk 10<sup>39, 40</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>But if service does not represent the morality of the
+Kingdom of God, Jesus’ conception of the Passion does
+not deal with the corresponding notion of the Kingdom
+as a self-developing ethical society, but rather with a
+super-moral entity, namely, the Kingdom of God in its
+eschatological aspect.</p>
+
+<p>(b). The idea of the Passion and the Eschatological
+Expectation.</p>
+
+<p>The investigation of the accounts of the Lord’s Supper
+[in the first part of this work] revealed a close connection
+between the eschatological
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page078">[pg 078]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg078"></a>
+conclusion (Mk 14<sup>25</sup>) and
+the expression about the blood shed for many (Mk 14<sup>24</sup>).
+The other passages about the Passion suggest a similar
+connection.</p>
+
+
+<p>After Jesus with his “Yes” had himself pronounced the
+verdict of death he speaks of his “coming again” upon
+the clouds of heaven. Hereby, according to Mark’s text,
+he associates the two events in a single thought.
+Mk 14<sup>62</sup>: I am, and ye shall see the Son of Man sitting at
+the right hand of the Power and coming with the clouds
+of Heaven. This logical connection is already weakened
+by Matthew, as in the case of the word about the cup.
+He substitutes for the “and” an expression which denotes
+a temporal sequence merely. Mt 26<sup>64</sup>: Thou hast
+said: <i>nevertheless</i> I say unto you, <i>henceforth</i> shall ye, etc.
+The eschatological reference is lacking in Luke: he has
+omitted it also from the word about the cup.</p>
+
+<p>A close connection between the thought of the Passion
+and eschatology is implied also in Jesus’ saying about
+the path of suffering which his followers must tread
+(Mk 8<sup>34</sup>- 9<sup>1</sup>). Whosoever shall be ashamed of Jesus when
+he suffers reproach and persecution in this adulterous and
+sinful world, of him will the Son of Man be ashamed
+when he cometh in the glory
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page079">[pg 079]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg079"></a>
+of his Father with the holy
+angels. For this generation shall not sink into the grave
+until they see the Kingdom of God come with power!</p>
+
+<p>This connection must have appeared extremely
+prominent to the hearers. After the departure from Cæsarea
+Philippi, under the impression of the secret of the Passion,
+which filled them with a sense of sadness and fear
+(Mk 9<sup>30-32</sup>),—the Disciples dispute which of them shall
+receive the highest place in the Kingdom. In the house at
+Capernaum Jesus had to rebuke them (Mk 9<sup>33-37</sup>).
+That was after he had spoken for the second time about
+his Passion.</p>
+
+<p>On the way to Jerusalem the same scene was
+reenacted in closest conjunction with the third prediction of
+the Passion. (Mk 10<sup>32-41</sup>). The sons of Zebedee
+advance their claim to the seats upon the throne. This is
+not in the least a case of childish misunderstanding on the
+part of his followers, for Jesus in fact treats their
+suggestion with perfect seriousness. The eschatological
+expectation must accordingly have been thrown into such
+strong relief for the Disciples by Jesus’ prediction of his
+Passion that they necessarily reasoned within themselves
+about the position they should occupy in the coming
+Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page080">[pg 080]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg080"></a></p>
+
+<p>The modern-historical solution eliminates the
+eschatological conception of the Kingdom of God from the
+Passion, reducing it to the notion of an apotheosis, “the
+coming <i>again,”</i> as it is called. This expression is entirely
+false. Jesus never spoke of his coming <i>again</i> but only of
+his <i>coming</i> or of the <i>advent</i> of the Son of Man. We use the
+expression “coming again” because we connect death and
+glory by contrast, as though the new situation were
+conditioned merely upon a victorious transfiguration of Jesus.
+Our view makes him say: “I shall die, but I shall be
+glorified through my coming again.” As a matter of fact,
+however, he said: “I must suffer <i>and</i> the Son of Man shall
+appear upon the clouds of heaven.” But that for his
+hearers meant much more than an apotheosis—for with the
+appearing of the Son of Man dawned the eschatological
+Kingdom. Jesus therefore sets his death in temporal-causal
+connection with the eschatological dawning of the
+Kingdom. The <i>eschatological</i> notion of the Kingdom, not the
+<i>modern-ethical</i> notion, dominates his idea of the Passion.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_6">6. The Form of the Prediction of the Passion.
+(Fourth Assumption.)</h3>
+
+<p>If the modern historical solution be correct
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page081">[pg 081]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg081"></a>
+in its conception, Jesus must have communicated the thought of
+the Passion to his Disciples in the form of an ethical
+<i>reflection.</i> If they were to comprehend the approaching
+catastrophe as the inauguration of the new morality, and
+were to derive from it incentive to a change of conduct,
+then he must have familiarised them with the character of
+this event from the very beginning, as soon as ever he
+announced it.</p>
+
+<p>As a matter of fact, however, he imparted to them the
+thought of the Passion, not in the form of an <i>ethical
+reflection,</i> but as a <i>secret,</i> without further explanation. It
+is dominated by a “must,” the expression for
+incomprehensible divine necessity. The fact that the Passion-idea
+was a secret stands opposed to the modern-historical
+solution.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_1_7">7. Résumé.</h3>
+
+<p>1. The assumption of a fortunate Galilean period
+which was followed by a time of defeat is historically
+untenable.</p>
+
+<p>2. Pauline influence cannot have conditioned the form
+of the early Synoptic sayings about the Passion.</p>
+
+<p>3. Not the ethical but the hyper-ethical, the
+eschatological, notion of the Kingdom
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page082">[pg 082]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg082"></a>
+dominates the Passion as
+Jesus conceived it.</p>
+
+<p>4. The utterances of the Passion-idea did not occur
+in the form of an ethical reflection but it was a question
+of an incomprehensible secret which the Disciples had
+not the least need to understand and in fact did not.</p>
+
+<p>Such is the situation with regard to the four pillars
+of the modern-historical solution. With them the whole
+structure collapses. It is after all a lifeless thought! The
+feeble modernity of it is visible in the fact that it does
+not get beyond a sort of representative significance of
+Jesus’ death. Jesus effects by his offering of himself
+nothing absolutely new, since throughout his whole public
+ministry he assumes that the Kingdom of God is already
+present as a dispensation of the forgiveness of sin or as
+the morally developing society. With his very appearance
+upon earth it is there. The performance of atonement,
+however, requires a <i>real</i> significance in Jesus’ death.</p>
+
+<p>Herein lies the weakness of the modern dogmatic in
+contrast with the old. Paul, Anselm, and Luther know
+of an absolutely new situation which follows in time the
+death of Jesus
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page083">[pg 083]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg083"></a>
+and results as a consequence of it. Modern
+theology talks all around the subject; it has nothing
+specific to say, however, but involves itself in the cloud of its
+own assumptions. Both accounts, indeed, are unhistorical.
+Religiously considered, only the modern view is
+justifiable. The old dogmatic, however, is in this point the more
+historical, for it postulates at all events a real effect of
+the death of Jesus, as the Synoptical passages require.</p>
+
+<p>In what, however, does this absolutely new thing
+consist which is there made to depend upon the death of
+Jesus? The Synoptic sayings give but one answer to this:
+the eschatological realisation of the Kingdom! The
+coming of the Kingdom of God with power is dependent upon
+the atonement which Jesus performs. That is substantially
+the secret of the Passion.</p>
+
+<p>How is that to be understood? Only the history of
+Jesus can throw light upon it. <i>In place of the
+modern-historical solution we advance now the
+eschatological-historical.</i></p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page084">[pg 084]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg084"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_2">CHAPTER II</h2>
+<h4>THE “DEVELOPMENT” OF JESUS</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_2_1">1. The Kingdom of God as an Ethical and
+as an Eschatological Fact.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">THE concurrence in Jesus of an ethical with an
+eschatological line of thought has always constituted one of the
+most difficult problems of New Testament study. How
+can two such different views of the world, in part
+diametrically opposed to one another, be united in <i>one</i> process
+of thought?</p>
+
+<p>The attempt has been made to evade the problem,
+with the just feeling that the two views cannot be united.
+Critical spirits like T. Colani <i>(Jesus-Christ et les croyance
+messianique de son temps.</i> 1864, pp. 94 ff., 169 ff.) and
+G. Volkmar <i>(Die Evangelien.</i> 1870, pp. 530 ff.) went to
+the length of eliminating altogether eschatology from the
+field of Jesus’ thought. All expressions of that sort were
+accordingly to be charged to the account of the
+eschatological expectation of a later time. This procedure is
+frustrated by the stubbornness of the texts: the
+eschatological sayings belong precisely to the best attested
+passages.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page085">[pg 085]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg085"></a>
+The excision of them is an act of violence.</p>
+
+<p>No more successful has been the attempt to evade the
+problem by <i>sublimating</i> the eschatology, as though Jesus
+had translated the realistic conceptions of his time into
+spiritual terms by using them in a figurative sense. The
+work of Eric Haupt <i>(Die eschatologischen Aussagen
+Jesu in den synoptischen Evangelien,</i> 1895) is based upon
+this thought. But there is nothing to justify us in assuming
+that Jesus attached to his words a non-natural sense,
+whereas his hearers, in accordance with the prevailing
+view, must have understood them realistically. Not only
+are we at a loss for a rational explanation of such a
+method on Jesus’ part, but he himself gives not the
+slightest hint of it.</p>
+
+<p>So the problem remains as urgent as ever, how the
+juxtaposition of two discordant views of the world is to
+be explained. The sole solution seems to lie in the
+assumption of a gradual development. Jesus may have
+entertained at first a purely ethical view, looking for the
+realisation of the Kingdom of God through the spread
+and perfection of the moral-religious society which he was
+undertaking to establish. When, however, the opposition
+of the world put the organic completion of the Kingdom
+in doubt, the eschatological
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page086">[pg 086]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg086"></a>
+conception forced itself upon
+him. By the course of events he was brought to the pass
+where the fulfilment of the religious-ethical ideal, which
+hitherto he had regarded as the terminus of a continuous
+moral development, could be expected only as the result
+of a cosmic catastrophe in which God’s omnipotence
+should bring to its conclusion the work which he had
+undertaken.</p>
+
+<p>Thus a complete revolution is supposed to have
+occurred in Jesus’ thought. But the problem is veiled rather
+than solved by disposing the terms of the contrast in
+chronological sequence. The acceptance of the
+eschatological notion, if it is to be rendered intelligible in this
+fashion, signifies nothing less than a total breach with the
+past, a break at which all development ceases. For the
+eschatological thought, if it be taken seriously, abrogates
+the ethical train of thought. It accepts no subordinate
+place. To such a position of impotence it was brought for
+the first time in Christian theology as the result of
+historical experience. Jesus, however, must have thought either
+eschatologically or uneschatologically, but not both
+together—nor in such a wise that the eschatological was
+superadded to supplement the uneschatological.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page087">[pg 087]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg087"></a></p>
+
+<p>It has been proved that in the thought of the Passion
+it is only the eschatological idea of the Kingdom of God
+which is in view. It has been shown likewise that the
+assumption of a period of ill[ ]success after the mission of the
+Twelve is without historical justification. This, however,
+constitutes the indispensable presumption for every such
+development as has been assumed on the part of Jesus.
+Therefore the eschatological notion cannot have been
+forced upon Jesus by outward experiences, but it must
+from the beginning, even in the first Galilean period, have
+lain at the base of his preaching!</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_2_2">2. The Eschatological Character of the
+Charge to the Twelve.</h3>
+
+<p>“The Kingdom of God is at hand” (Mt 10<sup>7</sup>)—this
+word which Jesus commissions his Disciples to proclaim
+is a summary expression of all his previous preaching.
+They are to carry it now throughout the cities of Israel.
+The charge of Jesus to the Twelve furnishes no means of
+determining in what sense this proclamation is meant.</p>
+
+<p>If the common conception is right about the significance
+of this mission of the Twelve, the words with which he
+dismisses them present an extraordinary riddle. Full of hope
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page088">[pg 088]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg088"></a>
+and with the joy of productive effort he goes about
+to extend the scope of his activity for the founding of the
+Kingdom of God. The commission to the Twelve ought
+therefore to contain instruction about the missionary
+propaganda they were to carry out in this sense. One must
+hence expect that he would direct them how they should
+preach about the new relation to God and the new
+morality of the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The commission, however, is anything but a summary
+of the “teaching of Jesus.” It does not in the least
+contemplate instruction of a thoroughgoing kind, rather what is
+in question is a flying proclamation throughout Israel.
+The one errand of the Apostles as teachers is to cry out
+everywhere the warning of the nearness of the Kingdom
+of God—to the intent that all may be warned and given
+opportunity to repent. In this, however, no time is to be
+lost; therefore they are not to linger in a town where men
+are unsusceptible to their message, but to hasten on in
+order that they may pass through all the cities of Israel
+before the appearing of the Son of Man takes place. But
+“the coming of the Son of Man” signifies—<i>the dawning
+of the Kingdom of God with power.</i></p>
+
+<p>When they persecute you in this city flee
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page089">[pg 089]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg089"></a>
+unto another,
+for verily I say unto you, Ye shall not have gone through
+the cities of Israel till the Son of Man be come (Mt 10<sup>23</sup>).
+If one so understands the com[m]ission to the
+Twelve as to suppose that Jesus would say through his
+Disciples that the time is now come for the realisation of
+the Kingdom by a new moral behaviour, that
+eschatological saying lies like an erratic boulder in the midst of a
+flowery meadow. If, however, one conceives of the
+embassage eschatologically, the saying acquires a great
+context: it is a rock in the midst of a wild mountain
+landscape. One cannot affirm of this saying that it has been
+interpolated here by a later age; rather with compelling
+force it fixes the presence of eschatological conceptions
+in the days of the mission of the Twelve.</p>
+
+<p>The one and only article of instruction that is required
+is the call to repentance. Whosoever believes in the
+nearness of the Kingdom, repents. Hence Jesus gives the
+Disciples authority over unclean spirits, to cast them out and
+to heal the sick (Mt 10<sup>1</sup>). By these signs they are to
+perceive that the power of ungodliness is coming to an
+end and the morning-glow of the Kingdom of God already
+dawns. That belongs to their errand as teachers, for
+whosoever fails to believe their
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page090">[pg 090]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg090"></a>
+signs, and thereupon brings
+forth no works of repentance unto the Kingdom of
+God,—that man is damned. Thus have C[h]orazin, Bethsaida, and
+Capernaum come into condemnation. Faith and
+repentance were made easy for them by the signs and wonders
+with which they were favoured beyond others—and yet
+they did not come to themselves, as even pagan cities like
+Tyre and Sidon would have done (Mt 11<sup>20-24</sup>). This
+saying addressed to the people shows what significance
+Jesus ascribed to the signs in view of the eschatological
+embassage.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the Disciples were to preach <i>the Kingdom,
+Repentance, and the Judgment.</i> Inasmuch, however, as the
+event they proclaimed was so near that it might at any
+moment surprise them, they must be prepared for what
+precedes it, namely, for the final insurrection of the power
+of this world. How they are to comport themselves in the
+face of this emergency so as not to be confounded—here
+is the point upon which Jesus’ parting words of
+instruction bear! In the general tumult of spirits all ties will be
+dissolved. Faction will divide even the family (Mt 10<sup>34-36</sup>).
+Whosoever would be loyal to the Kingdom of
+God must be ready to tear from out his heart those who were dearest
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page091">[pg 091]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg091"></a>
+to him, to endure reproach, and to bear the
+cross (Mt 10<sup>37, 38</sup>). The secular authority will bring
+upon them severe persecution (Mt 10<sup>17-31</sup>). Men will
+call them to account and subject them to torture in order
+to move them to denial of their cause. Brother shall
+deliver up brother to death, and the father his child; and
+children shall rise up against parents and cause them to
+be put to death. Only he who remains steadfast in the
+midst of this general tumult, and confesses Jesus before
+men, shall be saved in the Day of Judgment, when he
+intervenes with God in their behalf (Mt 10<sup>32, 33</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>In the commission to the Twelve Jesus imparts
+instruction about the woes of the approaching Kingdom. In the
+descriptive portions of it there may be much perhaps that
+betrays the colouring of a later time. By this concession,
+however, the character of the speech as a whole is not
+prejudiced. The question at issue is not about a course
+of conduct which they are to maintain <i>after his death.</i> For
+such instruction not a single historical word can be
+adduced. The woes precede the dawning of the Kingdom.
+Therefore the victorious proclamation of the nearness of
+the Kingdom must accommodate itself to the woes. Hence
+this juxtaposition of optimism
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page092">[pg 092]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg092"></a>
+and pessimism which the
+current interpretation finds so unaccountable. It is the
+sign manual of every eschatological <i>Weltanschauung.</i></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_2_3">3. The New View.</h3>
+
+<p>The idea of Passion is dominated <i>only</i> by the
+eschatological conception of the Kingdom. In the charge to the
+Twelve the question is <i>only</i> about the eschatological—not
+about the ethical-nearness of the Kingdom. From this it
+follows, for one thing, that Jesus’ ministry counted <i>only</i>
+upon the eschatological realisation of the Kingdom. Then,
+however, it is evident that the relation of his ethical
+thoughts to the eschatological view can have suffered no
+alteration by reason of outward events but must have
+been the same from beginning to end.</p>
+
+<p>In what relation, however, did his ethics and his
+eschatology stand to each other? So long as one starts with
+the ethics and seeks to comprehend the eschatology as
+something adventitious, there appears to be no organic
+connection between the two, since the ethics of Jesus, as
+we are accustomed to conceive it, is not in the least
+accommodated to the eschatology but stands upon a much
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page093">[pg 093]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg093"></a>
+higher level. One must therefore take the opposite course
+and see if the ethical proclamation in essence is not
+conditioned by the eschatological view of the world.</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page094">[pg 094]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg094"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_3">CHAPTER III</h2>
+
+<h4>THE PREACHING OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_3_1">1. The New Morality as Repentance.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">IF the thought of the eschatological realisation of the
+Kingdom is the fundamental factor in Jesus’ preaching,
+his whole theory of ethics must come under the
+conception of <i>repentance</i> as a preparation for the coming of the
+Kingdom. This conception seems to us too narrow a one
+to apply to the whole extent of this moral-religious
+proclamation. This is due to the fact that the word
+repentance as we use it has rather a negative significance, laying
+emphasis as it does chiefly upon foregoing guilt. It is a
+far richer conception, however, which the Synoptists
+express by the word repentance (<i>μετάνοια</i>). It is not merely
+a recovery which stands in retrospective relation with a
+sinful condition in the past, but also—and this is its
+predominant character—<i>it is a moral renewal in prospect
+of the accomplishment of universal perfection in the
+future.</i></p>
+
+<p>Thus “the repentance in expectation of the Kingdom”
+comprises all positive ethical requirements.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page095">[pg 095]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg095"></a>
+In this sense
+it is the lively echo of the “repentance” of the early
+prophets. For what Amos, Hosea, Isaiah, and Jeremiah
+mean by repentance is moral renovation in prospect of the
+Day of the Lord. Thus Isaiah says: “Wash you, make
+you clean; put away the evil of your doings from before
+mine eyes; seek judgment, relieve the oppressed, judge
+the fatherless, plead for the widow” (Isai. 1<sup>16, 17</sup>). It
+is precisely this Old Testament conception of repentance,
+with its emphasis upon the new moral life, which one must
+have in mind in order to understand aright the
+Synoptical repentance. Both have a forward vision, both are
+dominated by the thought of a condition of perfection
+which God will bring to pass through the Judgment. This,
+in the Prophetic view, is the Day of the Lord; in the
+Synoptic it is the dawn of the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The ethics of the Sermon on the Mount is therefore
+repentance. The new morality, which detects the spirit
+beneath the letter of the Law, makes one meet for the
+Kingdom of God. Only the righteous can enter into the
+Kingdom of God—in that conviction all were agreed.
+Whosoever, therefore, preached the nearness of the
+Kingdom must also teach the righteousness pertaining to the
+Kingdom.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page096">[pg 096]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg096"></a>
+Hence Jesus proclaimed the new righteousness
+which is higher than the Law and the Prophets,—for they
+extend only up to the Baptist. Since the days of the Baptist,
+however, one stands immediately within the pre-messianic
+period.</p>
+
+<p>The Day of Judgment puts this moral transformation
+to the proof: only he who has done the will of the
+heavenly Father can enter into the Kingdom (Mt 7<sup>21</sup>).
+The claim that one is a follower of Jesus, or has even
+wrought signs and wonders in his name, is of no avail as
+a substitute for this new righteousness (Mt 7<sup>22, 23</sup>).
+Hence the Sermon on the Mount concludes with the
+admonition to build, in expectation of the momentous event,
+a firmly founded structure capable of resisting storm and
+tempest (Mt 7<sup>24-27</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The Beatitudes (Mt 5<sup>3-12</sup>) come under the same
+point of view. They define the moral disposition which
+justifies admission into the Kingdom. This is the
+explanation of the use of the present and the future tense in the
+same sentence. Blessed are the meek, those that hunger
+and thirst after righteousness, the merciful, the pure in
+heart, the peacemakers, the poor in spirit, those that
+endure persecution for righteousness’ sake, because such
+character and conduct is their security
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page097">[pg 097]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg097"></a>
+that with the
+appearing of the Kingdom of God they will be found to
+belong to it.</p>
+
+<p>A series of parables illustrates the same thought. Thus
+the parables of the treasure in the field and of the pearl
+of great price (Mt 13<sup>44-46</sup>) show how one must stake
+all upon the hope of the Kingdom when the prospect of
+it is held out to him, and must sacrifice all other goods
+for the sake of acquiring this highest good that is
+proposed to him.</p>
+
+<p>Thus already in the ethics of the Galilean period we
+find the “now and then” which accounts for the estimate
+put upon serving (Mk 10<sup>45</sup>). <i>As repentance unto the
+Kingdom of God the ethics also of the Sermon on the
+Mount is interim-ethics.</i> In this we perceive that the moral
+instruction of Jesus remained the same from the first day
+of his public appearance unto his latest utterances, for
+the lowliness and serviceableness which he recommended
+to his Disciples on the way to Jerusalem correspond
+exactly to the new moral conduct which he developed in the
+Sermon on the Mount: they make one meet for the
+Kingdom of God. Only, they constitute a climax in the
+attainment of the new righteousness, inasmuch as they render
+one meet not merely for entrance into the Kingdom but
+for bearing rule in it.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page098">[pg 098]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg098"></a></p>
+
+<p>We encounter again the <i>Leitmotiv</i> of the Sermon on
+the Mount in the epilogue to the great parables uttered
+in Jerusalem. Nothing but the maintenance of the new
+morality in all relations of life guarantees entrance into
+the Kingdom. Hence Jesus can say to the Pharisee who
+agrees to the summary of this new morality as it is
+expressed in the commandment of love: Thou art not far
+from the Kingdom of God (Mk 12<sup>34</sup>). That does not
+mean that the Pharisee by such a disposition of mind has
+already well nigh risen to the height of the “morality of
+the Kingdom.” For if the double commandment of love
+constituted the morality of the <i>Kingdom,</i> Jesus must have
+said to him (since he entirely agreed to these
+commandments): Thou belongest to the Kingdom. The “not far”
+must in fact be understood in a purely chronological sense,
+not as denoting some small measure of perfection which
+the man still lacks. He is not far from the Kingdom of
+God because he possesses the moral quality which will
+identify him as a member of the same when after a short
+space it appears. The “not far” contains therefore the
+same mixture of present and future tense which we have
+remarked in the Beatitudes.</p>
+
+<p>Reasoning from our ethical point of view
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page099">[pg 099]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg099"></a>
+we are
+inclined to apply the conception of reward to this relation
+between membership in the Kingdom and the new
+morality. This, however, does not completely render the
+thought of Jesus, which had to do above all with the
+<i>immediateness</i> of the transition from the condition of
+moral renewal into the super-moral perfection of the
+Kingdom of God. Whosoever at the dawning of the Kingdom
+is in possession of a character morally renovated, he will
+be found a member of the same. This is the adequate
+expression for the relation of morality to the coming
+Kingdom of God.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_3_2">2. The Ethics of Jesus and Modern Ethics.</h3>
+
+<p>The depth of Jesus’ religious ethics encourages us to
+expect that we can find our own modern-ethical
+consciousness reflected in it. With respect to its eternal inward
+truth it is indeed independent of history and unconditioned
+by it, since it already contains the highest ethical thoughts
+of all times. Nevertheless there exists a great difference
+between Jesus’ sentiment and ours. Modern ethics is
+“unconditional,” since it creates of itself the new ethical
+situation,—the presumption being that this situation will evolve
+unto final perfection. Ethics is here an end in itself,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page100">[pg 100]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg100"></a>
+inasmuch as the moral perfection of mankind comes to the
+same thing as the perfection of the Kingdom of God. That
+is Kant’s thought. This self-sufficiency of ethics (which
+however, exacts a certain resignation in view of the
+distant consummation) shows that the modern-Christian
+theory is permeated by Hellenistic-rationalistic ideas and
+has undergone a development of two millenniums.</p>
+
+<p>The ethics of Jesus on the other hand is “conditional,”
+in the sense that it stands in indissoluble connection with
+the expectation of a state of perfection which is to be
+supernaturally brought about. Thereby its Jewish origin
+is revealed, and its immediate connection with the
+Prophetic ethics, in which the moral conduct of the people
+was conditioned by a definite expectation. Hence, if any
+parallel at all may be adduced in explanation of the ethics
+of Jesus, it can be only the Prophetic, never the modern.
+For in proportion as the latter enters into it the mode of
+conception becomes unhistorical, Jesus’ ethics being treated
+as self-sufficient, whereas in fact it is oriented entirely by
+the expected supernatural consummation.</p>
+
+<p>So there has been created the insoluble
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page101">[pg 101]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg101"></a>
+problem, that a
+person thoroughly modern so far as his ethics is concerned
+should incidentally give utterance to eschatological
+expressions. But if we once perceive the conditional
+character of Jesus’ ethics, and seriously consider its connection
+with the ethics of the Prophets, it is immediately clear
+that all conceptions of the Kingdom as a growth out of
+small beginnings, all notions about an ethics of the
+Kingdom, or about the development of it, have been foisted
+upon Jesus by our modern consciousness—simply because
+we could not readily familiarise ourselves with the thought
+that the ethics of Jesus is conditional.</p>
+
+<p>We make him conceive of the Kingdom of God as if
+its historical realisation represented a narrow opening
+through which it had to squeeze before attaining the full
+stature which belongs to it. That is a modern conception.
+For Jesus and the Prophets, however, it was a thing
+impossible. In the immediateness of their ethical view there
+is no place for a morality of the Kingdom of God or for
+a development of the Kingdom—it lies beyond the borders
+of good and evil; it will be brought about by a cosmic
+catastrophe through which evil is to be completely
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page102">[pg 102]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg102"></a>
+overcome. Hence all moral criteria are to be abolished. <i>The
+Kingdom of God is super-moral.</i></p>
+
+<p>To this height of hyper-ethical idealism the modern
+consciousness is no longer capable of soaring. History has
+aged us too much for that. But for the historical
+understanding of the ethics of Jesus it is the indispensable
+assumption.</p>
+
+<p>In addition to this, when we think of the Kingdom, our
+thought stretches forward to the coming generations
+which are to realise it in ever increasing measure. Jesus’
+glance is directed backward. For him the Kingdom is
+composed of the generations which have already gone down
+to the grave and which are now to be awakened unto a
+state of perfection. How should there be for him any
+ethics of sexual relations, when he explains to the
+Sadducees that in the Kingdom of God after the great
+Resurrection there will be no longer any sexual relations at all,
+“but they will be like the angels of heaven” (Mk 12<sup>25</sup>)?</p>
+
+<p>Every ethical form of Jesus, be it never so perfect,
+leads therefore only up to the frontier of the Kingdom of
+God, while every trace of a path disappears so soon as
+one advances upon the new territory. There one needs it
+no more.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page103">[pg 103]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg103"></a></p>
+
+<p>We have a prejudice against this conception of
+conditional ethics. It is an unjustified prejudice if it is due to
+a suspicion that Jesus’ ethics is thereby disparaged.
+Exactly the opposite is the case. For this conditionality
+springs from an absolute ethical idealism, which
+postulates for the expected state of perfection conditions of
+existence which are themselves ethical. In our
+unconditional and self-sufficing ethics we, however, assume that
+the conflict between good and evil must go on forever,
+as belonging constantly to the nature of the ethical. Ethics
+and theology do not stand for us in the same lively
+relationship as they do with Jesus. The vividness of the colours
+of the absolute ethical idealism has been faded by history.
+So, to render the ethics of Jesus unconditional and
+self-sufficing is not only unhistorical, but it means also the
+degradation of his ethical idealism.</p>
+
+<p>On one point, however, our ethical sentiment is justified
+in its prejudice. If ethics has to do only with the
+expectation of the supernatural consummation, its actual worth is
+diminished, since it is merely individual ethics and is
+concerned only with the relation of each single person to the
+Kingdom of God. The thought, however, that the moral community
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page104">[pg 104]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg104"></a>
+which has been constituted by Jesus’ preaching
+must as such be in some way the effective first stage in the
+realisation of the Kingdom of God—this thought belongs
+not alone to <i>our</i> ethical sentiment, but it animated also
+the preaching of Jesus, for he wrought out in strong relief
+the social character of his ethics. This explains the
+reluctance one feels to admit that the eschatological idea of the
+Kingdom of God lay at the basis of Jesus’ preaching from
+beginning to end, since <i>then</i> one cannot explain how the
+new moral community which he formed about himself was
+in his thought organically connected with the Kingdom
+which was supernaturally to appear.</p>
+
+<p>One glides here unintentionally into a modern line of
+thought. The idea of development furnishes what we want,
+allowing us to conceive of the moral community as an
+initial stage which by constant growth, extensive and
+intensive, is ever approaching the final stage. The gradually
+widening circle represents, however, a modern way of
+viewing history. It is completely foreign to Jesus. Yet even
+though he cannot have made use of this explanation of
+ours, the <i>fact</i> that this new community stands in an
+organic relation with the final stage was for him as
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page105">[pg 105]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg105"></a>
+certain as for us. But because he expected this final stage as a
+purely supernatural event the connection was not to be
+apprehended by human reflection, rather it was a <i>divine
+secret,</i> which he illuminated only by pointing to analogies
+in the processes of nature.</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page106">[pg 106]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg106"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_4">CHAPTER IV</h2>
+
+<h4>THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_1">1. The Parables of the Secret of the Kingdom of God.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">WE have to do here with the “secret of the Kingdom
+of God” (Mk 4<sup>11</sup>), which is dealt with in the parables
+of the sower, of the self-growing seed, of the grain of
+mustard, and of the leaven. We commonly find in these
+parables the illustration of a constant and gradually
+unfolding through which the petty initial stage of a
+development is connected with the glorious final stage. The seed
+that is sown already contains the harvest, inasmuch as
+each seed is devised for the production of plant and fruit.
+They develop from the seed by natural law. So it is
+likewise with the development of the Kingdom of God from
+small and obscure beginnings.</p>
+
+<p>This attractive interpretation of the parables takes
+from them, however, the character of <i>secrets,</i> for the
+illustration of a steady unfolding through the processes
+of nature is no secret. Hence it is that we fail to
+understand what the secret is in these parables.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page107">[pg 107]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg107"></a>
+We interpret
+them according to our scientific knowledge of nature which
+enables us to unite even such different stages as these by
+the conception of development.</p>
+
+<p>By reason of the immediateness with which the
+unschooled spirit of olden time observed the world, nature
+had, however, still secrets to offer,—in the fact, namely,
+that she produced two utterly distinct conditions in a
+sequence, the connection of which was just as certain as
+it was inexplicable. This immediateness is the note of
+Jesus’ parables. The conception of development in nature
+which is contemplated in the modern explanation is not
+at all brought into prominence, but the exposition is rather
+devised to place the two conditions so immediately side
+by side that one is compelled to raise the question, How
+can the final stage proceed from the initial stage?</p>
+
+<p>1. A man sowed seed. A great part of the seed was
+lost on account of circumstances the most diverse—and
+yet the produce of the corn which fell upon good ground
+was so great that it restored the seed sown thirty, sixty,
+even an hundred fold.</p>
+
+<p>The detailed interpretation of the description of this
+loss, and the application to particular classes of men, as
+it lies before us in
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page108">[pg 108]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg108"></a>
+Mk 4<sup>13-20</sup>, is the product of a
+later view which perceived no longer any secret in the
+parable. Originally, however, the single points of the
+description were not independent, but the seed which was
+lost upon the path, or upon the stony ground, or among
+the thorns, together with that which the fowls of heaven
+devoured, constituted altogether a unified contrast to that
+which fell upon good ground. The manner in which it was
+destroyed has no importance for the parable. In spite of
+the description so wonderfully wrought out, this saying of
+Jesus expresses one single thought: So small, considering
+all that was lost, was the sowing; and yet the harvest so
+great!—Therein lies the secret.</p>
+
+<p>2. A man scattered seed upon the ground. He slept,
+went about his affairs, and concerned himself no further
+about the seed. Before he realised it the harvest stood
+already in the field, and he could send his servants to
+gather it in. How did it come to pass that after the seed
+was sunk in the earth the ground <i>of itself</i> brought forth
+the blade, the ear, and the full corn?—That is the secret.</p>
+
+<p>3. A grain of mustard seed was sown; from it sprouted
+a great shrub, with
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page109">[pg 109]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg109"></a>
+branches under which the birds of the
+heaven could lodge. How did it come to pass, since the
+mustard seed is so small?—That is the secret.</p>
+
+<p>4. A woman added a little leaven to a great mass of
+dough. Afterwards the whole lump was “leaven.” How
+can a little leaven leaven a whole great lump?—That is
+the secret.</p>
+
+<p>These parables are not at all devised to be interpreted
+and understood; rather they are calculated to make the
+hearers observant of the fact that in the affairs of the
+Kingdom of God a secret is preparing like that which they
+experience in nature. They are <i>signals.</i> As the harvest
+follows upon the seed-sowing, without it being possible
+for any one to say how it comes about; so, as the sequel
+to Jesus’ preaching, will the Kingdom of God come with
+power. Small as is the circle which he gathers about
+himself in comparison with the greatness of God’s Kingdom,
+it is none the less certain that the Kingdom will come as a
+consequence of this moral renewal, restricted as it is in
+scope. It is no less confidently to be expected than that
+the seed, which while he speaks is slumbering in the
+ground, will bring forth a glorious harvest. Watch not
+only for the harvest, but watch for the Kingdom of
+God!—so speaks
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page110">[pg 110]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg110"></a>
+the spiritual sower to the Galileans at the
+season of the seed-sowing. They ought to have the
+presentiment that the moral renewal in consequence of his
+preaching stands in a necessary but inexplicable connection
+with the dawning of the Kingdom of God. The same God
+who through his mysterious power in nature brings the
+harvest to pass will also bring to pass the Kingdom of
+God.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore, when it was the season of the harvest, he
+sent his Disciples forth to proclaim: The Kingdom of
+God is at hand.</p>
+
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_2">2. The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Address to
+the People after the Mission of the Twelve.</h3>
+
+<p>Jesus was alone. The Disciples carried the news of the
+nearness of the Kingdom throughout the cities of Israel.
+While the people thronged him there came the emissaries
+of the Baptist with their question. He dismissed them with
+the answer: the Kingdom stands before the door, one
+needs only the language of the signs and wonders in order
+to understand. Turning to the people he speaks of the
+significance of the Baptist and of his office. With this he
+lets drop a hint of mystery (Mt 11<sup>14</sup>, “If you are able
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page111">[pg 111]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg111"></a>
+to conceive it,” Mt 11<sup>15</sup>, “he hath ears to hear, let
+him hear”). John is Elijah, i. e. the personality whose
+advent marks the immediate dawning of the Kingdom.
+“From the days of John the Baptist until this moment the
+Kingdom of Heaven suffereth violence, and men of
+violence take it by force. For all the Prophets and the Law
+prophesied until John; and, if ye are able to conceive it,
+this is Elijah, which is to come. He that hath ears to hear,
+let him hear” (Mt 11<sup>12-15</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>This saying resists all exegesis, for it does not in the
+least contain the thought that the individuals gain access
+to the Kingdom by force. What might that mean anyway?
+In what sense does that come to pass from the days of the
+Baptist on? The picture which Jesus employs is
+unintelligible if it has to do with the entrance of individuals into
+the Kingdom. It remains just as incomprehensible,
+however, if it is supposed to refer to the realisation of the
+Kingdom through gradual development. In the first place,
+the image of an act of violence contradicts the notion of
+development; in the second place, the beginning of this
+compelling force must be dated not from John but from
+Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>It is a question of the secret of the Kingdom of God,—hence
+the hint: He that hath
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page112">[pg 112]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg112"></a>
+ears to hear, let him hear.
+This phrase occurs only in connection with the parables
+of the secret of the Kingdom and as the conclusion of
+apocalyptic sayings (cf. the use of the expression in the
+Apocalypse: 2<sup>7, 11, 17, 29</sup>, 3<sup>6, 13, 22</sup>). Repentance and
+moral renewal in prospect of the Kingdom of God are
+like a pressure which is exerted in order to compel its
+appearance. This movement had begun with the days of
+the Baptist. The men of violence who take it by force are
+they which put into practice the moral renewal. They
+draw it with power down to the earth.</p>
+
+<p>The saying in the speech about the Baptist and the
+parables of the Kingdom of God mutually explain and
+supplement one another. The parables bring chiefly into
+prominence the <i>incommensurateness</i> of the relation
+between the moral renewal that is practised and the
+consummation of the Kingdom of God, while the image in
+the speech after the Mission dwells more upon the
+compelling connection between the two.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_3">3. The Secret of the Kingdom of God in the Light
+of the Prophetic and Jewish Expectation.</h3>
+
+<p>Jesus’ ethics is closely connected with that of the Old
+Testament prophets, inasmuch as
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page113">[pg 113]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg113"></a>
+both are alike
+conditioned by the expectation of a state of perfection which
+God is to bring about. But also the secret of the Kingdom
+of God, according to which the moral renewal hastens
+the supernatural coming of the Kingdom, corresponds
+with the fundamental thought of the Prophets. In the
+case of the Prophets, the relation between the moral
+reform which they would bring about and the glorious
+condition which God will bring to pass at the Day of
+Judgment is not that of a mere temporal sequence, but it rests
+upon a supernatural causal connection. Godless behaviour
+brings nearer the Day of Judgment and of condemnation.
+Therefore, God chastises the people and gives them into
+the hand of their oppressors. When, however, they
+determine to reform their ways, when they seek refuge in him
+alone with trusting faith, when righteousness and truth
+prevail among them, then will the Lord deliver them from
+their oppressors, and his glory will be manifest over
+Israel, to whom the heathen will do service. In that day
+there will then be peace poured out over the whole world,
+over nature as well as man.</p>
+
+<p>After the Exile this thought was still operative in the
+conception of the Law. By the observance of the Law the
+promised glorious
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page114">[pg 114]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg114"></a>
+estate will be wrung from God. Not the
+individual but the collectivity influences God through the
+Law. This generic mode of thought is the primary, the
+individual mode is secondary. “Israel would be redeemed
+if only it observed two Sabbaths faithfully.” (Schabbath 118<i>b</i>.
+Wünsche, <i>System der altsynagogalen Palästinensischen Theologie,</i>
+1880, p. 299). Here we meet with the early prophetic thought in
+legalistic form.</p>
+
+<p>In general, however, it was the individualistic view
+which prevailed later. The Law, and moral conduct in
+general, were only the preparation for the expected estate
+of glory. The lively generic view of the Prophets was
+replaced by individualistic and lifeless conception.
+Eschatology became a problem of accounting and ethics became
+casuistry.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus, however, reached back after the fundamental
+conception of the prophetic period, and it is only the <i>form</i>
+in which he conceives of the emergence of the final event
+which bears the stamp of later Judaism. He no longer
+conceives of it as an intervention of God in the history of
+the nations, as did the Prophets; but rather as a final
+cosmical catastrophe. His eschatology is the apocalyptic
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page115">[pg 115]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg115"></a>
+of the book of Daniel, since the Kingdom is to be brought
+about by the Son of Man when he appears upon the
+clouds of heaven (Mk 8<sup>38</sup>- 9<sup>1</sup>).</p>
+
+<p><i>The secret of the Kingdom of God is therefore the
+synthesis effected by a sovereign spirit between the early
+prophetic ethics and the apocalyptic of the book of Daniel. </i>
+Hence it is that Jesus’ eschatology was rooted in his age
+and yet stands so high above it. For his contemporaries
+it was a question of <i>waiting for</i> the Kingdom, of
+excogitating and depicting every incident of the great catastrophe,
+and of preparing for the same; while for Jesus it was a
+question of <i>bringing to pass</i> the expected event through
+the moral renovation. <i>Eschatological ethics is transformed
+into ethical eschatology.</i></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_4">4. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and the Assumption
+of a Fortunate Galilean Period.</h3>
+
+<p>According to the secret of the Kingdom of God, the
+coming of the Kingdom is not dependent upon the broad
+success of Jesus’ preaching. Indeed, he expressly
+emphasises the fact that the limitation of the circle which
+performs the moral renovation stands in no
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page116">[pg 116]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg116"></a>
+relation whatever
+to the all-embracing greatness of the Kingdom which is
+to come about by reason of their conduct. It suffices that
+a scanty part of the seed falls upon good ground—and the
+overplentiful harvest is there, through God’s power. Not
+by the multitude but by the men of violence is the Kingdom
+compelled to appear.</p>
+
+<p>Hence the secret of the Kingdom of God makes the
+assumption of a fortunate Galilean period entirely
+superfluous. Jesus can enjoy the expectation of the speedy
+realisation of the Kingdom even when he experiences the
+greatest ill[ ]success and when whole districts close
+themselves against his preaching. They do not thereby delay
+the coming of the Kingdom of God but only deliver
+themselves to the judgment, for the Kingdom comes necessarily
+by reason of the moral renewal of the circle which
+gathered about Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>The justice of this interpretation of the secret of the
+Kingdom of God is shown therefore, in the fact that it
+renders unnecessary, as an explanation of Jesus’ life, an
+assumption which is otherwise absolutely unavoidable but
+cannot in any way be historically confirmed.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page117">[pg 117]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg117"></a></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_5">5. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and the
+Universalism of Jesus.</h3>
+
+<p>So long as the moral renewal upon the basis of Jesus’
+preaching is brought into relation with the realisation of
+the Kingdom through the modern thought of evolutionary
+development the factor correlative to the perfection of
+the Kingdom is likewise modern, that is, “humanity as a
+moral whole.” One attributes then to Jesus’ reflection
+upon the growth of the new moral community which he
+founded, foresight of its gradual extension till it embraces
+the whole of Israel—here, however, the thought of Jesus
+stops; one may not attribute to him universalistic ideas,
+for the commission to the Disciples shows that he did
+not reflect about a moral renewal beyond the borders of
+Israel. (Mt 10<sup>5, 6</sup>): Go [not] into any way of the
+Gentiles, and enter not into any city of the Samaritans: but go
+rather to the lost sheep of the house of Israel.</p>
+
+<p>The preaching of the Kingdom of God is therefore
+particularistic; the Kingdom itself, however, is universalistic,
+“for they shall come from the east and from the west,
+from the north and from the south.” The generation
+which required a miracle shall experience
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page118">[pg 118]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg118"></a>
+such: The Ninevites shall arise at the Day of Judgment and condemn
+it, because they repented at the preaching of Jonah, “and
+here is a greater than Jonah.” Also the Queen of the
+South shall rise in judgment against the contemporaries
+of Jesus, because she came from the ends of the earth to
+hear the wisdom of Solomon, “and behold, a greater than
+Solomon is here” (Mt 12<sup>41-42</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>For the modern consciousness, because it applies to
+everything the rubrics of evolution, there is an insuperable
+contradiction between the particularism of the preaching
+of the Kingdom and the universalism of its consummation.
+In the secret of the Kingdom of God, however,
+particularism and universalism go together. The Kingdom is
+universalistic, for it arises out of a cosmic act by which God
+awakes unto glory the righteous of all times and of all
+peoples. The bringing about of the Kingdom, on the other
+hand, is dependent upon particularism, for it is to be
+forced to approach by the moral renewal of the
+contemporaries of Jesus. Salvation comes out of Israel.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page119">[pg 119]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg119"></a></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_6">6. The Secret of the Kingdom of God and Jesus’ Attitude
+towards the Law and the State.</h3>
+
+<p>Jesus did not declare himself either for the Law or
+against it. He recognised it simply as an existing fact
+without binding himself to it. He felt no obligation to decide
+in principle whether it was to be regarded as binding or
+as not binding. For him this was a question of no practical
+importance. The real concern was the new morality, not
+the Law. This Law was for him holy and inviolable in
+so far as it pointed the way to the new morality. But
+therewith it did away with itself, for in the Kingdom
+which comes into being on account of the new morality
+the Law is abrogated, since the accomplished condition is
+super-legal and super-ethical. Up to this point it had a
+right to last. Whether the Law should also be binding
+upon his followers in the future was a question which did
+not exist for Jesus; it was history which first proposed
+this problem to the primitive Church.</p>
+
+<p>It was the same with regard to the State. The question
+which was put to him in the Jerusalem days had for him
+no practical importance. As he replied to the Pharisees’
+question, whether one should give tribute to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page120">[pg 120]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg120"></a>
+Cæsar, he
+had no thought of defining his attitude towards the State
+or determining that of his followers. How could any one
+be concerned at all about such things! The State was
+simply earthly, therefore ungodly, dominination [domination]. Its
+duration extended, therefore, only to the dawn of God’s
+dominion. As this was near at hand, what need had one
+to decide if one would be tributary to the world-power
+or no? One might as well submit to it, its end was in fact
+near. Give to Cæsar what is Cæsar’s and to God what is
+God’s (Mk 12<sup>17</sup>)—this word is uttered with a
+sovereign irony against the Pharisees, who understood so little
+the signs of the time that this still appeared to them a
+question of importance. They are just as foolish in the
+matter of the Kingdom of God as the Sadducees with their
+catch-question to which husband the seven times married
+wife should belong at the resurrection; for they, too, leave
+one thing out of account—the power of God
+(Mk 12<sup>24</sup>).</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_4_7">7. The Modern Element in Jesus’ Eschatology.</h3>
+
+<p>“Let it be the maxim in every scientific investigation
+for one to pursue undisturbed the due course of it with
+all possible exactitude
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page121">[pg 121]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg121"></a>
+and frankness, not considering what
+it may collide with outside of its own field, but following
+it out, so far as one can, truly and completely for itself
+alone. Frequent observation has convinced me that when
+one has brought this task to an end, that which in the
+midst of it appeared to me for the time being very
+questionable with respect to other teaching outside, if only I
+closed my eyes to this questionableness and attended
+merely to my task till it was finished, finally in
+unexpected wise proved to be in perfect agreement with those
+very teachings,—though the truth had presented itself
+without the least reference to those teachings, without
+partiality and prejudice for them.”(Footnote. <i>Kritik der praktischen Vernunft.
+</i> Ed. Reclam, p. 129.)</p>
+
+<p>Kant uttered this profound word at the moment when
+the correspondence of the notion of transcendental
+freedom with the practical first occurred to him. The case is
+the same with the relation of Jesus’ ethics to his
+eschatology. It is a postulate of our Christian conviction that
+the ethics of Jesus in its basic thoughts is modern. Hence
+we come back again and again to the search after the
+modern element in his ethics, and for this cause we force
+into the background his eschatology,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page122">[pg 122]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg122"></a>
+since it appears to
+us unmodern. If, however, one resolves to ignore for a
+moment this interest, which is so deeply grounded in our
+being and so well justified, and regards the relation of
+Jesus’ eschatology to his ethics simply for itself, as a
+purely historical question, the investigation brings to
+light the astonishing result that the latter (i. e. Jesus’
+ethics) is modern in a far higher degree than any one
+hitherto has dared to hope. Jesus’ ethics is modern, not
+because the eschatology can be reduced somehow to a mere
+accompaniment, but precisely because the ethics is
+absolutely dependent upon this eschatology! The fact is, this
+eschatology itself, as it is exhibited in the secret of the
+Kingdom of God, is thoroughly modern, inasmuch as it is
+dominated by the thought that the Kingdom of God is
+to come by reason of the religious-moral renovation which
+the believers perform. <i>Every moral-religious performance
+is therefore labour for the coming of the Kingdom of God.</i></p>
+
+
+<p>As the eschatology in this ethical-eschatological
+Weltanschauung gradually faded in the course of history, there
+remained an ethical Weltanschauung in which the
+eschatology persisted in the form of an imperishable faith in
+the final triumph of the good. The
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page123">[pg 123]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg123"></a>
+secret of the Kingdom
+of God contains the secret of the whole Christian
+Weltanschauung. The ethical eschatology of Jesus is the <i>heroic
+form</i> in which the modern-Christian Weltanschauung first
+entered into history!</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page124">[pg 124]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg124"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_5">CHAPTER V</h2>
+
+<h4>THE SECRET OF THE KINGDOM OF GOD
+IN THE THOUGHT OF THE PASSION</h4>
+
+<p class="drop">IN the last period of his life Jesus again uttered
+parables of the Kingdom of God: God’s vineyard
+(Mt 21<sup>33-46</sup>); the royal marriage (Mt 22<sup>1-14</sup>); the
+servant watching (Mt 24<sup>42-47</sup>); the ten virgins
+(Mt 25<sup>1-13</sup>); the talents (Mt 25<sup>14-30</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>These parables, in contrast to those about the secret
+of the Kingdom, contain no secret, but rather they are
+teaching parables pure and simple, from which a moral
+is to be drawn. The Kingdom of God is near. Those only
+will be found to belong to it who by their moral conduct
+are prepared for it.</p>
+
+<p>The second period contains instead the <i>secret of the
+Passion.</i> Jesus’ utterances, as we have seen, point to a
+mysterious causal connection between the Passion and the
+coming of the Kingdom, because the eschatology and the
+thought of the Passion always emerge side by side, and
+the Disciples’ expectation of the future is in every case
+roused to the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page125">[pg 125]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg125"></a>
+highest pitch by the proclamation of his
+suffering.</p>
+
+<p><i>The secret of the Passion takes up, therefore, the secret
+of the Kingdom of God and carries it further.</i> To the
+moral renewal which, according to the secret of the
+Kingdom of God, exercises a compelling power upon the
+coming of the Kingdom, there is adjoined another factor—<i>the
+redeeming death of Jesus.</i> That completes the penitence
+of those who believe in the coming of the Kingdom.
+Therewith Jesus comes to the aid of the men of violence who
+are compelling the approach of the Kingdom. The power
+which he thereby exerts is the highest conceivable—he
+gives up his life.</p>
+
+<p>The idea of the Passion is therefore the transformation
+of the secret of the Kingdom of God. Hence it is no more
+designed to be understood than are the parables of the
+secret of the Kingdom. In each case it is a question of a
+fact which can be probed no further.</p>
+
+<p>The connection between the thought of the Passion and
+the secret of the Kingdom of God guarantees the
+continuity of Jesus’ world of thought. All constructions which
+have been devised with a view to establishing this
+continuity have proved insufficient to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page126">[pg 126]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg126"></a>
+accomplish what was
+expected of them. The acceptance of the thought of the
+Passion means in all cases a complete change in his idea
+of the Kingdom and in his Weltanschauung. If, however,
+one places the thought of the Passion in the great
+context of the secret of the Kingdom of God, the continuity
+is furnished naturally. The thought of the supernatural
+introduction of the Kingdom of God runs through the
+whole of Jesus’ life: the idea of the Passion is merely
+the fashion in which it is formulated in the second period.</p>
+
+<p>How comes it that the secret of the Kingdom of God
+takes the form of the secret of the Passion?</p>
+
+<p>Why must the atonement of Jesus be added to complete
+the moral renewal and the penitence of the community
+which believes in the Kingdom?</p>
+
+<p>In what sense has the redeeming death of Jesus an
+influence upon the coming of the Kingdom?</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page127">[pg 127]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg127"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_6">CHAPTER VI</h2>
+
+<h4>THE CHARACTER ASCRIBED TO JESUS ON THE
+GROUND OF HIS PUBLIC MINISTRY</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_1">1. The Problem and the Facts.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">THE experience at the Baptism signified the inception
+of Jesus’ messianic consciousness. In the neighbourhood
+of Cæsarea Philippi he revealed his secret to the Disciples.
+It was before the High Priest that he first openly made
+profession of his messianic office. Therefore the messianic
+consciousness underlay all the while his preaching of the
+Kingdom of God. But he does not assume on the part
+of his hearers any knowledge of the position which
+belonged to him. The faith which he required had nothing
+to do with his person, but it was due only to the message
+of the nearness of the Kingdom. It was the Fourth
+Evangelist who first presented the history of Jesus as if
+it concerned itself chiefly with his personality.</p>
+
+<p>We cannot estimate how far his real character may
+have shone through his message, for such as had an
+awakened understanding. One thing is certain: up to the time
+of the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page128">[pg 128]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg128"></a>
+mission of the Twelve no one had the faintest idea
+of recognising in him the Messiah. At Cæsarea Philippi
+the Disciples could only reply that the people took him for
+a prophet or for Elijah the Forerunner, and they
+themselves knew no better, for Peter, as Jesus himself said,
+did not derive his knowledge from the Master’s ministry
+in work and word, but owed it to a supernatural revelation.</p>
+
+<p>The Synoptical notices must be judged in accordance
+with this fundamental fact. In the first place, there is a
+series of Matthean passages which stand at variance with
+it.</p>
+
+<p>Mt 9<sup>27-31</sup>: In the Galilean parallel to the healing
+of the blind man at Jericho it is related that two blind
+men pursued him through the whole village with the cry,
+“Son of David.” What Jesus means by the warning, “See
+that no man knows it,” remains indeed obscure.</p>
+
+<p>Mt 12<sup>23</sup>: After a miraculous healing the people
+whisper to themselves whether this is not the Son of
+David.</p>
+
+<p>Mt 14<sup>33</sup>: After their experience at sea in the boat
+the Disciples fall down before him saying, “Truly thou
+art the Son of God.”</p>
+
+<p>Mt 15<sup>22</sup>: The Canaanitish woman addresses him as
+the Son of David,—whereas
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page129">[pg 129]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg129"></a>
+according to Mark she
+simply falls at his feet and cries for help.</p>
+
+<p>All of these passages are peculiar to Matthew and
+belong to a secondary literary stratum. For the history
+of Jesus they have no importance, but a great deal for
+the history of the history of Jesus. They show us, that
+is, how the later time was inclined even more and more
+to depict his life in harmony with the presumption that
+he not only knew himself to be the Messiah but that
+others also had this impression of him.</p>
+
+<p>In the second place, it is a question of the speeches of
+the demoniacs. According to Mk 3<sup>11</sup> the unclean spirits,
+as often as they saw him, threw themselves at his feet
+and addressed him as the Son of God (cf. also Mk 1<sup>24</sup>,
+Mk 5<sup>7</sup>). It is true, he rebuked this cry and commanded silence.
+But if we did not have the incontestably sure information
+that during the whole of his Galilean ministry the people
+knew no more than that he was a prophet or Elijah, we
+should be forced to assume that these cries of the
+demoniacs made the people somehow aware of his true
+character. As it is, however, we may discern with
+precision, from the fact that the demon-cries were ignored,
+how very far men were from suspecting him to be the Messiah.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page130">[pg 130]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg130"></a>
+Who believed the devil and the wild speech of
+the possessed?</p>
+
+<p>In the third place, it is a question of the expression
+“Son of Man.” If Jesus used it as a self-designation before
+Cæsarea Philippi, that would constitute in each case a
+messianic suggestion, for every one must refer this expression
+of the book of Daniel to the person who was to
+characterise the last time.</p>
+
+<p>According to Mark, Jesus twice employed this
+expression as a self-designation <i>before</i> Cæsarea Philippi
+(Mk 2<sup>10</sup> and 2<sup>28</sup>), and it occurs in the same sense in a series
+of passages peculiar to Matthew (Mt 8<sup>20</sup>, 11<sup>19</sup>,
+Mt 12<sup>32, 40</sup>, 13<sup>37, 41</sup> and 16<sup>13</sup>). In judging these
+passages also one must proceed from the sure ground which
+is furnished by the reply of the Disciples at Cæsarea
+Philippi.</p>
+
+<p>Either Jesus had not used this expression up to that
+time, in which case these Son of Man passages are
+chronologically anticipated, and constitute a mere literary
+phenomena.</p>
+
+<p>Or else he had used the expression. Then he must
+have done so in such a way that no man could suppose that
+he assumed for himself the dignity of the Son of Man
+of Daniel.</p>
+
+<p>The problem in the second period is still harder. The
+Disciples knew his secret, but they dared reveal it to no
+one. But how
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page131">[pg 131]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg131"></a>
+about the people? Did they now have a
+presentiment of the messianic dignity of Jesus?</p>
+
+<p>The problem has to do therefore with three facts:</p>
+
+<p>1. The whole discussion in the Jerusalem days turns
+in no wise upon the messianic dignity of Jesus, but has
+to do rather with legal propositions and with questions of
+the day. Far too little weight has been attached hitherto
+to the fact that neither the people nor the scribes took up
+a position towards him as the messianic personality. How
+different the Jerusalem days would have been if the
+question which agitated them was: Is he the Messiah—is he
+not? can he be—can he not? In reality he is merely the
+unofficial authority of the Galilean people, before whom
+the scholars of the capital bring their questions of the
+school, whether with a sincere mind, or with the perfidious
+intention of destroying his authority.</p>
+
+<p>2. In the second period Jesus had the people about him
+only for a few days,—from the crossing of the Jordan
+until his death. During this time he made to them no
+disclosure about his messiahship, and gave them also no hint
+which they could and must understand in this sense. The
+bribed witnesses know nothing of the sort to allege. What is
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page132">[pg 132]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg132"></a>
+remarkable in their evidence—upon which too little
+weight has been laid—consists precisely in the fact that
+<i>they in no wise charge him with wishing to be the Messiah.</i>
+For them his impious pretention exhausts itself in a
+disrespectful word about the Temple. Let one picture to
+himself what the procedure of the trial would have been if
+the hired accusers had of themselves discovered messianic
+hints in Jesus’ speeches!</p>
+
+<p>3. From this point one arrives necessarily at the
+conclusion that up to the last moment he was for the people
+in Jerusalem just what he was in Galilee,—the great
+Prophet or the Forerunner, but in no wise the Messiah!
+There are two facts, however, which do not comport with
+this.</p>
+
+<p>The entrance into Jerusalem was—according to the
+common apprehension—<i>a messianic ovation.</i> Therefore
+the people must have had a presentiment of Jesus’ dignity.</p>
+
+<p>The High Priest put to him the question, whether he
+were the Messiah. Therefore he knew of Jesus’ claim.</p>
+
+<p>We have here a clear question to deal with: was Jesus
+regarded in the Jerusalem days as a messianic pretendant
+or no? One should not obscure this question by speaking
+of a more or less clear “presentment” in
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page133">[pg 133]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg133"></a>
+this matter. The
+“presentiment of the messiahship of Jesus” is a modern
+invention. The populace would hardly be swayed hither
+and yon by a dark mysterious presentiment, but rather it
+must have been a question of belief or unbelief.
+Whosoever held that he was the Messiah must accompany him
+through fire and death—to glory. Whosoever held no such
+faith, but had only a presentiment of such a pretention
+on his part, must give the signal to stone the blasphemer.
+There was no third course.</p>
+
+<p>The facts in general speak in favour of the opinion
+that the people and the Pharisees in the Jerusalem days
+ascribed to Jesus no messianic pretention,—no more
+indeed than they did at an earlier period. Only in this case
+the entrance into Jerusalem, understood as a messianic
+ovation, remains an enigma, and it is likewise
+unaccountable how it occurred to the High Priest to question him
+about his messiahship.</p>
+
+<p>On the one hand the situation must be understood in
+the way which is commonly assumed. Then one must
+renounce every hope of an historical understanding of the
+last public period of Jesus. It will not do to suppose that
+at the beginning of this period (entrance into Jerusalem)
+and at the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page134">[pg 134]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg134"></a>
+end of it (question of the High Priest at the
+trial) he was taken for the Messiah, while the Jerusalem
+days which lay in the interval knew nothing of this claim
+whatever.</p>
+
+<p>Or else—the entrance into Jerusalem and the question
+of the High Priest have not been rightly and historically
+understood. Was the ovation offered to the messianic
+pretendant? Did the High Priest in his question give
+utterance to something which all knew? Did he deduce the
+claim of messiahship from Jesus’ life, activity, and
+speech?—or did he perhaps learn through betrayal the
+innermost secret of Jesus, which since Cæsarea Philippi was
+known only to his trusted intimates?</p>
+
+<p>The problem of Jesus’ messiahship in all its difficulty
+may be formulated as follows: How was it possible that
+Jesus knew himself as the Messiah from the beginning,
+and yet to the very last moment did not give in his public
+preaching any intimation of his messiahship? How could
+it in the long run remain hidden from the people that these
+speeches were uttered out of a messianic consciousness?
+<i>Jesus was a Messiah who during his public ministry would
+not be one, did not need to be, and might not be, for the sake
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page135">[pg 135]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg135"></a>
+of fulfilling his mission! It is thus that history puts
+the problem.</i></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_2">2. Jesus Is Elijah through His Solidarity with the
+Son of Man.</h3>
+
+<p><i>What character could and must the people ascribe to
+Jesus on the ground of his public ministry?</i> That is the
+question with which we have now to do.</p>
+
+<p>The Messiah and the messianic Kingdom belong
+inseparately together. Hence if Jesus had preached a
+present messianic Kingdom, it would have been at the same
+time incumbent upon him to indicate the Messiah,—he
+would have had to begin by legitimating himself as the
+Messiah before the people.</p>
+
+<p>The fact is, however, that he preached a future
+kingdom. With this the possibility was completely excluded
+that any one could suppose him to be the Messiah. <i>If the
+Kingdom was future, so also was the Messiah.</i> If Jesus
+nevertheless had messianic pretensions, this thought was
+thoroughly remote from the people, for his preaching of
+the Kingdom excluded even the least conjecture of the
+sort. Hence even the cries of the demons did not avail to
+put the people on the right track.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page136">[pg 136]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg136"></a></p>
+
+<p>Conjectures of that sort were rendered completely
+impossible by the way in which Jesus spoke of the Messiah
+in the third person and as a character of the future. He
+intimated to the Disciples as he sent them upon their
+mission that the Son of Man would appear before they
+had gone through all the cities of Israel (Mt 10<sup>23</sup>).
+In Mk 8<sup>38</sup> he gave promise to the people of the speedy
+appearing of the Son of Man for judgment and the
+coming of the Kingdom of God with power. In the same way
+at Jerusalem he still spoke of the judgment which the
+Son of Man will hold when he appears in his glory
+surrounded by the angels (Mt 25<sup>31</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Only the Disciples after the revelation of Cæsarea
+Philippi, and the High Priest after the “Yes” of Jesus,
+could trace a personal relation between him and the Son
+of Man of whose coming he spoke,—for they knew his
+secret. For his other hearers, however, <i>Jesus of Nazareth</i>
+and the individual who was the subject of his discourse,
+the <i>Son of Man,</i> remained two entirely distinct
+personalities.</p>
+
+<p>Before the people Jesus merely suggested the <i>absolute
+solidarity</i> between himself and the Son of Man whom he
+proclaimed.</p>
+
+<p>It was only in this form that his own gigantic
+personality obtruded in his preaching of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page137">[pg 137]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg137"></a>
+the Kingdom of God.
+Only he who under all conditions confesses him, the
+proclaimer of the coming of the Son of Man, will be
+discovered as a member of the Kingdom at the Day of
+Judgment. Jesus, in fact, will intervene before God and before
+the Son of Man in his behalf (Mk 8<sup>38</sup>- 9<sup>1</sup>, Mt 10<sup>32-33</sup>).
+One must be ready to give up the dearest things to
+follow him, for only so can one show one’s self <i>worthy
+of him</i> (Mt 10<sup>37, 38</sup>). Hence Jesus is grieved when
+the rich young man cannot make up his mind to give up
+his riches in order to follow him (Mk 10<sup>22</sup>), for now
+he cannot appear for him at the Day of Judgment to
+insure that he shall be accepted as a member of the
+Kingdom of God. Still, in the measureless omnipotence of God
+he finds reason to hope that this rich man will nevertheless
+find entrance into the Kingdom (Mk 10<sup>17-31</sup>). If this
+man, therefore, because Jesus cannot intervene in his
+behalf, is not sure “to inherit eternal life” (Mk 10<sup>17</sup>),
+those, on the other hand who, confessing him and his
+message, endure death are certain to save their life, <i>i. e.</i> to be
+found as members of the Kingdom at the resurrection of
+the dead (Mk 8<sup>37</sup>). Hence in the beginning of the
+sermon on the mount he pronounces them blessed who
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page138">[pg 138]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg138"></a>
+for
+his sake suffer reviling and persecution, because thereby,
+like the meek and the merciful, they are designated as
+members of the Kingdom (Mt 5<sup>11</sup> f.).</p>
+
+<p>From Jesus’ standpoint, this absolute solidarity
+between God and the Son of Man on the one hand, and
+himself on the other presented no enigma, for it was based
+upon his messianic selfconsciousness; he can speak thus
+because he is conscious of being himself the Son of Man.
+It was quite different for the people, and for the Disciples
+before the revelation at Cæsarea Philippi. How can Jesus
+of Nazareth, in a manner so sovereignly self-confident,
+proclaim his absolute solidarity with the Son of Man?
+This assertion forced the people to reflect upon his
+personality. Who was this whose manifestation mightily
+extended out of the pre-messianic and into the messianic
+æon itself, so that God and the Son of Man receive into
+the Kingdom such as had confessed him, if this confession
+did not lose its value by reason of the defect of moral
+worthiness, as he himself once expressly declared by way
+of warning? Such importance as Jesus claimed for
+himself belonged to only <i>one</i> personality,—Elijah, the mighty
+Forerunner,—for his manifestation stretched out of the
+present into the messianic
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page139">[pg 139]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg139"></a>
+æon and bound both together.
+Hence the people held that Jesus was Elijah. In this was
+expressed the highest estimate which Jesus’ personality
+could wring from the masses. In this case it is not a
+question of one of the customary misunderstandings so
+beloved of the secondary Gospel narrators, but the people
+<i>could not,</i> from Jesus’ appearance and proclamation, come
+to any other conclusion about him.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_3">3. Jesus Is Elijah through the Signs which Proceed
+from Him.</h3>
+
+<p>In order to render intelligible the attitude of Jesus’
+contemporaries towards himself and his work, we must
+rid ourselves of two false presuppositions with which we
+constantly though unconsciously operate. First, the
+expectation at that time was not fixed upon the Messiah but
+upon the Forerunner promised by prophecy. Secondly, no
+one in any way detected this Forerunner in the person of
+the Baptist. Both of our presuppositions run precisely to
+the contrary effect, and thereby we spoil our historical
+perspective.</p>
+
+<p>The appearing of the Messiah in conjunction with the
+great crisis which he brings about constitutes the
+supernatural drama which the world awaits. But before the curtain
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page140">[pg 140]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg140"></a>
+rises there must arise among the expectant sons
+of men the man who is to speak the prologue of the piece;
+who then, so soon as the curtain is lifted, associates
+himself with the celestial personages which conduct the action
+of the drama. Hence men are in expectancy first of all
+not for the rising of the curtain and the appearing of the
+Messiah but for the speaker of the prologue. <i>It was
+important to signalise the entrance of the Forerunner upon
+the stage in order to know to what hour the hand of the
+world clock pointed.</i></p>
+
+<p>Elijah, however, had not as yet appeared, for the
+Baptist had not legitimated himself as such. He lacked to this
+end the display of supernatural power. Signs and wonders,
+however, belonged necessarily to the epoch which
+immediately preceded the Kingdom. A general pouring out of
+the Spirit and prophesying, wonders in heaven and upon
+earth,—all that was to occur before the Day of God
+comes. So it was defined by the prophet Joel (3<sup>28</sup> [sic 2<sup>28</sup>] ff.).
+Peter in his sermon at Pentecost appealed to this passage
+(Acts 2<sup>17-22</sup>). One ought to recognise from the
+supernatural ecstatic “tongues” that one is approaching the
+end of the days. The crucified Jesus hath God raised up
+to be the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page141">[pg 141]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg141"></a>
+Messiah in the Resurrection, and the Kingdom
+will soon dawn.</p>
+
+<p>This passage in Joel was therefore applied to the time
+immediately preceding the messianic age, the time of
+miracles, in which according to the prophecy of Malachi
+the Forerunner should appear (Mal 4<sup>5-6</sup>).
+Moreover, the selfsame refrain unites these two fundamental
+passages of pre-messianic expectation: Mal 4<sup>5</sup> is the
+same as Joel 2<sup>31</sup>—“Before the coming of the great and
+terrible Day of the Lord.” <i>The Forerunner without
+miracles in an unmiraculous age was therefore unthinkable.</i></p>
+
+<p>For the contemporaries the characteristic difference
+between John and Jesus consisted precisely in the fact that
+the one simply pointed to the nearness of the Kingdom of
+God while the other confirmed his preaching by signs and
+wonders. Men had the consciousness of entering with
+Jesus upon the age of miracles. He was the Baptist,—but
+the Baptist, as it were, translated into the supernatural.
+After the mission of the Twelve, as his emergence and
+his signs became known abroad together with the news
+of the death of the Baptist, people said: The Baptist is
+raised from the dead. Hence the Disciples answered him
+at Cæsarea Philippi
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page142">[pg 142]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg142"></a>
+that men took him for Elijah or for
+the Baptist (Mk 8<sup>28</sup>). Herod as he heard of him would
+not give up the notion that he was the Baptist: “The
+Baptist is risen from the dead, and therefore do these
+powers work in him” (Mk 6<sup>14</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Also the significance which Jesus ascribed to the signs
+must have led his hearers to suppose that they were in the
+midst of the era of the Forerunner. Their significance
+consisted, namely, in the fact that they confirmed the
+nearness of the messianic Kingdom. The people ought to
+believe him for the sake of the signs and repent unto the
+Kingdom of God.</p>
+
+<p>The signs are an act of God’s grace through which he
+would make men aware what hour it is. Whosoever does
+not repent is damned. So it comes to pass with the
+inhabitants of Chorazin, Bethsaida, and Capernaum. But
+whosoever blasphemes against the Holy Ghost and ascribes
+the signs to the power of ungodliness has no forgiveness
+in eternity. The scribes from Jerusalem made themselves
+guilty in Galilee of this offence (Mk 3<sup>22</sup> ff.). Those,
+however, who did not harden themselves held that the
+Kingdom of God stands at the door and that Jesus is the
+Forerunner, because they had evidently entered
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page143">[pg 143]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg143"></a>
+the age of signs which the Scripture had prophesied.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_4">4. The Victory over Demons and the Secret
+of the Kingdom of God.</h3>
+
+<p>For Jesus the signs signified the nearness of the
+Kingdom in a sense still higher than the purely temporal,
+chronological nearness. By his victory over the demons
+he was conscious of <i>influencing the coming of it.</i> The
+secret of the Kingdom of God plays into this conception.
+The thought is contained in the parable with which he
+repels the false suspicions of the Jerusalem scribes
+(Mk 3<sup>23-30</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The meaning of this parable is, in fact, not exhausted
+by the thought that the argument that evil spirits do not undermine their
+own dominion by rising up one against another. In the
+concluding word we encounter unexpectedly the “now and
+then” which is characteristic of the secret of the Kingdom
+of God: “No one can enter into the house of the strong
+man and spoil his goods, except he <i>first</i> bind the strong
+man, and <i>then</i> he will spoil his house.” The casting out
+of demons, therefore, signified for Jesus the binding of
+the power of ungodliness and rendering it harmless. Hence
+this activity, like the moral renewal in the secret of the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page144">[pg 144]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg144"></a>
+Kingdom, stands in causal relation with the dawning of
+the Kingdom of God. Through his conquest of the demons
+Jesus is the man of violence who compels the approach
+of the Kingdom. For when the power of ungodliness is
+bound, then comes the moment when the dominion shall
+be taken from it. In order that this may happen it must
+first be rendered harmless. Hence in sending the Disciples
+upon their mission Jesus not only commands them to
+proclaim the nearness of the Kingdom, but he also gives them
+authority over the demons (Mt 10<sup>1</sup>). In that moment
+of highest eschatological expectation he sends them out as
+the men of violence who are to deal the last blow. The
+repentance which is to be accomplished by their preaching,
+and the overcoming of the power of ungodliness in the
+demoniacs, work together for the hastening of the
+Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the parables of the secret of the Kingdom
+(Mark 4), the parable in Jesus’ apology to the Pharisees
+(Mk 3<sup>23-30</sup>), and the parable in the eulogy of the Baptist
+(Mt 11<sup>12-15</sup>) all express the same thought. The two
+latter correspond even in the drastic image of violent
+action, whence the notion of “robbery” is common to them
+both (Mk 3<sup>27</sup> = Mt 11<sup>12</sup>).</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page145">[pg 145]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg145"></a></p>
+
+<p>For Jesus’ consciousness the healing of the demoniacs
+was therefore a part of the secret of the Kingdom of God.
+It sufficed for the people, however, to grasp the purely
+chronological connection.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_5">5. Jesus and the Baptist.</h3>
+
+<p>We have seen above that no one could recognise Elijah
+in the person of the Baptist because his ministry and
+preaching without miracle did not correspond with the
+Scriptural representation of the Forerunner’s time. None
+thought of ascribing to him this office and dignity except—for
+there was one exception—<i>Jesus!</i> He it was that
+first gave the people a mysterious hint that this man was
+the Forerunner: “If ye are willing to receive it, he
+himself is Elijah, the coming-one” (Mt 11<sup>14</sup>). He is aware,
+however, that with this he is giving utterance to an
+incomprehensible secret which to his hearers remains just
+as obscure as the word uttered in the same connection
+about the man of violence who since the days of the
+Baptist compel the Kingdom (Mt 11<sup>12</sup>). Hence he
+concludes both these sayings with the oracular phrase: He
+that hath ears to hear, let him hear (Mt 11<sup>15</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The people, however, were very far from
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page146">[pg 146]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg146"></a>
+comprehending that this Baptist who had fallen into the hands of
+Herod could be the prodigious personality who was to
+stand upon the threshold between the pre-messianic and the
+messianic age. So the mysterious word of Jesus died upon
+the air, and the people stuck to the opinion that John
+was really a prophet (Mk 11<sup>32</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The rulers also could reach no conclusion about the
+personality of the Baptist. For this reason they were
+worsted in their colloquy with Jesus when they would
+challenge him for his purifying of the Temple (Mk 11<sup>33</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The case was quite the same with the Disciples: they
+were incapable by themselves of recognising in John the
+expected Elijah. On the descent from the Mount of
+Transfiguration they were assailed by scruples about the
+messiahship of Jesus and about the possibility of the
+resurrection of the dead which Jesus had touched upon in
+his discourse. This assumed, indeed, that the messianic
+era was already present, and this could not yet have
+dawned, for “Elijah must first come, as the scribes
+demonstrate” (Mk 9<sup>9-11</sup>). Thereupon Jesus replied to
+them that John was this Elijah, even though he was
+delivered into the power of men (Mk 9<sup>12, 13</sup>).</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page147">[pg 147]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg147"></a></p>
+
+<p>How did Jesus arrive at the conviction that the Baptist
+was Elijah? It was through a necessary inference from his
+own messiahship. Because he knew himself to be the
+Messiah, the other must be Elijah. Between the two ideas
+there was a necessary correspondence. No one could know
+that the Baptist was Elijah except he derived this
+cognisance from the messiahship of Jesus. No one could
+arrive at the thought that John was Elijah without at
+the same time being obliged to see in Jesus the Messiah.
+For after the Forerunner there remained no place for a
+second manifestation of the kind. No one knew that Jesus
+took himself to be the Messiah. Therefore in the Baptist
+men perceived a prophet and raised the question whether
+Jesus were not Elijah. No one understood in their full
+bearing the mysterious concluding sentences of the eulogy
+over the Baptist. <i>Only for Jesus was John the promised
+Elijah.</i></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_6">6. The Baptist and Jesus.</h3>
+
+<p>What was the Baptist’s attitude to Jesus? If he had
+been conscious of being the Forerunner, he must have
+surmised that Jesus was the Messiah. One generally assumes
+this and supposes that he as the Forerunner
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page148">[pg 148]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg148"></a>
+put the question to Jesus whether he were the Messiah (Mt 11<sup>2-6</sup>).
+This supposition seems to us perfectly natural because
+we always represent to ourselves the two characters in
+the relation of Forerunner-Messiah.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection, however, we forget a perfectly
+obvious question. Did the Baptist feel himself to be Elijah,
+the Forerunner? In no utterance before the people did
+he raise such a claim. They stubbornly recognised in him
+only a prophet. Also during his imprisonment he can have
+claimed no such thing, for in Jerusalem the people still
+held to the same opinion, that he was a prophet.</p>
+
+<p>If somehow or another the presentiment had prevailed
+that he represented the character of Elijah, how then
+could men generally get the notion that John was a
+prophet, Jesus the Elijah? That this was the general view
+even after the death of the Baptist, is proved by the reply
+of the Disciples at Cæsarea Philippi.</p>
+
+<p>To view the Baptist’s query under the presumption that
+the Forerunner is asking whether Jesus be the Messiah is
+to put the question in a light which is completely
+unjustified; for whether John took himself to be the Forerunner
+is not in the least to be proven. Therefore it is also by
+no means
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page149">[pg 149]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg149"></a>
+made out that his question referred to the
+messianic dignity. The people standing by, as they did not
+take John to be the Forerunner, must have interpreted it
+in a very different way,—namely, in the sense: Art thou
+Elias?</p>
+
+<p>The fact is that the usual perspective hides a
+characteristic detail in this very section, the fact, namely, that
+Jesus applies again to the Baptist the same designation
+which the Baptist in his question had applied to him! Art
+thou the Coming One? asked the Baptist. Jesus replied:
+If ye are willing to receive it, <i>he himself</i> is Elijah, the
+Coming One! The designation of the “Coming One” is
+therefore common to both speeches, only that we
+arbitrarily refer it to the Messiah in the question of the
+Baptist. This proceeding, which appears so natural in the
+naïve perspective, will show itself to be unjustified so soon
+as one becomes aware that it is in fact only a question of
+perspective and not of any real standard. For then the
+phrase “He himself” in Jesus’ reply acquires suddenly an
+unsuspected significance: “<i>he himself</i> is Elijah,” the
+Coming One! This reference compels us to understand by the
+Coming One in the Baptist’s question, not the Messiah,
+but—as in Jesus’ reply—Elias.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page150">[pg 150]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg150"></a></p>
+
+<p>“Art thou the expected Forerunner?”—thus the
+Baptist through his disciples makes inquiry of Jesus. “If ye
+are able to receive it, he himself is this Forerunner,” said
+Jesus to the people after he had spoken to them about
+the greatness of the Baptist.</p>
+
+<p>By this reference the scene now receives a far more
+intense colouring. First of all, it becomes clear why Jesus
+speaks about the Baptist <i>after the departure of the
+messengers.</i> He feels himself obliged to lead the people up
+climactically from the conception that John is a prophet
+to the presentiment that he is the Forerunner, with whose
+appearing the hand of the world clock nears the fateful
+hour to which refers the word concerning “him who
+prepares the way,” and of whom the scribes say “that he
+must first come” (Mk 9<sup>11</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>John, in fact, with his question was backward in his
+reckoning of the Messianic time. His messengers seek
+information about the Forerunner at the moment when
+Jesus’ confidence that the Kingdom is immediately to dawn
+was at the highest pitch. He had just sent out his Disciples
+and given them to expect that the appearing of the Son
+of Man might surprise them on their way through the
+cities of Israel. The hour is already far more
+advanced—that is what Jesus would
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page151">[pg 151]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg151"></a>
+give the people to understand
+in his “eulogy over the Baptist,” if they can receive it.</p>
+
+<p>John reached this surmise about Jesus in the same way
+as did the people. That is to say, as he heard <i>of the signs
+and deeds of Jesus</i> (Mt 11<sup>2</sup>), there occurred to him the
+thought that this might be something more than a prophet
+with a call to repentance. So he sends messengers to him
+in order to have assurance upon this point.</p>
+
+<p>Herewith, however, the proclamation of the Baptist
+is put in an entirely different light. He never pointed to
+the coming Messiah, <i>but to the expected Forerunner.</i> So
+is to be explained the proclamation about “him that is
+to come after him” (Mk 1<sup>7, 8</sup>). As applied to the
+Messiah, the expressions he uses remain obscure. They denote,
+that is, only a difference of degree, not a total difference in
+kind, between himself and the person whom he announces.
+If he were speaking of the Messiah, it would have been
+impossible for him to employ these expressions, in which,
+in spite of the mighty difference in rank, he still compares
+the Coming One to himself. He thinks of the Forerunner
+as like himself, baptising and preaching repentance unto
+the Kingdom, only that he is incomparably greater and
+mightier. Instead of baptising
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page152">[pg 152]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg152"></a>
+with water, he will baptise
+with the Holy Ghost (Mk 1<sup>8</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>This cannot apply to the Messiah. Since when does the
+Messiah baptise? Then, too, the famous pouring out of
+the Spirit does not occur within but <i>before</i> the messianic
+era! Before the coming of the great Day of the Lord
+he will pour out his Spirit upon all flesh, and signs and
+wonders shall be showed in heaven and on earth (Joel 2<sup>28</sup> ff[.]).
+Before the coming of the great Day of the Lord
+he will send Elijah the Prophet (Mal 4<sup>5</sup>). The Baptist
+combines these two chief indications of the character of
+the great events that are to precede the Last Time, and
+he arrives at the conception of the Forerunner who is to
+baptise with the Holy Ghost! One sees from this what a
+supernatural light surrounded the figure of the Forerunner
+in the current conception. Hence it is that John felt
+himself so little before him.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus was put by this question in a difficult position.
+The Baptist in asking him, Art thou the Forerunner? or
+art thou not? had proposed a false alternative to which
+Jesus could answer neither yes nor no. He was not willing
+to entrust the secret of his messiahship to the messengers.
+He therefore replied with a hint of the nearness of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page153">[pg 153]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg153"></a>
+the Kingdom which was revealed in his deeds. At the
+same time he thrust his own personality mightily into the
+foreground. He alone can be blessed who stands by him
+and who finds no occasion of stumbling in him. With this
+he would say the same as he said once also to the people:
+membership in the Kingdom is dependent upon one’s
+attachment to him (Mk 8<sup>38</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Jesus’ remarkable evasive answer to the Baptist, in
+which exegesis has always believed that it must discover a
+special finesse, is explained therefore simply by the
+necessity of the situation. Jesus could not answer directly.
+Hence he gave this obscure response. The Baptist was to
+gather from it what he would and could. Besides, it was
+of no importance how he understood it. Events would
+soon teach him, for the time is already much further
+advanced than he supposes, and the hammer is already lifted
+to strike the hour.</p>
+
+<p>It is exceedingly difficult for us to get rid of the notion
+that the Baptist and Jesus stood to one another in the
+relation of Forerunner and Messiah. It is only through
+intense reflection that we can reach the perception that
+the two characters stand in this relation in our perspective only
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page154">[pg 154]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg154"></a>
+because we assume the messiahship of Jesus; but that
+in order to discover the historical relationship we must
+calculate and apply the right perspective.</p>
+
+<p>So long as one is still prejudiced in any way by the
+old perspective, one cannot do justice to the foregoing
+investigation. That is, one will still have the notion that
+it is a question of “the forerunner of the Forerunner” and
+the Forerunner—an ingenious multiplication of the
+Forerunner by himself. That is falsely expressed. A prophet
+of repentance, John the Baptist, directs men’s attention
+to the prediction of the mighty figure of Elijah the
+Forerunner, and as he hears in prison of the signs of Jesus
+he wonders if this may not be Elijah—and does not dream
+that this man holds himself to be the Messiah, and that
+for this reason he himself will henceforth be designated
+in history as the Forerunner. That is the historical
+situation.</p>
+
+<p>The moment the conception of history was defined by
+the conviction that Jesus was the Messiah the historical
+perspective was necessarily shifted. The Gospels display
+this shifting in increasing measure. In the introductory
+verses of Mark the quotation from Malachi about the
+Forerunner who is to prepare the way (Mal 3<sup>1</sup>) is
+already applied to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page155">[pg 155]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg155"></a>
+John. According to Matthew, the Baptist
+hears in prison of “the works of the Messiah” (Mt 11<sup>2</sup>).
+If here it is only a question of the casual and
+unreflecting introduction of a new mode of conception, the
+Fourth Gospel, on the other hand, has made a principle
+of it and consistently represents the history in line with
+the presumption that because Jesus was the Messiah the
+Baptist was the Forerunner and must have felt himself
+to be such. The historical Baptist says: I am not the
+<i>Forerunner,</i> for he is incomparably greater and mightier than
+I. According to the Fourth Gospel the people could
+conjecture that he was the Christ. He was obliged to say,
+therefore: I am not the <i>Christ</i> (Jn 1<sup>20</sup>)!</p>
+
+<p>Thus has the relation been altered under the influence
+of the new perspective. The person of the Baptist has
+become historically unrecognisable. Finally they have
+made out of him the modern doubter, who half believed
+in Jesus’ messiahship, and half disbelieved. In this
+apprehensive indecision, this backing and filling, is supposed to
+lie, in fact, the tragedy of his existence! Now, however,
+one may confidently strike him from the list of those
+characters, so interesting to us moderns, who come to ruin
+through a tragic
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page156">[pg 156]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg156"></a>
+half-faith. Jesus spared him that. For
+so long as he lived he required of no man faith in him
+as the Messiah—and yet that is what he was!</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_6_7">7. The Blind Man at Jericho and the Ovation
+at the Entrance to Jerusalem.</h3>
+
+<p>Was the entrance into Jerusalem a messianic ovation?
+That depends, in the first place, upon how one interprets
+the cry of the people; but then also, upon one’s notion of
+the encounter between Jesus and the blind man. If it was
+actually a question there of his being greeted as the Son
+of David,—a greeting which he no longer repudiates, but
+tacitly admits, so that the people learn to apprehend what
+he takes himself to be,—the consequence is inevitable that
+it was a messianic ovation.</p>
+
+<p>For the exact understanding of the description of
+Jesus’ entrance into Jerusalem, the differences in detail
+between Mark and the parallels are of far reaching
+importance. In Mark we have two clearly distinguishable
+acclamations. The first is directed to the person of Jesus
+in their midst: “Hosanna! Blessed be ‘the Coming One’
+in the name of the Lord” (Mk 11<sup>9</sup>). The second refers
+to the expected coming of the Kingdom:
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page157">[pg 157]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg157"></a>
+“Blessed be the
+coming Kingdom of our father David. Hosanna in the
+highest!” The Son of David is thus not mentioned at all!</p>
+
+<p>It is different in Matthew. There the people shout
+“Hosanna to the Son of David! Blessed be the Coming
+One in the name of the Lord. Hosanna in the highest!”
+(Mt 21<sup>9</sup>). We have here therefore only the cry which
+was directed to the person of Jesus; the Kingdom is not
+mentioned; men acclaim instead the Son of David and,
+at the same time, the Coming One.</p>
+
+<p>Luke’s version does not come into account, for he deals
+with reminiscences from the history of the infancy
+“Blessed be the king that cometh in the name of the Lord.
+Peace in heaven and glory in the highest” (Lk 19<sup>38</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Thus Matthew in his account interprets the Coming
+One as the Son of David. We possess no direct proof that
+this expression (the Coming One), which is derived from
+Psalm 118<sup>25</sup> ff[.], was employed in Jesus’ time for the
+Messiah. It has been shown, however, that <i>the Baptist as
+well as Jesus applied it rather to the Forerunner Elijah.</i>
+It is therefore unhistorical when Matthew represents the
+people as acclaiming in the same
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page158">[pg 158]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg158"></a>
+breath both the Coming
+One and the Son of David.</p>
+
+<p>Mark has here, too, preserved in his detail the original
+situation. The people acclaimed Jesus as the “Coming
+One,” i. e. as the Forerunner, and sings an “Hosanna in
+the highest” to the Kingdom which is soon to descend
+upon earth. A fine distinction is made in the use of
+<i>Hosanna</i> and <i>Hosanna in the highest</i> (“places” is to be
+supplied). The former applies to the Forerunner present in
+their midst; the latter, to the heavenly Kingdom. The
+secondary character of the account in Matthew is evident
+in the fact that it applies to the Son of David and to the
+Coming One not only an Hosanna but likewise an
+Hosanna in the highest,—whereby the Messiah is first
+assumed to be on earth and then, still in heaven! Here it
+becomes plain that the second Hosanna belonged
+originally with the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p><i>The entrance into Jerusalem, therefore, was an
+ovation not to the Messiah but to the Forerunner.</i> But then
+it is impossible that the people understood the scene with
+the blind man as indicating that Jesus welcomed the
+address “Son of David.”</p>
+
+<p>Here again it is a question of Synoptical detail by
+which the scene is totally changed.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page159">[pg 159]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg159"></a>
+The shout in the name
+of the Son of David is incidental. The question is only
+whether the public could and must conceive it as a form
+of address. This conception is evidently that of Matthew
+and Luke, <i>but by Mark it is excluded.</i></p>
+
+<p>According to the Matthean account, two blind men
+sit by the wayside and cry, Have mercy upon us, Son of
+David (Mt 20<sup>30</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>In Luke the cry runs: Jesus, thou Son of David, have
+mercy upon me (Lk 18<sup>38</sup>). Thereupon Jesus comes to
+a stand before him, converses with him, and heals him.</p>
+
+<p>According to Mark, the blind beggar, son of Timæus,
+is sitting behind the multitude at the edge of the road.
+<i>Jesus does not see him, cannot address him, but hears only
+a voice, which reaches him as from the ground out of the
+midst of the stir,</i> of one calling upon the Son of David
+for help. Jesus comes to a stand and sends <i>to have him
+fetched!</i> They follow the voice and find the man sitting
+upon the ground. Rise, he calleth thee! they say to him.
+He throws away his garment, springs up, and presses
+through the crowd to Jesus. As Jesus sees the man
+approaching him thus he can have no idea that he is blind!
+He has to ask him, therefore, what he wants. The
+distance, the heat,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page160">[pg 160]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg160"></a>
+the sending to fetch him, the nimble
+approach,—all this Matthew has dropped. He has simplified
+the situation: Jesus encounters the two blind men on the
+road and at once addresses them. Only he has retained
+from the original situation the question, “what is
+wanted?”—which in Mark is actually necessary, but in Matthew
+remains unaccountable, for there Jesus must see that he has
+to do with two blind men!</p>
+
+<p>But if there lay such a distance between Jesus and the
+blind man, no one could have an idea that he took the
+monotonous cry about the Son of David as an address to
+himself! It was just simply an annoying cry, which the
+bystanders sought in vain to silence. The people attached
+as little importance to it as to the cries of the
+demons—if in fact they understood it at all.</p>
+
+<p>The <i>address</i> of the beggar was of an entirely different
+tenor and shows that he no more took Jesus for the
+Messiah than did the people: “Rabbi, that I may receive my
+sight.” For him, therefore, Jesus was the rabbi from
+Nazareth.</p>
+
+<p>If one keep this situation in view, it will be seen that
+the bystanders could in no way get the idea that Jesus
+here welcomes a messianic
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page161">[pg 161]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg161"></a>
+acclaim. This, however, was
+the first sign which he again performed after coming out
+of his retirement. Thereby he legitimated himself before
+the Paschal caravan as the Forerunner, for which his
+adherents in Galilee took him before he suddenly withdrew
+into solitude in the north. Now the demonstration is let
+loose, and they prepare for him as the Forerunner the
+ovation at the entrance into Jerusalem.</p>
+
+<p>In demonstrating the proper character of this
+occurrence one has to deal with apparently insignificant detail
+to which not everyone may be inclined to ascribe due
+importance. In view of this the following points are to be
+kept in mind:</p>
+
+<p>1. In the representation which assumes the messiahship
+of Jesus there must come about as of itself a shifting of
+detail which has the effect of describing a messianic
+entrance. This is the case with Matthew. There is no
+evidence of a deliberate purpose on the part of the writer.</p>
+
+<p>2. Mark’s delineation shows such originality in
+comparison with the parallels (one has but to think of the
+story of the Baptism and the report of the Last Supper)
+that one cannot easily lay too great weight upon the peculiarity
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page162">[pg 162]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg162"></a>
+of his account,—especially when it results in so
+clear and consistent a picture as is here the case.</p>
+
+<p>3. Nothing is accomplished by the assertion that proof
+has not been brought that it was assuredly a question of
+an ovation to the Forerunner. For then it remains to
+demonstrate how it was, that, on the presumption that
+it was actually an ovation to the Messiah, the transactions
+in the Jerusalem days make no allusion at all to the
+presumed messianic pretension and the venal accusers do not
+appeal to any such claims. What must the Roman
+procurator have done if a man had marched into the city
+hailed by the populace as the Son of David?</p>
+
+<p>4. The true historical apprehension is peculiarly
+difficult for us here because of our notion that the signs and
+wonders were regarded by the contemporaries as a
+confirmation of the messiahship of Jesus. In that opinion we
+share the standpoint upon which the Johannine
+representation is based. According to the conception of Jesus’
+contemporaries, however, the Messiah needs no signs, but
+rather he will be at once manifest in his power! The signs
+belong on the contrary to the period of the Forerunner!</p>
+
+<p>5. Our translation also has a prejudicial
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page163">[pg 163]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg163"></a>
+effect. The word <i>ἐρχόμενοζ</i> denotes in all passages a personality
+sharply defined for that time. Hence one must in every
+case translate it in accord with this perception,—not one
+time as a substantive [cf. the German Bible] and again
+(in the story of the ovation) as a verb-form, just as
+happens to be most convenient. “The Coming One” is the
+Forerunner, because before the messianic judgment he is
+to come in the name of God to put everything in order.</p>
+
+<p>We arrive therefore at the conclusion: <i>Until the
+confession before the council Jesus was publicly regarded as
+the Forerunner, as he had been already in Galilee.</i></p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page164">[pg 164]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg164"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_7">CHAPTER VII</h2>
+
+<h4>AFTER THE MISSION OF THE TWELVE. LITERARY
+AND HISTORICAL PROBLEMS</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_7_1">1. The Voyage on the Lake after the Return
+of the Twelve.</h3>
+
+<p>It is exceedingly difficult to gather from the Synoptic
+accounts a clear picture of the events which happened
+after the mission of the Twelve. When did the Disciples
+return? Where did Jesus betake himself during their
+absence? What sort of success did the Disciples have?
+What events happened between their return and the
+departure for the north? Were these events of a sort to
+account for Jesus’ determination to withdraw with them
+into solitude?</p>
+
+<p>The accounts supply no answer to these questions.
+Moreover they confront us with another, a purely literary
+problem. The connection between the several scenes is
+here extraordinarily broken. It seems almost as if the
+thread of the narration were here completely lost. Only
+at the moment of departure for the journey to Jerusalem
+do the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page165">[pg 165]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg165"></a>
+scenes begin to stand again in a clear and natural
+relationship.</p>
+
+<p>First of all we have to do with two obvious doublettes:
+the feeding of the multitude and the subsequent journey
+on the lake (Mk 6<sup>31, 56</sup> = Mk 8<sup>1, 21</sup>). In both
+instances Jesus is overtaken by the multitude as he lands
+on a lonely shore after a journey across the lake. Then
+he returns again to the Galilean village on the west shore.
+Here in his accustomed field of activity he encounters the
+Pharisaic emissaries from Jerusalem. They call him to
+account. In the series which contains the first account of
+the feeding of the multitude the question at issue is about
+hand-washing (Mk 7<sup>1-23</sup>), in the second case it is the
+requirement of a sign (Mk 8<sup>11-13</sup>). The first series
+concludes with the departure for the north, where in the
+neighbourhood of Tyre and Sidon he meets the
+Canaanitish woman (Mk 7<sup>24-30</sup>). In the second series the
+journey to Cæsarea Philippi (Mk 8<sup>27</sup>) follows upon
+his encounter with the Pharisees.</p>
+
+<p>We have here therefore two independent accounts of
+the same epoch in Jesus’s life. In their plan they match
+one another perfectly, differing only in the choice of the
+events to be related. These two narrative series are as
+it were predestinated to be
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page166">[pg 166]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg166"></a>
+united instead of being placed
+side by side. It happens that each of the northern journeys,
+according to the narrative, begins and ends with a sojourn
+in Galilee. Mk 7<sup>31</sup>: After leaving the region of Tyre
+he came through Sidon to the Sea of Galilee. Mk 9<sup>30, 33</sup>:
+And they went forth from thence (i. e. from Cæsarea
+Philippi) and wandered through Galilee and came to
+Capernaum. At the end of one narrative series one finds
+oneself again at the beginning of the other. Hence if one
+connect the one return from the north with the beginning
+of the other narrative series, one has, superficially viewed,
+a perfectly natural continuation,—only that Jesus must
+now, incomprehensibly enough, start back immediately
+for the north, instead of the return to Galilee being a stage
+on the journey to Jerusalem! This is the order that was
+finally followed, but it is only in the second return that
+the narrative finds a point of attachment for the journey
+to Jerusalem.</p>
+
+<p>This return movement in both series accounts for the
+fact that the two narratives, though they are really
+parallel cycles, are yet attached to one another in
+chronological sequence. The present text has completed the
+process of harmonising them. It is not simply that the story
+of the second feeding of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page167">[pg 167]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg167"></a>
+the multitude makes reference
+to the first in the word “again” (Mk 8<sup>1</sup>): the
+reconciliation is in fact carried so far that Jesus in one word
+addressed to the Disciples assumes both miracles
+(Mk 8<sup>19-21</sup>)! How far this process was already
+accomplished in the oral tradition, and how much is to be charged
+to the account of the final literary composition, is a
+question which we are no longer in a position to answer.</p>
+
+<p>Only the first cycle is complete. Jesus and his Disciples
+travel by boat north-east along the coast and return then
+again to the country of Genezareth (Mk 6<sup>32, 45, 53</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The second cycle is incomplete and fallen somewhat
+into disorder. Jesus is back on the west coast after his
+voyage. Mk 8<sup>10</sup> ff. corresponds with Mk 6<sup>53</sup> ff. and
+Mk 7<sup>1</sup> ff. Dalmanutha lies on the west coast. But instead of
+his departing now directly for the north, there comes
+first another voyage to the east coast (Mk 8<sup>13</sup>). It is not till
+they reach Bethsaida that he starts with his Disciples
+northward (Mk 8<sup>27</sup>). The first cycle on the other
+hand relates <i>this voyage to Bethsaida as an episode of the
+famous coasting voyage and places it immediately after
+the feeding of the multitude</i> (Mk 6<sup>45</sup> ff[.]). And as a
+matter of fact the second narrative series also shows
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page168">[pg 168]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg168"></a>
+that this was the original connection. For here, too, as in the
+first series, the conversation upon landing deals with the
+foregoing miracle. Mk 6<sup>52</sup>: “For they understood not
+concerning the loaves, but their heart was hardened.”
+Mk 8<sup>19-21</sup>: “When I brake the five loaves—when the
+seven—do ye not yet understand?” It is therefore
+impossible that between this voyage and the feeding of the
+multitude all the events were crowded which were enacted
+upon the west shore. The minds of all are still full of
+the great event. The new sea journey of the second cycle
+is nothing else but the original continuation of the voyage
+to Bethsaida from the scene of the feeding of the
+multitude.</p>
+
+<p>Therewith the parallelism of the two series is proven.
+The events follow one another in this order: coasting
+voyage from the west shore, feeding of the multitude,
+continuation of the voyage to the north-east, “walking upon
+the sea” and conversation in the boat, arrival at Bethsaida,
+return to the region of Genezareth, discussion with the
+Pharisees, departure with the Disciples to the north.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_7_2">2. The Supper by the Seashore.</h3>
+
+<p>The Disciples’ proclamation of the immediate
+approach of the Kingdom must have
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page169">[pg 169]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg169"></a>
+had a great success. A
+mighty multitude of such as believed the message crowded
+around Jesus. He had about him a community inspired
+by the most lively eschatological expectation. They would
+not let go of him. In order to be alone with his Disciples
+he embarks in a boat. He meant to withdraw to the
+north-east shore. But the people, when they learned that he
+would take himself away, streamed together from all
+sides and followed him along the beach. Mk 6<sup>32, 33</sup>:
+“For there were many coming and going, and they had
+no leisure so much as to eat. And they went away in a
+boat to a desert place apart. And the people saw them
+going, and many knew them, and they ran there together
+on foot from all the cities and outwent them.”</p>
+
+<p>They meet him in a lonely region and immediately
+surround him. The hour comes for the daily meal. In the
+accounts of the following miracle the meal which they
+celebrated is preserved to us. <i>The occasion was a solemn
+cultus-meal!</i> After the loaves which he had broken were
+consecrated by a prayer of thanksgiving Jesus has them
+distributed to the multitude by his Disciples. Except for
+the addition of the two parables [“My body—my blood”]
+we have absolutely the same solemn ceremony at the Last Supper.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page170">[pg 170]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg170"></a>
+There he personally distributed the food to his
+table-companions. The description of the distribution of
+the bread in the two cases corresponds perfectly.
+Mk 6<sup>41</sup>: He took the loaves, and looking up to heaven, he
+blessed them, and he gave to the Disciples to set before
+them. Mk 14<sup>22</sup>: He took a loaf, and when he had
+blessed, he brake it, and gave to them.</p>
+
+<p>Hence the <i>solemn act of distribution</i> constitutes the
+essence, as well of that meal by the seashore, as of the
+last meal with his Disciples. The “Lord’s Supper” is a
+name appropriate to both, for that meal by the sea also
+took place at the evening hour. Mk 6<sup>35</sup>: And when the
+day was now far spent his Disciples came to him, etc.
+Here the table-company is composed of the great
+multitude of believers in the Kingdom: at the Last Supper it
+was limited to the circle of the Disciples. <i>The celebration,
+however, was the same.</i></p>
+
+<p>The story of this event has been distorted into a
+miracle: the cultus-meal which Jesus improvised by the
+seashore has been represented as a hearty and filling supper.
+That the scanty provision which was at hand, the food
+designed for himself and his Disciples, was solemnly
+distributed to the people is historic.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page171">[pg 171]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg171"></a>
+That this meal took the
+place of the evening repast likewise corresponds with the
+fact. But that through a supernatural process the
+multitude was <i>filled</i> by it,—that belongs to the miraculous
+character which the later age ascribed to the celebration
+because its significance could not be apprehended.</p>
+
+<p>The historical procedure is the following: The
+Disciples ask Jesus to send the people away that they may be
+fed. For him, however, it is not an appropriate moment
+to think of an earthly meal and so to disperse, for the
+hour is near when they shall all be gathered about him
+at the messianic banquet. Hence he would not have them
+go yet, but before he dismisses them he commands them
+to recline as at table. In place of the full meal he
+introduces a ceremonial meal, in which the satisfaction of
+earthly appetite has no part, so that the food intended
+for himself and his Disciples sufficed for all.</p>
+
+<p>Neither the Disciples nor the multitude understand
+what goes on. As Jesus afterwards in the boat directs the
+conversation to the significance of the meal—this alone
+can be the historical meaning of the obscure intimations
+of Mk 6<sup>52</sup> and Mk 8<sup>14-21</sup>, it appears that the
+Disciples have understood nothing.</p>
+
+<p>He celebrated, therefore, a sacred cultus-meal
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page172">[pg 172]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg172"></a>
+the meaning of which was clear to him alone. He did not
+count it necessary to explain to them the meaning of the
+ceremony. The memory, however, of that mysterious
+supper on the lonely seashore lived on vividly in the tradition
+and grew to the account of the miraculous feeding.
+Wherein did the solemnity of this distribution consist for
+Jesus? The gathering at the feast is of an eschatological
+character. The people that gathered about him by the
+seaside were awaiting with him the dawn of the Kingdom.
+In replacing now the customary full meal with a sacred
+ceremonial meal, at which he distributed food with
+thanksgiving to God, he acted at the prompting of his messianic
+consciousness. <i>As one who knew himself to be the Messiah,
+and would be manifested to them as such at the imminent
+dawn of the Kingdom, he distributes, to those whom he
+expects soon to join him at the messianic banquet, sacred
+food, as though he would give them therewith an earnest
+of their participation in that future solemnity.</i> The time
+for earthly meals is passed: hence he celebrates with them
+a foretaste of the messianic banquet. They, however,
+understood it not, for they could not guess that he who
+distributed to them such consecrated eucharistic
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page173">[pg 173]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg173"></a>
+food was conscious of being the Messiah and acted as such.</p>
+
+<p>In this connection there falls a light upon the nature
+of the Last Supper at Jerusalem. There the Disciples
+represented the community of believers in the Kingdom.
+In the course of that last meal Jesus distributed to them
+with a word of thanksgiving food and drink. But now
+they know what he assumes to be: he had disclosed to
+them the secret of his messiahship. From this they are
+able to divine in his distribution the reference to the
+messianic banquet. He himself gave this significance to
+his action in the fact that he concluded the ceremony with
+a hint of their proximate reunion when he should drink
+the wine new with them in his Father’s Kingdom!</p>
+
+<p>The supper by the seaside and the supper at Jerusalem
+therefore correspond completely, except that in the latter
+Jesus signified to his Disciples the nature of the ceremony
+and at the same time expresses the thought of the Passion
+in the two parables [“My body— my blood”]. The
+cultus-meal was the same: a foretaste of the messianic banquet
+in the circle of the fellowship of the believers in the
+Kingdom. <i>Now for the first time one is able to understand
+how the nature
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page174">[pg 174]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg174"></a>
+of the Last Supper can be independent of
+the two parables.</i></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_7_3">3. The Week at Bethsaida.</h3>
+
+<p>During the ceremony Jesus was deeply moved. For
+this reason he urged immediate departure and dismissed
+the people. He himself withdrew to a mountain in order
+to be alone in prayer. On the beach at Bethsaida, whither
+he had charged them to row, he again met his Disciples.
+They, battling with wind and wave, had the illusion that a
+supernatural apparition approached them as they descried
+his figure on the beach. They still were so much under the
+influence of the impression lately made upon them by the
+mighty personality who with mysterious majesty had
+distributed to the multitude sacred food and then had
+suddenly broken off the ceremony (Mk 6<sup>45-52</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Whither had he sent away the multitude? What did
+they do at Bethsaida? How long did they stay there? Our
+text merely recounts that they returned again to
+Genezareth.</p>
+
+<p>At this point, however, we encounter a difficult literary
+problem, in the Synoptical narrative of the period
+immediately preceding the departure for Jerusalem
+(Mk 9<sup>30</sup>).
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page175">[pg 175]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg175"></a>
+According to Mk 8<sup>27-33</sup>, Jesus is now alone
+with his Disciples far away in the north, in heathen
+territory,—from which point also he sets out on the rapid
+march through Galilee to Jerusalem (Mk 9<sup>30</sup> ff.): “And
+they went forth from thence and passed through Galilee,
+and he would not that any man should know it.” Between
+the disclosure of his messiahship and this departure there
+intervenes only one scene (Mk 8<sup>34</sup>- 9<sup>29</sup>), where he
+appears surrounded by a great multitude of people. In
+company with the three intimate Disciples he leaves the
+multitude, only to return to them shortly again. It is
+nowhere recounted how this multitude suddenly gets to him
+in heathen territory. And just as little are we informed
+how it leaves him again, so that (according to
+Mk 9<sup>30</sup> ff.) he can march through Galilee alone with his
+Disciples and unrecognised.</p>
+
+<p>But it is not only the multitude that appears
+unexpectedly: the whole scenery also is altered. One finds
+oneself in a familiar region, for Jesus enters with his
+Disciples “into the house,” while the people stay without
+(Mk 9<sup>28</sup>)!</p>
+
+<p>The literary context in which the section stands is
+absolutely impossible, for this cannot have been enacted in
+<i>heathen territory,</i>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page176">[pg 176]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg176"></a>
+but only in <i>Galilee!</i> But as Jesus
+subsequently had only a fleeting contact with Galilee, passing
+through it incognito, this piece belongs in the Galilean
+period <i>before the departure for the north, and more
+precisely, at the time of the return of the Disciples,</i> for it is
+then that he was constantly surrounded by a throng of
+people and was seeking to be in solitude with his Disciples!</p>
+
+<p>The situation, however may confidently be defined with
+still greater exactness. Jesus dwelt in a village (Mk 9<sup>28</sup>)
+in the neighbourhood of which there was a mountain to
+which he betook himself with the three Disciples (Mk 9<sup>2</sup>).
+All this agrees, however, most certainly with the
+sojourn in <i>Bethsaida.</i> The mountain which he seeks with
+the Three is <i>the mountain on the north shore of the lake
+where he prayed in the night when he came to Bethsaida!</i></p>
+
+<p>The passage Mk 8<sup>34</sup>- 9<sup>29</sup> belongs therefore in the
+days at Bethsaida! It is no longer possible to make out
+by what process it came into the present impossible
+context. The adoption of the present order may have been
+prompted in part by the consideration that the impressive
+word about the obligation of following Jesus in suffering
+(Mk 8<sup>34</sup>- 9<sup>1</sup>) seemed to form a most natural
+conclusion to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page177">[pg 177]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg177"></a>
+the prediction of the Passion at Cæsarea Philippi
+(Mk 8<sup>31-33</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Moreover the transformation of the account of Jesus
+meeting his Disciples at their landing into a miracle made
+it difficult to effect a natural connection with the events
+which occurred the following morning. And yet Mk 8<sup>34</sup> ff.
+may fairly be said to imply such measures as were
+adopted the evening before (Mk 6<sup>45-47</sup>). Jesus had
+dismissed the people, had himself retired to solitude, and
+while it was yet night had overtaken his Disciples at
+Bethsaida, where they found lodging in a house (Mk 9<sup>28</sup>).
+The next day he calls the people about him with the
+Disciples (Mk 8<sup>34</sup>) and speaks to them about the
+requirement of self-denial on the part of his followers, readiness
+to endure shame, scorn, ridicule, rather than prove untrue
+to him. This conduct is justified by the nearness of the
+coming of the Son of Man, who will perform judgment
+in the person of Jesus.</p>
+
+<p>This admonition concludes with a word about “the
+coming of the Kingdom of God with power,” i. e. the
+eschatological realisation of it. In its present form it is
+toned down: some of them that stand by shall not taste
+of death till that moment arrive. As the conclusion of this
+address, however, it
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page178">[pg 178]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg178"></a>
+must have run: Ye who stand here
+shall soon experience the great moment of the mighty
+dawn of the Kingdom of God! Thus this earnest address
+at Bethsaida reflects the expectations which stirred Jesus
+and the throng about him.</p>
+
+<p>Six days after that address at Bethsaida Jesus took
+with him the Three and led them to the mountain where
+he had prayed in solitude at evening after the great cultus-meal
+in common. At their return they find the other
+Disciples surrounded by the people. In spite of the authority
+over demons of which they had made proof during their
+progress through the cities of Israel, they were now not
+able to master a demoniac boy who was brought to them.
+Jesus takes the father and boy apart. The very moment
+that the people come running together (Mk 9<sup>25-27</sup>)
+the crisis begins, after which Jesus takes by the hand the
+lad, who was lying as dead, and raises him up.</p>
+
+<p>This passage, therefore, which has been wrested so
+strangely out of its connection, contains a striking account
+of the first and last days of the week which Jesus passed
+in Bethsaida between the return of the Disciples and the
+departure for the north.</p>
+
+<p>It will now be perfectly clear how unhistoric
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page179">[pg 179]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg179"></a>
+is the view that Jesus left Galilee in consequence of growing
+opposition and spreading defection. On the contrary, this is the
+period of his highest triumph. A multitude of people with
+faith in the Kingdom thronged him and pursued him
+everywhere. Hardly has he landed upon the west coast but they
+are already there. Their number has grown still greater
+and increases more and more (Mk 6<sup>53-56</sup>). That they
+deserted him, that they even showed the least motion of
+doubt or defection, the texts give no intimation. <i>It was
+not the people that deserted Jesus but Jesus that deserted
+the people.</i></p>
+
+<p>This he did, not out of any fear of the emissaries from
+Jerusalem, but only as carrying out what he already had
+in mind since the return of the Disciples. He wishes to be
+alone. The people had defeated this aim by following him
+along the shore as he sailed. When he had returned to
+the west coast he found himself again surrounded. Because
+he felt it absolutely necessary to be alone with the
+Disciples, and because he was not able to effect this purpose
+in Galilee, for this cause he suddenly vanished and betook
+himself into heathen territory. <i>The journey into the north
+country is not a flight, rather it has the same motive as
+the voyage on the lake.</i></p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page180">[pg 180]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg180"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_8">CHAPTER VIII</h2>
+
+<h4>THE SECRET OF MESSIAHSHIP</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_8_1">1. From the Mount of Transfiguration
+to Cæsarea Philippi</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">COMING after Cæsarea Philippi the Transfiguration is
+an obscure episode devoid of historical significance. The
+Three learn no more about Jesus than Peter had already
+confessed in the presence of the Twelve and Jesus himself
+had confirmed. Thus the whole section is plainly an
+intrusion: the apotheosis and obscure dialogue have no
+historical significance.</p>
+
+<p>If, however, as has been proved above by literary
+evidence, this scene was enacted some weeks after the mission
+of the Twelve and <i>before</i> Cæsarea Philippi—not upon the
+mountain of the legend, but on the mountain in the lonely
+region by the seashore near Bethsaida,—then we behold
+an idle addendum transformed at one stroke into a
+Galilean occurrence of far reaching historical importance,
+which explains the scene at Cæsarea Philippi, and not vice
+versa. What we call
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page181">[pg 181]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg181"></a>
+the Transfiguration is in reality
+nothing else but the revelation of the secret of
+messiahship to the Three. A few weeks later comes then its
+disclosure to the Twelve.</p>
+
+<p>This revelation to the Three is handed down to us in
+the form of a miracle-tale. It has undergone the same
+transformation as have all the incidents of that voyage
+along the north coast. The scene on the mountain, like the
+feeding of the multitude and the encounter of Jesus with
+his disciples at dusk, bears evident marks of the intense
+eschatological excitement of the moment. For this reason
+the historical facts are no longer clear in detail. There
+appear unto them Moses and Elijah, the two characters
+most prominently associated with the expectation of the
+last times. To what extent may ecstatic conditions, and
+perhaps glossolalia, have contributed to this experience?
+The present form of the story permits us to infer
+something of the sort (Mk 9<sup>2-6</sup>). Does the voice out of the
+cloud (Mk 9<sup>7</sup>, “This is my beloved Son, hear ye him”)
+repeat in some sort Jesus’ experience at his baptism?</p>
+
+<p>There is in fact an inward connection between the
+Baptism and the Transfiguration. In both cases a condition
+of ecstasy accompanies the revelation of the secret of Jesus’
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page182">[pg 182]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg182"></a>
+person. The first time the revelation was for him
+alone; here the Disciples also share it. It is not clear to
+what extent they themselves were transported by the
+experience. So much is sure, that in a dazed condition, out
+of which they awake only at the end of the scene (Mk 9<sup>8</sup>),
+the figure of Jesus appears to them illuminated by
+a supernatural light and glory, and a voice intimates that
+he is the Son of God. The occurrence can be explained
+only as the outcome of great eschatological excitement.</p>
+
+<p>It is remarkable that the revelation of the secret of
+Jesus’ messiahship appears always to be connected with
+such conditions. At Pentecost, when Peter openly
+proclaimed Jesus as the Christ, we have an example of
+glossolalia. Peter, to be sure, had already had a taste of such
+an experience as the revelation was made to him on the
+mountain near Bethsaida. Paul also was in a state of
+ecstasy when he heard the voice before the Damascus gate.</p>
+
+<p>It has been shown above that no one could conclude
+from Jesus’ speech or behaviour that he regards himself
+as the Messiah. Properly the question is not, how the
+people could remain ignorant of Jesus’ messianic claim,
+but how Peter at Cæsarea Philippi
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page183">[pg 183]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg183"></a>
+and the High Priest
+at the trial could come into possession of this secret.</p>
+
+<p>The Transfiguration answers the first question. Peter
+knew that Jesus is the “Son of God” through the
+revelation which he in common with the two other Disciples
+received on the mountain near Bethsaida. For this reason
+he answered the question with such confidence (Mk 8<sup>29</sup>).
+The text of St. Matthew’s Gospel records an
+additional saying of Jesus which seems to allude to the very
+experience in which this knowledge was supernaturally
+imparted to Peter: “Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-Jonah:
+for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but
+my Father which is in heaven” (Mt 16<sup>17</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Moreover, the scene which follows upon Peter’s
+answer clearly has to do with a secret common to him and
+to Jesus. When Jesus disclosed that he must die in
+Jerusalem Peter turns upon him impetuously, takes him apart,
+and speaks to him in excited tones. As Jesus sees that the
+other Disciples are attentive he abruptly turns away from
+Peter with a sharp word, calling him the Tempter, who
+minds not the things of God but the things of men
+(Mk 8<sup>32</sup> and 8<sup>33</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Why this agitation of Peter over Jesus’ disclosure
+about the fatal journey to Jerusalem?
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page184">[pg 184]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg184"></a>
+Because it comes
+as a new factor, above and beyond what was disclosed
+on the mountain near Bethsaida. About that experience
+he dare not speak in the presence of the other Disciples,
+because Jesus had forbidden it. For this reason he takes
+Jesus apart. Jesus, however, seeing that the other
+Disciples are listening, cannot explain matters to him, and so
+with passionate abruptness enjoins silence.</p>
+
+<p>Only the connection with the foregoing
+Transfiguration explains the characteristic traits of the scene at
+Cæsarea Philippi. Psychological observations about the
+quick apprehension and lively temperament of Peter—the
+common expedients of modern interpretation—do not in
+fact begin to explain why he alone should arrive with such
+confidence at the knowledge of Jesus’ messiahship, only
+to fall a moment later into such misunderstanding that
+he gets into an excited dispute with Jesus. Why do they
+both go apart together? Why, instead of instructing him,
+does Jesus leave him there with a hard word of rebuke?</p>
+
+<p>Taken by itself the whole scene at Cæsarea Philippi is
+an enigma. If, however, we assume that the
+Transfiguration preceded it, the enigma is solved and the scene is illuminated
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page185">[pg 185]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg185"></a>
+down to the smallest details. The revelation
+to the Twelve was preceded by the disclosure to the Three
+of the secret of Jesus’ messiahship.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_8_2">2. The Futuristic Character of Jesus’ Messiahship.</h3>
+
+<p>Meanwhile the revelation of the secret of his
+messiahship alters nothing in the behaviour of the Disciples to
+Jesus. They do not sink before him in the dust as if now
+the man whom they had known was become a superhuman
+being. They only manifest in consequence of this revelation
+a certain awe. They dare not interrogate him when they
+fail to understand his words (Mk 9<sup>32</sup>), and as they
+company with him they appear to be aware that he
+carries within him a great secret.</p>
+
+<p>Are we to imagine then that after this revelation of
+his secret Jesus was henceforth regarded by his disciples
+as the Messiah? No, <i>not yet</i> was he the Messiah. It must
+constantly be kept in mind that the Kingdom and the
+Messiah are correlative terms which belong inseparably
+together. Now if the Kingdom was not yet come, neither
+was the Messiah. Jesus’ disclosure had reference to the
+time of the dawning of the Kingdom. When
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page186">[pg 186]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg186"></a>
+that hour
+shall strike, then shall he appear as Messiah, then shall
+his messiahship be revealed in glory. Such was the secret
+which he solemnly made known to his disciples.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus’ messiahship was a secret, not merely because
+he had forbidden it to be spoken, but in its very nature it
+was a secret, inasmuch as it could be realised only at a
+definite time in the future. It was a conception which could
+be formulated fully only in his own consciousness.
+Wherefore the people could not understand it—and need not
+know anything about it. It was enough if by his word
+and his signs he might convert them to faith in the
+nearness of the kingdom, for with the coming of the Kingdom
+his messiahship would be manifest.</p>
+
+<p>It is almost impossible to express in modern terms the
+consciousness of messiahship which Jesus imparted as a
+secret to his Disciples. Whether we describe it as an
+identity between him and the Son of Man who is to appear,
+whether we express it as a continuity which unites both
+personalities, or think of it as virtually a pre-existent
+messiahship,—none of these modern conceptions can render
+the consciousness of Jesus as the Disciples understood it.</p>
+
+<p>What we lack is the “Now and Then”
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page187">[pg 187]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg187"></a>
+which dominated their thinking and which explains a curious duality of
+consciousness that was characteristic of them. What we
+might call identity, continuity, and potentiality was in
+their mind confounded in a conception which quite eludes
+our grasp. Every person figured himself in two entirely
+different states, according as he thought of himself now,
+in the pre-messianic age, or then in the messianic.
+Expressions which we interpret only in accordance with our
+unity of consciousness, they referred as a matter of course
+to the double consciousness familiar to them. Therefore
+when Jesus revealed to them the secret of his
+messiahship, that did not mean to them that he is the Messiah,
+as we moderns must understand it; rather it signified for
+them that their Lord and Master was the one who in the
+messianic age would be revealed as Messiah.</p>
+
+<p>They think of themselves also in terms of this double
+consciousness. As often as Jesus made known to them the
+necessity of his suffering before entering upon his rule
+they questioned within themselves what manner of
+persons they should be in the coming age. Wherefore,
+following upon the prophecies of the Passion we find rivalry
+among the Disciples as to which shall be the greatest in the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page188">[pg 188]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg188"></a>
+Kingdom, or to whom shall be accorded the seats of
+honour on either side of the throne. In the meanwhile,
+however, they remain what they are, and Jesus remains
+what he is, their Teacher and Master. The sons of
+Zebedee address him as “Master” (Mk 10<sup>35</sup>). As Teacher
+they expect him to give promise and assurance of what
+shall come to pass when the Kingdom dawns and his
+messiahship is revealed.</p>
+
+<p>In this sense, then, Jesus’ messianic consciousness is
+futuristic. There was nothing strange in this either for him
+or for his Disciples. On the contrary, it corresponded
+exactly to the Jewish conception of the hidden life and
+labour of the Messiah. (Cf. Weber: <i>System der altsynagogalen Theologie,</i> 1880, pp.
+342-446). The course of Jesus’ earthly life
+preceded his messiahship in glory. The Messiah in his
+earthly estate must live and labour unrecognised, he must
+teach, and through deed and suffering he must be made
+perfect in righteousness. Not till then shall the messianic
+age dawn with the Last Judgment and the establishment
+of the Kingdom. The Messiah must come from the north.
+Jesus’ march from Cæsarea Philippi to Jerusalem was the
+progress of the unrecognised Messiah to his triumph in
+glory.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page189">[pg 189]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg189"></a></p>
+
+<p>Thus in the midst of the messianic expectation of his
+people stood Jesus as the Messiah that is to be. He dare
+not reveal himself to them, for the season of his hidden
+labour was not yet over. Hence he preached the near
+approach of the Kingdom of God.</p>
+
+<p>It was this futuristic consciousness of messiahship
+which prompted Jesus in the Temple to touch upon the
+messianic dogma of the Scribes, as though he would
+call their attention to the secret which lurks behind it.
+The Pharisees say, “The Messiah is David’s Son;” but
+David calls him his Lord. How can he still be his Son
+(Mk 12<sup>35-37</sup>)?</p>
+
+<p>The Messiah is David’s Son—that is, subordinate to
+him—since in this era he is born of human parentage and
+lives and labours in obscurity. David’s Lord, because at
+the dawn of the coming era he will be revealed as Christ
+in glory. Jesus has no notion of impeaching the pharisaic
+dogma. It is correct, the Scripture so teaches. Only, the
+Pharisees themselves cannot properly interpret their
+dogma, and so cannot explain how the Messiah can be
+in one instance David’s Son and in another, David’s Lord.</p>
+
+<p>This saying of Jesus to the people in the
+Temple—(only Matthew has made of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page190">[pg 190]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg190"></a>
+it an embarrassing
+polemic)—is on a line with his utterance about the Baptist. Whoever
+could apprehend with what authority John
+baptised—that is, with the power and authority of
+Elijah,—whoever could understand how the Messiah could be in one
+instance David’s son, in another David’s Lord,—he must
+know also who <i>he</i> is that so speaks. He that hath ears to
+hear, let him hear!</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_8_3">3. The Son of Man and the Futuristic Character
+of Jesus’ Messiahship.</h3>
+
+<p>The expression “Son of David” contains an enigma.
+Therefore Jesus never used it in speaking of his
+messiahship, but always refers to himself as the “Son of Man.”
+Consequently this designation must have been peculiarly
+apt as a rendering of his messianic consciousness.</p>
+
+<p>It is evident that he chose this term deliberately. Every
+other messianic designation that is applied to him he
+corrects and interprets by “Son of Man.”</p>
+
+<p>As they descend from the mountain where the Disciples
+had come to recognise him as the Son of God he speaks
+of himself as the “Son of Man” (Mk 9<sup>7-9</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Peter proclaimed him before the others as “the
+Anointed one” (Mk 8<sup>29</sup>). Jesus immediately
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page191">[pg 191]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg191"></a>
+proceeds to instruct them about the fate of the “Son of Man”
+(Mk 8<sup>31</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>“Art thou the Christ the Son of the Blessed?” the High
+Priest asked him (Mk 14<sup>61</sup>). “Ye shall see the Son
+of Man sitting at the right hand of power and coming
+with the clouds of heaven,” is Jesus’ answer. That
+signifies, Yes. The same expression occurs in the second and
+in the third prophecy of the Passion (Mk 9<sup>30-32</sup> and
+Mk 10<sup>32-34</sup>) and in the saying about serving (Mk 10<sup>45</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The messianic title “Son of Man” is futuristic in
+character. It refers to the moment in which the Messiah shall
+come upon the clouds of heaven for judgment. From the
+beginning this was the sense in which Jesus had used the
+expression, whether in speaking to the people or to the
+Disciples. In sending out his Apostles he warned them of
+the impending approach of the day of the Son of Man
+(Mt 10<sup>23</sup>). He spoke to the people of the coming of
+the Son of Man as an exhortation to be faithful to him,
+Jesus (Mk 8<sup>38</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Withal, he and the Son of Man remain for the people
+and for the Disciples two entirely distinct personalities.
+The one is a terrestrial, the other a celestial figure; the
+one belongs to the age that now is, the other to the
+messianic period. Between the two there exists
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page192">[pg 192]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg192"></a>
+solidarity, inasmuch as the Son of Man will intervene in behalf of such
+as have ranged themselves on the side of Jesus, the herald
+of his coming.</p>
+
+<p>These are the passages one must take as the point of
+departure in order to understand the significance of this
+expression in Jesus’ mouth. Jesus and the Son of Man are
+different persons for such as do not know his secret. They,
+however, to whom he has revealed his secret are aware
+of a personal connection between the two. Jesus it is who
+at the messianic day shall appear as the Son of Man.
+The revelation at Cæsarea Philippi consists in this, that
+Jesus reveals to his Disciples in what personal relationship
+he stands to the coming Son of Man. As the one who is
+to be the Son of Man he can confirm Peter’s confession
+of him as the Messiah. His reply to the High Priest is
+affirmative in the same sense. He is the Messiah—that
+they will see when he appears as the Son of Man upon
+the clouds of heaven.</p>
+
+<p>“Son of Man” is accordingly the adequate expression
+of his messiahship, so long as he, in this earthly æon as
+Jesus of Nazareth, has occasion to refer to his future
+dignity. Hence when he speaks to the Disciples about
+himself as the Son of Man he assumes this
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page193">[pg 193]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg193"></a>
+duality of
+consciousness. “The Son of Man must suffer and will then
+rise from the dead:” that is to say, “As the one who is
+to be Son of Man at the resurrection of the dead I must
+suffer.” To the same effect we must understand the word
+about serving: As the one who in the character of the
+Son of Man is destined to the highest rule I must now
+humble myself to the lowliest service (Mk 10<sup>45</sup>).
+Therefore he says when they come to arrest him: The
+hour is come in the which he who is to be the Son of Man
+must be delivered into the hands of sinners (Mk 14<sup>21, 41</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>The problem about the Son of Man is herewith
+elucidated. It was not an expression which Jesus commonly
+used to describe himself, but a solemn title which he
+adopted when in the great moments of his life he spoke
+about himself to the initiated as the future Messiah, while
+before the others he spoke of the Son of Man as a
+personality distinct from himself. In all cases, however, the
+context shows that he is speaking of one who is yet to
+come, for in all these passages mention is made either of
+the Resurrection or of the appearing upon the clouds of
+heaven. The philological objections do not therefore apply
+here. Initiated and uninitiated must understand from the
+situation that he is speaking
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page194">[pg 194]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg194"></a>
+of a definite personality of
+the future,—and not of man in general, even though the
+expression in both cases would be the same.</p>
+
+<p>The case is entirely different with another set of
+passages where the expression occurs arbitrarily as a pure
+self-designation, a roundabout way of saying “I.” Here
+all critical and philological objections are thoroughly in
+place.<br><br>
+
+Mt 8<sup>20</sup>,—The Son of Man hath not where to lay his
+head.<br>
+Mt 11<sup>19</sup>,—The Son of Man is come eating and drinking
+(in contrast to the Baptist).<br>
+Mt 12<sup>32</sup>,—Blasphemy against the Holy Spirit is a worse
+crime than speaking evil of the Son of Man.<br>
+Mt 12<sup>40</sup>,—The Son of Man will be three days in the
+earth, like Jonah in the belly of the fish.<br>
+Mt 13<sup>37, 41</sup>,—The Son of Man is the Sower; the Son of
+Man is the lord of the reapers.<br>
+Mt 16<sup>13</sup>,—Who do the people say that the Son of Man
+is?</p>
+
+<p>Here the expression is philologically impossible. For
+if Jesus had so used it, his hearers must simply have
+understood him to
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page195">[pg 195]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg195"></a>
+mean “man.” There is nothing here to
+indicate that the word is meant to express a future messianic
+dignity! Here in fact he designates by it his actual
+present condition! But “Son of Man” is a messianic title of
+futuristic character, since it always suggests a coming
+upon the clouds, according to Daniel 7<sup>13-14</sup>.
+Furthermore, in all of these passages the Disciples are as yet
+ignorant of Jesus’ secret. For them the Son of Man is
+still an entirely distinct person. The unity of the subject
+is still completely unknown to them. Therefore they were
+not in a position to understand that by this term he refers
+to himself, but they must refer everything to that Son
+of Man of whose coming he also spoke elsewhere. Therewith,
+however, the passages would be meaningless, for
+they imply that Jesus is thus speaking of himself.</p>
+
+<p>Historically and philologically it is therefore
+impossible that Jesus could have employed the expression as a
+purposeless and matter of course self-designation. Even
+as a self-designation referable to the future messianic
+dignity that was to be his, only they could understand it
+who knew his secret. Hence all the passages are
+unhistorical in which, <i>previous to Cæsarea Philippi</i> (or, for the
+Three, previous to the Transfiguration),
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page196">[pg 196]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg196"></a>
+he designates
+<i>himself</i> as Son of Man. Only those in that period are
+historical in which he speaks of the Son of Man as a figure
+yet to come, not identical with himself (Mt 10<sup>23</sup> and
+Mk 8<sup>38</sup>). The passages cited above, in which the
+expression is used without its proper significance as a mere
+self-designation, are therefore not historical, but are
+comprehensible only as the result of a literary process. How
+does it come about that a later period of Gospel
+composition regarded this expression as “Jesus’ self-designation”?</p>
+
+
+<p>This was due to a shifting of the perspective. It is
+observable from the moment when men began to write
+the history of Jesus upon the assumption that on earth he
+was already the Messiah. From that time on men lost
+consciousness of the fact that for the earthly existence of
+Jesus his very messiahship was something future, and that
+by the very expression Son of Man he designated himself
+as the future Messiah. Since, then, it was an historic fact
+that he spoke of himself as the Son of Man, the writers
+appropriated this emphatic term and without suspecting
+that it was appropriate only in certain sayings and in
+definite situations, they employed it indifferently in any
+passage where Jesus spoke of himself,—and thereby
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page197">[pg 197]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg197"></a>
+created these philological and historical impossibilities.</p>
+
+<p>This erroneous use was due therefore to a literary
+development of markedly secondary character. In this
+respect it was like the unhistorical use of the expression
+“Son of David” by Matthew. It agrees thereto that the
+“Son of Man” passages here in question belong likewise
+to a secondary stratum of St. Matthew’s Gospel.</p>
+
+<p>What chiefly reveals their secondary character is: the
+transformation of the simple question asked at Cæsarea
+Philippi (Mt 16<sup>13</sup>); the application of the parable of
+the sower (Mt 13<sup>37, 41</sup>); and the false interpretation
+of the saying about Jonah (Mt 12<sup>40</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>No less secondary is the formulation of the speech
+about the sin against the Holy Ghost, where a contrast
+is drawn between blasphemy against the Holy Ghost and
+against the Son of Man (Mt 12<sup>32</sup>), whereas in Jesus’
+thought both came to the same thing, since it was a
+question of conscious hardening against the power of the
+coming Kingdom which worked in him. In the passages Mt 8<sup>20</sup>
+and Mt 11<sup>19</sup> the expression is arbitrarily used, for
+Jesus merely wishes to say: <i>I</i> have nowhere to lay my
+head; and, <i>I</i> eat and drink, in contrast to the ascetic
+practice of the Baptist.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page198">[pg 198]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg198"></a></p>
+
+<p>It is quite a different case which is presented by the
+two unhistorical “Son of Man” passages in St. Mark’s
+Gospel.<br>
+
+Mk 2<sup>10</sup>—The Son of Man hath authority to forgive
+sins upon earth.<br>
+Mk 2<sup>28</sup>—The Son of Man is lord of the Sabbath.</p>
+
+<p>The secondary character appears in the fact that Jesus
+is supposed to have used the expression here as a
+self-designation. The historical fact is that he used it in that
+connection in the third person, referring either to the
+Son of Man as an eschatological figure, or to man in
+general. In either case it makes sense.</p>
+
+<p>1. Man as such can by works of healing declare the
+forgiveness of sins upon earth.</p>
+
+<p>Man as man is lord of the Sabbath.</p>
+
+<p>2. In view of the coming of the Son of Man
+forgiveness of sins is already available, as the works of healing
+show.</p>
+
+<p>In view of the coming of the Son of Man a higher
+factor already emerges to modify the legalistic observance
+of the Sabbath.</p>
+
+<p>The Law yields to something higher. The case of
+David shows it.</p>
+
+<p>However one may explain these passages,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page199">[pg 199]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg199"></a>
+one thing is clear: the expression did actually occur here and did
+somehow modify Jesus’ statement. The only secondary
+trait appears in the use of the expression as a
+self-designation, whereas in fact Jesus spoke of man in general or
+of the Son of Man. These passages, therefore, are on
+the threshold between the historical and the
+literary-unhistorical use of the name “Son of Man.”</p>
+
+
+<p>We can now understand the peculiar difficulty of the
+“Son of Man” problem. Hitherto, the deeper the
+investigation went, so much the further the solution seemed to
+recede. This was due to the fact that no amount of
+reflection could effect the separation of passages of such unequal
+worth. Thus the literary and historical sides of the
+problem remained confounded with one another. The moment,
+however, the discovery is made, from the study of Jesus’
+messianic consciousness, that the expression Son of Man
+is the only one by which he could utter the secret of his
+future dignity, the separation is given. All those passages
+are historical which show the influence of the apocalyptic
+reference to the Son of Man in Daniel: all are unhistorical
+in which such is not the case. At the same time the shifting
+of the perspective explains why for writers of a later
+generation this
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page200">[pg 200]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg200"></a>
+expression in Jesus’ mouth could have only
+the significance of an arbitrary self-designation,
+appropriate in all situations where he spoke of himself.</p>
+
+<p>Finally, the last enigma is also solved. Why does the
+expression disappear from the language of the primitive
+Church? Why does no one (with exception of Acts 7<sup>56</sup>)
+designate the Messiah by the title Son of Man,
+notwithstanding that Jesus had used it exclusively to indicate his
+dignity? This is due to the fact that “Son of Man” was
+the messianic expression for a clearly defined episode of
+the messianic drama. The Messiah was the Son of Man
+in the moment of his manifestation upon the clouds of
+heaven to reign in judgment over the world. Jesus thought
+exclusively of that moment, since only from that moment
+on was he for men the Messiah. The primitive Church,
+however, seeing that a transitional period intervened,
+beheld Jesus as the Messiah in heaven above at the right
+hand of God. He was already the Messiah and did not
+have to become such at the moment of the appearing of
+the Son of Man. Because the perspective was shifted here
+also, one used the general expression “Messiah” instead
+of the title “Son of Man” which pointed to a particular
+scene.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page201">[pg 201]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg201"></a></p>
+
+<p>Jesus would have expressed himself inaccurately had
+he said, I am the Messiah,—for that he was to be only
+when he appeared in glory as the Son of Man.</p>
+
+<p>The primitive Church would have expressed itself
+inaccurately had it said, Jesus is the Son of Man,—for after
+the Resurrection he was the Messiah at the right hand
+of God, whose coming as Son of Man the Church expected.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_8_4">4. The Resurrection of the Dead and the Futuristic
+Character of Jesus’ Messiahship.</h3>
+
+<p>What is the significance of the
+resurrection-prophecies? It seems to us hard to admit that Jesus could have
+foretold so precisely an event of that sort. It seems much
+more plausible to suppose that general utterances of his
+about a glory that awaited him were editorially
+transformed <i>ex eventu</i> into predictions of the Resurrection.</p>
+
+<p>Such criticism is in place so long as one holds the view
+that the prophecy of the Resurrection referred to an
+isolated event in the personal history of Jesus. So it appears,
+however, only to our modern consciousness, because we
+think uneschatologically even in the matter of the
+Resurrection. For Jesus and his Disciples, on the other hand, the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page202">[pg 202]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg202"></a>
+Resurrection which he spoke about had an entirely
+different significance. It was a messianic event which
+signified the dawn of the full glory that was to come. We
+must eliminate from the Resurrection predicted by Jesus
+all modern notions suggestive of an apotheosis. The
+contemporary consciousness understood this “Restoration”
+(Acts 3<sup>21</sup>) as a revelation of Jesus’ messiahship at the
+dawn of the Kingdom. Therefore when Jesus spoke of
+his resurrection the Disciples thought of the great
+messianic Resurrection in which he as the Messiah would be
+raised from the dead.</p>
+
+<p>The conversation during the descent from the
+mountain of Transfiguration is decisive on this point. Jesus
+spoke then for the first time to his most intimate disciples
+of “the resurrection of the Son of Man from the dead”
+(Mk 9<sup>9</sup>). They, however, were quite unable to think
+of “the resurrection of the Son of man” apart from the
+messianic Resurrection. Their attention was entirely
+occupied with the messianic event which Jesus’ words suggested
+to them. They question therefore among themselves about
+the Resurrection of the dead. What should that mean
+(Mk 9<sup>10</sup>)? That is to say, the conditions thereof, so
+far as they can see, are not yet
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page203">[pg 203]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg203"></a>
+fulfilled. Elijah is not yet
+come (Mk 9<sup>11</sup>). Jesus puts their minds at rest with
+the hint that Elijah had already appeared though men did
+not recognise him. He means the Baptist (Mk 9<sup>12-13</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>This conversation, in which otherwise it is impossible
+to detect at all any reasonable sequence of thought,
+becomes perfectly transparent and natural the moment it is
+noticed how the Disciples are unable to think of the
+resurrection which Jesus’ words suggest except in the same
+thought with the general messianic Resurrection.
+Therefore this talk during the descent from the mountain throws
+a clear light upon Jesus’ later prophecies of his Passion
+and Resurrection, because we are here in a position to
+observe the thoughts and questions which these words
+awaken in the hearts of the Disciples. Moreover this
+“resurrection prophecy” lacks the mention of the three
+days which furnishes precisely the occasion for the critical
+attitude toward the subsequent prophecies of the Passion.
+In this respect the prediction during the descent agrees
+thoroughly with the last utterance before the High Priest.
+Both lack the definite indication of the time when the
+Resurrection or the appearing upon the clouds of heaven
+shall take place. In the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page204">[pg 204]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg204"></a>
+messianic event both correspond
+chronologically: resurrection and coming on the clouds
+signify only the revelation of Jesus’ messiahship on the
+great Resurrection Day.</p>
+
+<p>This expectation of the eschatological Resurrection of
+the dead ruled the consciousness of Jesus and his
+contemporaries. He assumes it in his discourses at Jerusalem.
+Expectation of the Kingdom and belief in the approaching
+Resurrection of the dead belong together. It is, as we
+have already observed, an error in perspective to
+represent Jesus’ thought in regard to the coming Kingdom as
+directed toward the future as if it had to do with
+subsequent generations. So the modern mind thinks. It was
+just the opposite with Jesus. The Kingdom had to do
+with the past generations. They rise up to meet the
+Judgment which inaugurates the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The Resurrection of the dead is the condition
+precedent to the establishment of the Kingdom. Through it all
+generations of the world are lifted out of their temporal
+sequence and placed before God’s judgment as
+contemporaries. For example, such a parable even as that of the
+Lord’s Vineyard requires the assumption of the
+Resurrection of the dead (Mk 12<sup>1-12</sup>). The whole history of
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page205">[pg 205]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg205"></a>
+Israel is there described in the conduct of the
+husbandmen. Jesus speaks of the generations of Israel from the
+days of the Prophets unto the people then present to
+whom his warning is addressed. The parable, however,
+pictures only one generation, because when it is a question
+of the Judgment, the whole people in its consecutive
+generations appears before God as one collective
+whole,—which means that it is raised up as a whole from the dead.</p>
+
+<p>In the same way it is to be explained that the people
+of Sodom of a generation long gone by are assured of a
+more tolerable fate than the present inhabitants of
+Capernaum (Mt 11<sup>23-24</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Those who believed in the coming of the Kingdom
+believed also in the approaching Resurrection of the dead.
+Wherefore the attack of the Sadducees was directed
+precisely against this point. Jesus’ reply to them, that “when
+they shall rise from the dead they neither marry nor are
+given in marriage, but are as the angels in heaven”
+(Mk 12<sup>25</sup>), is to be understood as descriptive of conditions
+in the Kingdom of heaven, into which they enter through
+the Resurrection from the dead.</p>
+
+<p>The “Resurrection of the dead” was, in
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page206">[pg 206]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg206"></a>
+fine, only the mode in which the transformation of the whole form of
+existence was accomplished upon those who had already
+succumbed to death. By the coming of the Kingdom of
+God, however, the earthly form of existence in general
+must be raised to another and an incomparably higher
+estate. From this point of view, those also are to
+experience a “resurrection” who before the great Event have
+not succumbed to death; for by a higher power their
+mode of existence, too, will suddenly be transformed into
+another, which they will then share with those that have
+been awakened from death. In comparison with this new
+form of existence the foregoing condition is a matter of
+indifference. It is all one whether from our earthly
+existence or from the sleep of death we pass into the
+messianic mode of being. In comparison with the latter all
+being is “death.” It alone is “life.”</p>
+
+<p>Wherefore, to the living, Jesus speaks of the way that
+leadeth unto “life” (Mt 7<sup>14</sup>). He counsels men rather
+to part with a member of the body, when “life” is in
+question, than to fail of gaining through the Resurrection
+a part in the messianic existence (Mt 18<sup>8, 9</sup>). The rich
+young man asks what he must do “to inherit eternal life.” Jesus
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page207">[pg 207]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg207"></a>
+is very sorrowful when he will not follow the
+counsel given him, because it is so hard for a rich man
+“to enter into the Kingdom of heaven” (Mk 10<sup>17, 25</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>This disparagement of the earthly form of existence
+goes to the length of sacrificing altogether the earthly life
+for the sake of full assurance of life in the coming age.
+Hence, with the exhortation to follow him in suffering
+and reproach, Jesus declares that “whosoever would save
+his life shall lose it.” That is to say, Whosoever, through
+anxiety about his earthly existence, makes himself
+unworthy that the Son of Man intervene for him before
+God, forfeits thereby the messianic life which commences
+with the Resurrection (Mk 8<sup>35</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>When the Kingdom dawns it is all one whether we
+exist in a living or in a dead body. It is only with this
+persuasion that a man can meet persecution boldly.
+Wherefore Jesus says to the Apostles as he sends them forth:
+Be not afraid of them which kill the body but are not
+able to kill the “soul,” but fear him who hath power to
+destroy both “soul” and body in hell (Mt 10<sup>28</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>St. Paul furnishes a classical instance of this same
+connection between the eschatological expectation of the
+early Church and
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page208">[pg 208]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg208"></a>
+the Resurrection of the dead
+(1 Cor. 15<sup>50-54</sup>). What we have here is not a specifically
+Pauline thought, but a primitive Christian conception to which
+Jesus had already given utterance. Flesh and blood,
+whether quick or dead, can in no wise have part in the
+Kingdom. Therefore when the hour strikes and the dead
+are raised incorruptible, the living also shall be changed,
+putting on incorruption and immortality.</p>
+
+<p>The Resurrection of the dead is the bridge from the
+“Now” to the “Then.” It accounts for the duality of
+consciousness. Hence when Jesus spoke of his resurrection
+the Disciples correlated this word with the great context.
+It signified for them the general Resurrection in which
+they too would arise in the form of existence appropriate
+to the Kingdom of God. True, they expected his
+resurrection,—not, however, as the “Easter event,” but as the
+dawn of the messianic Kingdom. Jesus was to be revealed
+as the risen Christ when he should come as Son of Man
+upon the clouds of heaven to usher in the messianic day.</p>
+
+<p>For our feeling, the death of Jesus is related to the
+Resurrection as a discord in music to its resolution. Owing
+to the disparagement of every form of existence prior
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page209">[pg 209]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg209"></a>
+to the messianic age, a much weaker accent, for the
+Disciples lay upon the death. What they conceived was an
+endless, eternal accord following upon a brief earthly prelude.</p>
+
+<p>Where we see a juxtaposition of messianic claim,
+Passion prediction, and Resurrection prophecy, the Disciples
+perceived a much stricter connection of thought. They
+beheld all in a messianic light. Hence they did not draw
+from Jesus’ words three separate conclusions: (1) that
+he was the Messiah; (2) that he must suffer and die;
+(3) that he would rise from the dead. Rather, the
+impression they received was this: Our master will after his
+death, at the Resurrection, be revealed as the Son of
+Man. At the same time they question within themselves
+what sort of persons they then will be and what office
+and dignity will fall to their lot in the new existence.</p>
+
+<p>It can thus be explained why their messianic conception
+was not completely overthrown by the notion of “the
+suffering and dying Messiah.” Jesus had revealed to them
+neither the suffering, nor the dying, nor the risen Christ;
+but he spoke to them of the Son of Man who was due to
+appear, and revealed to them that it was he who should
+come in that character when he had perfected himself by
+suffering here below.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page210">[pg 210]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg210"></a></p>
+
+<p>It can never be emphasised enough that in this respect
+Jesus’ messiahship was completely in line with the popular
+conception. The tragedy of his life is not to be accounted
+for by the incompatibility of his notion of messiahship
+and the general expectation, so that only conflicts could
+ensue which must bring about his death. This conception
+first appears in the Fourth Gospel. The historical Jesus
+laid claim to messiahship only from the moment of the
+Resurrection.</p>
+
+<p>This view of Jesus’ messianic disclosures in the early
+Synoptic tradition is absolutely required by the conception
+of the primitive Church. The primitive Church assumes
+that Jesus’ messianic consciousness was futuristic when
+he talked to the Disciples and even when he gave answer
+to the High Priest. Even Peter’s discourse in the Acts dates
+his messiahship from the moment of the Resurrection.
+Until then he was Jesus of Nazareth. Only, the provisional
+condition of sitting on the right hand of God takes the
+place of the coming upon the clouds of heaven. “Jesus the
+Nazarene, a man approved of God unto you by mighty
+works and wonders and signs which God did by him in
+the midst of you (Acts 2<sup>22</sup>), him did God raise up
+(Acts 2<sup>32</sup>) and hath made him both Lord and
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page211">[pg 211]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg211"></a>
+Messiah, this
+Jesus whom ye crucified” (Acts 2<sup>36</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>This testimony to the primitive conception of Jesus’
+messiahship is of itself so weighty that it would put to
+silence the whole Synoptical tradition if that were of a
+different tenor. How is it conceivable that the Disciples
+proclaimed that Jesus had entered upon his messianic
+existence through the Resurrection, if already upon earth
+he had spoken of his messiahship as a dignity then
+actually possessed? As a matter of fact the early Synoptic
+tradition and the view of the primitive Church agree
+together completely. Both affirm with one voice that Jesus’
+messianic consciousness was futuristic.</p>
+
+<p>If we had not this witness, the knowledge of Jesus’
+historical character and personality would be forever
+closed to us. For after his death all sorts of presumptions
+arose to obscure the consciousness of the futuristic
+character of his messiahship. His resurrection as Messiah
+coincided with the general Resurrection which should usher
+in the messianic age—such was the perspective of the
+Disciples before his death. After his death his resurrection
+as Messiah constituted a fact for itself. Jesus was the
+Messiah <i>before</i> the messianic age! That is the fateful shifting
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page212">[pg 212]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg212"></a>
+of the perspective. Therein lies the tragical
+element—but the magnificent as well—in the whole
+phenomenon of Christianity.</p>
+
+<p>The primitive Christian consciousness made the most
+strenuous efforts to fill the breach, trying in spite of it to
+conceive of Jesus’ resurrection as the dawn of the
+messianic era in the general rising of the dead. There was
+an effort to make it intelligible as analogous to a
+somewhat protracted interval between two scenes of the first
+act of a drama. Properly, however, they already stood
+within the messianic Resurrection. Thus for Paul, Jesus
+Christ, proved to be the Messiah through the
+Resurrection of the dead, “is the first fruits of them that sleep”
+(1 Cor. 15<sup>20</sup>). The whole structure of Pauline theology
+and ethics rests upon this thought. Because they find
+themselves within this period, believers are in reality buried
+with Christ and with him raised again through baptism.
+They are “new” creatures, they are the “righteous,” whose
+citizenship is in heaven. Until we grasp this fundamental
+notion we cannot perceive the unity in the manifold
+complications of St. Paul’s world of thought.</p>
+
+<p>The Christian historical tradition sought another way
+out. It assumed a sort of preresurrection which coincided
+with the resurrection
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page213">[pg 213]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg213"></a>
+of Jesus. It lent to this the colouring
+of the messianic Day. Mt 27<sup>50-53</sup> furnishes an example
+in legendary form of such a method of reconciling fact
+and theory. With Jesus’ death upon the cross a new world
+era dawned. When he yielded up his spirit the veil of the
+Temple was rent from the top to the bottom and
+earthquakes, the signs of the end of the world, shook the earth;
+the rocks were rent; the graves opened; and many bodies
+of the saints that had fallen asleep were raised. After
+Jesus’ resurrection they go forth out of the tombs into
+the holy city and appear unto many. So this narrative
+clings to the conception that the general Resurrection of
+the dead under the omens of the messianic Day comes
+in conjunction with Jesus’ death and consequent
+resurrection,—but still only as a sort of prelude.</p>
+
+<p>Time, indeed, proved mightier than the original
+conceptions. Inexorably it thrust itself like a splitting wedge
+between Jesus’ resurrection and the expected general
+Resurrection of the messianic Day, and with the temporal
+coincidence it destroyed also the casual [causal] connection in the
+original sense. The messiahship of Jesus stood up solidly
+out of the past. Those who confessed it and at the same
+time expected the Kingdom as a future
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page214">[pg 214]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg214"></a>
+event lost all
+consciousness of the fact that in the preaching of Jesus his
+messiahship and the Kingdom were both of them future
+and coincident events. They began to regard the Gospel
+history from the point of view that <i>Jesus was the Messiah.</i>
+The title for this new view of the Gospel history was
+written by St. Paul. It reads: <i>“Jesus Christ,”</i>—the office
+and dignity of the risen Lord is combined with the
+historical personality in one idea. The Fourth Gospel has
+drawn the logical consequence therefrom and has so
+depicted the history of Jesus as if he had come upon earth
+as the Messiah.</p>
+
+<p>It is the task of the historical investigator to
+emancipate himself for a moment from the unhistorical
+perspective and place the Synoptic accounts in the right light.
+Only then, when one has grasped the futuristic element
+in Jesus’ messianic consciousness, can one understand why
+he revealed his dignity to the Disciples as a “secret,” why
+he designated himself thereby as the Son of Man, and
+in what sense he spoke of his resurrection.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_8_5">5. The Betrayal by Judas—the Last Disclosure
+of the Secret of Messiahship.</h3>
+
+<p>What did Judas actually betray? According to the
+accounts of our Gospels it
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page215">[pg 215]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg215"></a>
+looks as if he had informed the
+Sanhedrin where at a particular hour they could
+apprehend Jesus. But, even if this indication of the place did
+play some part in the betrayal of Judas, it could only
+have been incidental. Where Jesus abode they could at
+any time find out, since he did nothing to make his coming
+and going secret. If then they desired to seize him, they
+had only to send a spy after him as he left Jerusalem in
+the evening, and they could have got all the information
+they wanted. For this purpose they did not need one of
+the inner circle.</p>
+
+<p>As a matter of fact, however, the principal difficulty
+lay in an entirely different direction. Not to <i>arrest</i> him
+but to <i>convict</i> him was what they could not accomplish,
+for they could bring nothing against him. With respect
+to him and his following they found themselves in the
+embarrassing fix into which every conscientious church
+discipline must necessarily fall some time or another: these
+people were too pious for them, pious beyond proper
+limits, inasmuch as they with too great enthusiasm
+believed what the others with seemly moderation of feeling
+confessed in their creed,—namely, that the Kingdom is
+near. They could not get a conviction on the ground of
+the title of Forerunner
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page216">[pg 216]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg216"></a>
+which the people attributed to him,
+for he had justified this attribution by signs. Moreover
+he had never openly claimed for himself such a dignity.
+Nevertheless the manner of his behaviour was for them
+dangerous in the highest degree. At the head of the pious
+populace he terrorised them. For this reason they would
+gladly have made away with him—and could not.</p>
+
+<p>One can understand the attitude of the Sanhedrin and
+their difficulties if one steadily keeps in mind that, in view
+of Jesus’ whole activity, the thought had not occurred to
+anybody that he could take himself to be the Messiah.
+Thus they knew no charge to bring against him, and had
+nothing for it but to try to catch him in his speech and
+discredit him with the people—and in this they were not
+successful.</p>
+
+<p>Then Judas appeared before them and put the deadly
+weapon into their hand. As they heard what he told them
+“they were glad,” for now was he delivered into their
+power. Judas now seeks a favourable moment to deliver
+the betrayed into their hands (Mk 14<sup>11</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>What he had betrayed to them we can see from the
+process of the trial. The witnesses of the Pharisees can
+adduce nothing that would justify his conviction. When, however,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page217">[pg 217]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg217"></a>
+the witnesses have withdrawn, the High Priest
+puts the question to Jesus directly, whether He is the
+Messiah. To prove such a claim on Jesus’ part they could
+not adduce the necessary witnesses,—for there were none.
+The High Priest is here in possession of Jesus’ secret.
+That was the betrayal of Judas! Through him the
+Sanhedrin knew that Jesus claimed to be something different
+from what the people held him to be, though he raised
+no protest against it.</p>
+
+<p>They got the decisive charge through the betrayed
+secret of Cæsarea Philippi. To be Elijah, the prophet of
+the last times, was no religious crime. But to claim to be
+Messiah, that was blasphemy! The perfidy of the charge
+lay in the High Priest’s insinuation that Jesus held
+himself then to be the Messiah, just as he stood there before
+him. This Jesus repudiated with a proud word about his
+coming as Son of Man. Nevertheless he was condemned
+for blasphemy.</p>
+
+<p>We have therefore three revelations of the secret of
+messiahship, which so hang together that each subsequent
+one implies the foregoing. On the mountain near
+Bethsaida was revealed to the Three the secret which was
+disclosed to Jesus at his baptism. That was after the harvest.
+A few weeks later it was
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page218">[pg 218]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg218"></a>
+known to the Twelve, by the fact
+that Peter at Cæsarea Philippi answered Jesus’ question
+out of the knowledge which he had attained upon the
+mountain. One of the Twelve betrayed the secret to the
+High Priest. This last revelation of the secret was fatal,
+for it brought about the death of Jesus. <i>He was
+condemned as Messiah although he had never appeared in
+that rôle.</i></p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page219">[pg 219]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg219"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_9">CHAPTER IX</h2>
+
+<h4>THE SECRET OF THE PASSION</h4>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_1">1. The Pre-Messianic Affliction.</h3>
+
+<p class="drop">THE reference to the Passion belonged as a matter of
+course to the eschatological prediction. A time of unheard
+of affliction must precede the coming of the Kingdom. Out
+of these woes the Messiah will be brought to birth. That
+was a view prevalent far and wide: in no other wise could
+the events of the last times be imagined.</p>
+
+<p>According to this view Jesus’ words must be
+interpreted. It will appear then that in his preaching of the
+Kingdom he brought into sharp prominence the thought
+of the Affliction of the last times. We always assume that
+when he speaks of persecutions which his Disciples shall
+encounter he means to predict what they must go through
+when they are left alone and orphaned on earth after his
+death. That is totally false. After his death Jesus will be
+Messiah through the Resurrection, and therewith the
+glory of the Kingdom dawns. Not what they must
+withstand after his death, but what they are to be in the
+Kingdom
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page220">[pg 220]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg220"></a>
+is the thought which concerns the Disciples on
+the way to Jerusalem.</p>
+
+<p>When Jesus speaks of suffering and persecution it is a
+question of the afflictions which his followers must bear
+with him before the dawn of the Kingdom. What is meant
+is the last desperate attack of the powers of this world
+at enmity with God, which shall sweep like a flood over
+those who in expectation of the Kingdom represent the
+divine power in the godless world. Hence Jesus constitutes
+the focus upon which the Affliction concentrates. He is
+the rock upon which the waves dash themselves to pieces.
+Whosoever would not be torn away by the flood must
+cling stedfastly to him.</p>
+
+<p>When he says that his mission is not to bring peace
+upon earth but a sword, when he speaks of the uprising
+which he brings about, in which the most sacred earthly
+ties shall be broken, in which one must follow him laden
+with the cross and count one’s earthly life for naught
+(Mt 10<sup>34-42</sup>), he means by this the great persecution
+of the last times. He who hastens the coming of the
+Kingdom brings also this Affliction to pass, for it is out of this
+travail indeed that the Kingdom and the Messiah are
+born.</p>
+
+<p>Hence the harsh accord heard throughout
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page221">[pg 221]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg221"></a>
+the messianic harmonies! Jesus concludes the Beatitudes with the
+intimation that his Disciples are blessed if they are hated and
+persecuted and all manner of evil is spoken against them
+for his sake. Then have they indeed reason to rejoice and
+be exceeding glad, for in what they must endure is revealed
+their right to membership in the Kingdom of God. While
+they are still afflicted by the power of this world their
+reward is already prepared in heaven (Mt 5<sup>11, 12</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>“Preach, saying, the Kingdom of God is at hand,”
+was Jesus’ injunction to the Apostles when sending them
+out. Therewith, however, he prepared them impressively
+for the Affliction of the last times, for the hand of the
+world-clock approaches the great hour. They must know
+it, in order that they may not think that something strange
+has befallen them when they are brought to trial by the
+world-power, when uprising and persecution threaten
+them and bring their life into danger. They must know
+it, in order that they may not doubt and deny him and
+be offended in him when he is delivered into the hands
+of men, for he himself as the mighty preacher of the
+Kingdom has incited this uprising. When, however, the
+world-power appears to conquer, then God in his omnipotence
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page222">[pg 222]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg222"></a>
+stands above. Not those that kill the body must they
+fear, but the almighty Lord who in the Judgment can
+destroy both soul and body in hell. In this last uprising
+the world-power judges itself: after the Judgment comes
+the Kingdom. That is the fundamental thought of the
+charge to the Apostles.</p>
+
+<p>Likewise the embassage to the Baptist concludes with
+a similar intimation. The Kingdom is near, he would have
+them say to him; my preaching, signs, and wonders
+confirm it; and he attains blessedness whosoever is not
+offended in me, i. e. whosoever is faithful to me in the
+pre-messianic Affliction.</p>
+
+<p>His warning of the heavy time to come is directed most
+impressively, however, to those whom the Apostles’
+preaching has drawn about him in trustful expectation of
+the Kingdom. In the gathering dusk of evening he had
+celebrated with them the great Supper beside the sea. As
+one who knew himself to be the Messiah he had distributed
+to them sacred food, and thereby, without their suspecting
+it, had consecrated them to be partakers of the messianic
+feast. The following morning, however, he called them
+about him at Bethsaida and exhorted them to be ready to
+sacrifice their life in the Affliction. Whosoever
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page223">[pg 223]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg223"></a>
+shall be ashamed of him and of his words in the humiliation which
+must overtake him in this adulterous and sinful world,
+him will the Son of Man refuse to recognise when he shall
+appear in the glory of his Father surrounded by his
+angels (Mk 8<sup>35-38</sup>).</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_2">2. The Idea of the Passion in the First Period.</h3>
+
+<p>The Passion therefore belonged to Jesus’ preaching
+from the beginning. In the Affliction of the last times his
+followers must pass with him through suffering to
+glory—so his hearers understood him. Only, they did not know
+that he with whom they must suffer would be revealed as
+Messiah.</p>
+
+<p>In Jesus’ messianic consciousness the thought of
+suffering acquired now, as applied to himself, a mysterious
+significance. The messiahship which he became aware of at
+his baptism was not a possession, nor a mere object of
+expectation; but in the eschatological conception it was
+implied as a matter of course that through the trial of
+suffering he must become what God had destined him to
+be. His messianic consciousness was never without the
+thought of the Passion. Suffering is the way to the
+revelation of messiahship!</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page224">[pg 224]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg224"></a></p>
+
+<p>What he experienced in this age represented the hidden
+life and labour of the Messiah. Suffering, however, was
+allotted to this rôle. It was Jewish doctrine that the
+Messiah must be full of chastisement, for the sufferings are
+necessary to the making of the perfectly righteous man (Weber, p. 343).</p>
+
+<p>This messianic consciousness of Jesus shows the same
+deepening of moral tone as does his eschatology.
+According to the customary modernising conception, it is assumed
+that during the greater part of his ministry Jesus did not
+think of the Passion, but was first obliged to entertain that
+thought by the malicious enmity of the Scribes. Thus his
+messiahship receives in the first period an ethical-idyllic
+cast, in the second, a modern hue of resignation. The
+historic-eschatological picture is at once livelier, deeper,
+and more moral. Jesus’ character did not undergo an
+“evolution” through the acceptance of the idea of the
+Passion. From the beginning he knew himself as Messiah
+only in so far as he was resolved through suffering to be
+purified unto perfection. As the one who is destined to
+bear rule in the new age he must beforehand be delivered
+into the power of ungodliness in order that he may there approve
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page225">[pg 225]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg225"></a>
+himself for the divine lordship he is to exercise.
+Out of such a messianic consciousness as this he adjures
+those about him to remain true so that he can recognise
+them as his own when the glory dawns. Thus the active
+ethical trait which constituted the depth of the secret of
+the Kingdom is a controlling factor also in the secret of
+messiahship.</p>
+
+<p>The historical problem presents itself now in this form:
+In the first period Jesus expressed the thought of the
+Passion much more frequently than in the second, and he
+uttered it openly. Every discourse of some length
+concludes with such an intimation. His own Disciples were
+familiar with the thought of seeing him humiliated in the
+Affliction. In spite of this, however, the disclosure at
+Cæsarea Philippi appeared to the Disciples a new thing,
+and so it was in fact. For it was no longer a question
+simply of the suffering which the great herald of the
+Kingdom must undergo in company with his own in the
+final Affliction; but now he suffers who is to be the Messiah.
+This suffering, moreover, does not any longer occur in the
+general Affliction of the last times, but Jesus suffers alone,
+and his suffering is now represented as a purely earthly,
+historical event! He will
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page226">[pg 226]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg226"></a>
+be delivered to the Council and
+by it condemned to death! That was the new thing which
+remained a secret for the Disciples.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_3">3. The “Temptation” and the Divine Omnipotence.</h3>
+
+<p>A peculiar note of hesitancy appears in the thought of
+the Passion. At one time death seems an absolute
+necessity; then again—for example, in Gethsemane—Jesus
+recognises once more the possibility that the Passion may
+still be spared him. But as a matter of fact the idea of
+the Passion subsisted without respect to earthly success
+or failure. Therefore the hesitancy ought not to be
+brought into connection with this. As Jesus journeyed
+towards Jerusalem to die he did not in a corner of his
+heart indulge the thought that God in his omnipotence
+might perhaps be able nevertheless to make his way a
+triumphal march and show himself through him victorious
+over the Pharisees and the Council. That, according to
+his feeling, would have been a “human” way of thinking,
+such as he had reproved in Peter (Mk 8<sup>33</sup>). For in the
+affairs of God’s Kingdom he cannot oppose to one another
+the opposition of the Scribes and the divine omnipotence;
+it is a question of a divine drama
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page227">[pg 227]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg227"></a>
+in which they were mere
+subordinate actors with a prescribed rôle, like the minions
+that arrested him at their behest. The hesitancy must
+therefore have its ground in the divine will itself.</p>
+
+<p>It is the specific characteristic of Jesus’ view, that the
+divine will has indeed, on the one hand, designedly
+preordained the messianic drama in the well known form;
+yet, on the other hand again, God remains sovereignly
+free with respect to his plan. By a messianic programme
+established once and for all the divine omnipotence behind
+it is in no wise bound! It knows no determinism at all.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus expected of this omnipotence that it could still
+receive into the estate of blessedness even such as by their
+behaviour had forfeited membership in the Kingdom.
+According to the accepted standards it is indeed impossible
+that the rich can enter into life. But with God all things
+are possible (Mk 10<sup>27</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>It was a maxim that whosoever would reign with the
+coming Messiah must suffer with Jesus. But yet he dared
+not promise his two intimate Disciples, James and John,
+the seats upon the throne, although he expected that they
+would share his Passion.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page228">[pg 228]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg228"></a>
+He might by this infringe upon
+God’s omnipotence (Mk 10<sup>35-40</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Thus the Affliction also of the last times had its place
+indeed in the divinely ordained course of the messianic
+drama. But yet it lay in God’s unrestricted omnipotence
+that he might eliminate it and permit the Kingdom to
+dawn without this season of trial. Therefore men might
+pray God that he would suffer that heavy hour of
+probation to pass by. Jesus enjoined this upon his Disciples in
+the same prayer in which he taught them to make petition
+for the coming Kingdom. He teaches them to implore
+God for the final state of blessedness, in which his name
+will be hallowed and his will be done on earth as it is in
+heaven; but at the same time they are to beg him not to
+lead them into the “Temptation,” not to give them into
+the power of the Evil, not to oblige them to make
+satisfaction for their sins by the endurance of the Affliction
+of the last times; but to deliver them by his omnipotence
+from the power of the Evil when the ungodly world for
+the last time asserts itself at the coming of the Kingdom
+for which they pray. That is the inner connection of the
+last three petitions of the Lord’s Prayer.</p>
+
+<p>The Lord’s Prayer thus exhibits in the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page229">[pg 229]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg229"></a>
+first three and
+the last three petitions a purely eschatological character.
+We have the same contrast as in the Beatitudes, the charge
+to the Apostles, the embassage to the Baptist, and the
+discourse at Bethsaida. First it is a question of the coming
+of the Kingdom, then of the Affliction of the last times.
+We perceive from the Lord’s Prayer, however, that there
+is no absolute necessity for this Affliction, but that it is
+only relatively determined in God’s almighty will.</p>
+
+<p>The Affliction, in fact, represents in its extremest form
+the repentance requisite for the Kingdom. Whosoever
+comes through that test approved makes satisfaction for
+his transgressions in the godless æon. Through conflict and
+suffering men wrest themselves free from this power to
+become instruments of the divine will in the Kingdom of
+God. That is to be conceived collectively. The faithful
+adherents of the Kingdom as a community make the
+satisfaction. The individual thereby perfects and approves
+himself. Such is God’s will. Jesus, however, prays with
+them to God that he may be pleased in his omnipotence
+to forgive them the debt without satisfaction, as they
+forgive their debtors. That means remission pure and simple,
+without atonement. May it please
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page230">[pg 230]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg230"></a>
+God not to lead them
+through the “Temptation,” but straightway to release
+them from the power of the world.</p>
+
+<p>Only so can one understand how Jesus throughout his
+ministry can assume forgiveness of sins and yet here
+expressly prays for it; and how he can speak of a temptation
+which comes from God. It is a question in fact of the
+general messianic remission of debts and the Temptation
+of the messianic Affliction. Therefore these petitions
+constitute the conclusion of the Kingdom-prayer.</p>
+
+<p>What Jesus here in common prayer petitions for
+the community, that he implores for himself when his
+hour is come. In Gethsemane he prostrates himself before
+God. In moving prayer he appeals to God’s omnipotence:
+Abba, Father, all things are possible unto thee (Mk 14<sup>36</sup>).
+He would that the cup of suffering might pass
+his lips without his needing to taste it. Also he rouses
+the three Disciples, bidding them to watch and pray God
+that he may spare them the Temptation, for the flesh is
+weak.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_4">4. The Idea of the Passion in the Second Period.</h3>
+
+<p>With the revelation at Cæsarea Philippi cease all
+intimations that the believers must
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page231">[pg 231]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg231"></a>
+pass with Jesus through
+the Affliction. According to the secret which he imparts
+to the Disciples he alone suffers. In Jerusalem he
+addressed not one urgent word, either to the people or to
+the Disciples, about following him in suffering. Indeed he
+actually takes back what he before had said. The
+morning after the Supper by the seashore, addressing those
+whom he had consecrated unto the messianic banquet, he
+makes their blessedness dependent upon following him in
+suffering. To the partakers of the Last Supper at
+Jerusalem he calmly stated beforehand that they would all be
+“offended” in him that night! He coupled this with no
+condemnation—for it is so determined in the Scripture!
+Is it not written, “I will smite the shepherd, and the sheep
+shall be scattered”? Therefore, even if they are offended
+in him, if even they forsake him, in his glory he will still
+gather them again, and as Messiah—for that he is as the
+risen one—he will go before them unto Galilee
+(Mk 14<sup>26-28</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>What at an earlier period he had required of all, that
+he now does not expect even of him who boasted that he
+alone would stand by him. “Before the cock crow twice
+thou shalt deny me thrice,” said he to Peter (Mk 14<sup>29, 31</sup>).</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page232">[pg 232]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg232"></a></p>
+
+<p>This change must be connected with the form which
+the idea of the Passion assumed in the second period.
+There must have occurred an alteration in the conception
+of the Affliction of the last times. The others are freed
+from the trial of suffering, Jesus suffers alone;—and in
+fact the humiliation consists in the death to which the
+scribes consign him. It is by this means that the final
+affliction now accomplishes itself. His faithful followers
+are spared. <i>He suffers in their stead, for he gives his life
+a ransom for many.</i></p>
+
+<p>Jesus has not disclosed in what way this secret was
+made known to him in the days of solitude after the
+mission of the Twelve. The form of the secret of the
+Passion shows, however, that two experiences had influence
+upon him.</p>
+
+<p>First, the death of the Baptist. The Baptist for him
+was Elijah. If he was slain by the hand of man before
+the messianic Day, such was God’s will, and so it was foreordained
+in the messianic drama. This occurred while the
+Disciples were away. His embassage to the Baptist
+perhaps never reached him. He must come now to an
+understanding of this matter. For this cause he wishes to
+withdraw into solitude with his companions.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page233">[pg 233]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg233"></a></p>
+
+<p>How much he was preoccupied with the thought of the
+Baptist’s death is shown by the conversation which
+followed the revelation to the Three on the mountain. It was
+ordained in the Scripture that Elijah must meet such a
+fate at the hands of men. So also it is written of the Son
+of Man that he must suffer many things and be set at
+naught (Mk 9<sup>12-13</sup>).</p>
+
+<p>Hitherto he had spoken only in general terms of the
+final Affliction as an event of the last times. Now, however,
+it has been fulfilled upon the Baptist as an <i>historical event.</i>
+That is a sign, which indicates how it will be fulfilled upon
+himself.</p>
+
+<p>This indication came precisely at the time when he was
+compelled by the course of events to reflect upon the final
+Affliction. After the return of the Twelve he had expected
+it as an impending event. But it failed to occur. What is
+more, the Kingdom failed therewith to appear! In sending
+out the Twelve he had told them that they would be
+surprised by the overflowing woes ere they had gone through
+all the cities of Israel,—and they had returned without
+witnessing the beginning of the woes or the dawn of the
+Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The report with which they returned
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page234">[pg 234]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg234"></a>
+showed, however,
+that all was ready. Already the power of ungodliness was
+broken, for else the unclean spirits would not have been
+subject to them. The Kingdom was compellingly hastened
+by the repentance practised since the days of the Baptist.
+In this respect also the measure was full,—that was
+proved by the multitudes which thronged about him in
+faithful expectation. So all was ready—and still the
+Kingdom did not come! The delay of the eschatological
+coming of the Kingdom,—that was the great fact which
+drove Jesus at that time once and again into solitude to
+seek light upon the mystery.</p>
+
+<p>Before the Kingdom could come the Affliction must
+arrive. But it failed to arrive. It must be brought about
+in order that the Kingdom may thus be constrained to
+come. Repentance and the subjugation of the power of
+ungodliness did not avail by themselves; but the violent
+stormers of the Kingdom must be reinforced by one
+stronger still, the future Messiah, who brings down
+upon himself the final Affliction in the form in which
+it had already been accomplished upon Elijah. Thus
+the secret of the Kingdom merges in the secret of the
+Passion.</p>
+
+<p>The conception of the final Affliction contains
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page235">[pg 235]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg235"></a>
+the thought of atonement and purification. All they who are
+destined for the Kingdom must win forgiveness for the
+guilt contracted in the earthly æon by encountering
+stedfastly the world-power as it collects itself for a last attack.
+For through this guilt they were still subject to the power
+of ungodliness. This guilt constitutes a counter weight
+which holds back the coming of the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>But now God does not bring the Affliction to pass. And
+yet the atonement must be made. Then it occurred to
+Jesus that he as the coming Son of Man must accomplish
+the atonement in his own person. He who one day shall
+reign over the believers as Messiah now humbles himself
+under them and serves them by giving his life a ransom
+for many, in order that the Kingdom may dawn upon
+them. That is his mission in the estate which precedes his
+celestial glory. “For this he is come” (Mk 10<sup>45</sup>). He
+must suffer for the sins of those who are ordained for his
+Kingdom. In order to carry this out, he journeys up to
+Jerusalem, that there he may be put to death by the
+secular authority, just as Elijah who went before him
+suffered at the hand of Herod. That is the secret of the
+Passion. Jesus did actually die for the sins of men,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page236">[pg 236]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg236"></a>
+even though it was in another sense than that which Anselm’s
+theory assumes.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_5">5. Isaiah 40[-66]: The Secret of the Passion Foretold
+in the Scripture.</h3>
+
+<p>“How is it written of the Son of Man? That he must
+suffer many things and be set at naught” (Mk 9<sup>12</sup>).
+The new form of the secret of the Passion is derived
+from the Scripture. In the picture of the suffering servant
+of God Jesus recognised himself. There he found his
+vocation of suffering depicted in advance.</p>
+
+<p>In order, however, to understand how his secret came
+to him from out the Scripture, the picture of the suffering
+servant of God must be set in the great framework in
+which it belongs. The modern-historical solution cannot
+do this. It confines itself to the notion of a meek
+self-surrender. As soon, however, as it is once perceived that
+Jesus’ idea of the Passion was eschatological, it is
+evident also in what a great context he must view the figure
+of the suffering servant of God. Accordingly, Isa. 40-66
+was nothing else but the prophetic representation of the
+events of the last time in the midst of which he knew
+himself to be.</p>
+
+<p>The passage commences with the proclamation
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page237">[pg 237]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg237"></a>
+that God’s reign is about to begin. The preparer of the way
+comes upon the scene. He cries that the earthly passes
+away when the Lord, dealing reward and recompense,
+appears in his glory. The hour dawns in which he gathers
+his flock and brings in the era of peace.</p>
+
+<p>The Elect is there. He proclaims righteousness in
+truth. God has put his spirit upon him (Isai. 42<sup>1</sup> ff.).
+He shall establish judgment upon the earth; the cities wait
+upon his teaching. But before the glory dawns and the
+bearer of the divine spirit rules with power and
+righteousness over the peoples he must pass through an estate of
+humiliation. Others do not understand why he is put to
+shame. They think God has rejected him, and know not
+that he bears their infirmities, is pierced for their
+transgressions, and smitten for their offences. The oppressed
+servant is meek and openeth not his mouth. For the
+transgression of the people he is stricken to death. Then,
+however, will the Lord glorify him. He hath called him to
+this from his mother’s womb. He is ordained to bring
+again Jacob and to save Israel. He shall be for a light
+to the Gentiles, that God’s salvation may extend unto the
+ends of the earth (Isai. 49<sup>1</sup> ff.; Isai. 52<sup>1</sup> ff.; Isai. 53<sup>1</sup> ff.).</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page238">[pg 238]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg238"></a></p>
+
+<p>Upon the delineation of the suffering of the servant
+of God there follows a description of the judgment upon
+the whole world and upon Israel (Isa. 54-65). In the
+end, however, the glory of God breaks forth. He is
+enthroned above the new heaven and the new earth
+(Isa. 65 and 66). When the Judgment is accomplished, then the
+rejoicing breaks out, for the blessed out of the whole
+world, out of every tribe and nation, will gather unto him
+and do him reverence.</p>
+
+<p>One must grasp the dramatic unity in these chapters
+in order to enter into sympathy with one who sought here
+mysterious intimation about the things of the last time.
+Jesus’ idea of the Passion is in the end completely
+absorbed in that of the Deutero-Isaiah. Like the servant
+of God, he too is destined to reign in glory. But first he
+appears, meek and unrecognised, in the rôle of a preacher
+who works righteousness. He must pass also through
+suffering and humiliation ere God permit the glorious
+consummation to dawn. What he endures is an atonement for
+the iniquity of others. This is a secret between himself
+and God. The others cannot and need not understand it,
+for when the glory dawns they will recognise that he has
+suffered for them. Wherefore Jesus did not need to explain
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page239">[pg 239]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg239"></a>
+his Passion to the people and to the Disciples, and
+ought not to do so. It must remain a secret,—so it is
+written in the Scripture. Even to those to whom he
+foretold what was coming he uttered it as a secret. At his
+appearing as Son of Man the scales must fall from their
+eyes. In the glory of the Kingdom they then shall
+recognise that he has suffered in order that they may be spared
+and have peace. The secret is intelligible only
+retrospectively, from the point of view of the glory that shall be
+revealed.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore it makes no difference if his own followers
+turn away from him in his humiliation and men are
+offended in him as though he were chastised of God. The
+Scripture does not reckon it against them as sacrilege,
+but has so ordained it. The moment therefore the secret
+of the Passion is made clear to him by the Scripture he
+no more says, Whosoever is ashamed of me in my
+humiliation, the same is condemned; but, Ye shall all be offended
+in me,—knowing at the same time that they all shall be
+gathered about him at the Resurrection.</p>
+
+<p>Under the influence, therefore, of the Deutero-Isaiah
+the idea of the general Affliction of the last times was
+transformed into the personal secret of Jesus’ Passion.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page240">[pg 240]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg240"></a></p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_6">6. The “Human” Element in the Secret of the Passion.</h3>
+
+<p>The innermost nature of the idea of suffering
+underwent no change in consequence of the secret of the
+Passion of the second epoch. For Jesus, suffering, even in this
+form, remained pre-eminently the moral condition of the
+dignity ordained to him.</p>
+
+<p>Now, however, the Affliction exhibits the concrete
+traits of a determinate event. Jesus brings it down from
+the vague heights of apocalyptic drama to the level of
+human history. Therein lies something prophetic of the
+future of Christianity. After Jesus’ death the whole
+messianic drama of the last times is dissolved in human
+history. This development began with the secret of the
+Passion.</p>
+
+<p>Thus it is, too, that the secret of the Passion, as
+compared with the idea of suffering of the first period, exhibits
+more human traits. There is a quality of compassionate
+consideration for others in the thought that he makes
+satisfaction in the Passion for the adherents of the
+Kingdom, in order that they may be exempted from the trial
+in which perchance they might prove weak. The petition,
+“Lead us not into the Temptation, but
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page241">[pg 241]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg241"></a>
+deliver us from
+the Evil,” is now fulfilled in his Passion.</p>
+
+<p>This deeply human trait is especially evident in
+Gethsemane. Only over the three intimate Disciples still hovers
+the possibility that they may be obliged to pass with him
+through suffering and temptation. The sons of Zebedee,
+to secure their claim that they sit with him upon the throne,
+boasted that they could drink with him his cup and undergo
+with him the baptism of suffering—and this prospect he
+held out to them (Mk 10<sup>38-40</sup>). Peter, however, swore
+that he would not deny him; even if all others should
+forsake him, he desired to die with him (Mk 14<sup>31</sup>).
+These three Jesus had taken with him to the place where
+he prayed. While he implored God that the cup might
+pass him by, there overcame him a sorrowful anxiety for
+the Three. If God does now actually send them with him
+through the Passion, will they hold out as they are bold
+to believe? Wherefore he is mindful of them in that sad
+hour. Twice he arouses himself and wakes them out of
+sleep, bidding them watch and pray to God that he lead
+them not into the Temptation, even if he will not spare
+him this cup; for the spirit is willing, but the flesh is weak.
+That is perhaps
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page242">[pg 242]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg242"></a>
+the most touching moment in Jesus’ life.
+Some have dared to call Gethsemane Jesus’ weak hour;
+but in reality it is precisely the hour in which his
+supernatural greatness is revealed in his deeply human
+compassion.</p>
+
+<h3 id="mbp_toc_9_7">7. The Idea of the Passion in the Primitive Church.
+The Shifting of the Perspective.</h3>
+
+<p>Jesus carried with him to the grave the secret of the
+Passion which was to be revealed to the inheritors of the
+Kingdom at its coming. But the Kingdom did not come.
+Thus it is to be explained that though he indeed had given
+intimation of his Passion to the Disciples, yet they, when
+the event came to pass, knew no interpretation of it.
+Nevertheless, in some way they had to explain it, by the
+help of such intimations as they could recall. This accounts
+for the fact that the theory of the early Church
+regarding the Passion of Jesus was far poorer than his Secret.
+The explanation of the Church focussed principally upon
+one fact: In consequence of the Passion and the
+Resurrection from the dead he is the Messiah. In this sense the
+Passion and the Exaltation are foreordained in the
+Scripture.</p>
+
+<p>While Jesus’ secret brought his death and the dawning
+of the Kingdom into the closest
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page243">[pg 243]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg243"></a>
+temporal and causal
+connection, for the primitive Church, on the other hand, a
+past event, as such, constituted the object to be explained,
+since the Kingdom had not arrived and the original causal
+connection was dissolved along with the temporal.</p>
+
+<p>Now with reference to his death Jesus had spoken
+also of atonement and forgiveness of sins. But the
+thoughts which he associated therewith the events had
+rendered entirely impossible. The indefinite “many,” who
+were to apply the ransom to themselves in the knowledge
+that he had suffered for them, simply did not exist; for
+the Kingdom had not yet appeared. Only from that point
+of vantage, however, could one apprehend that he had
+performed the Atonement of Affliction for the inheritors
+of the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>In the meantime the situation was entirely different:
+“the believers” had taken the place of the “many.” Those
+who believe in the messiahship of Jesus have the
+forgiveness of sins,—this sentence, as the sermon at Pentecost
+shows, was a constituent of the earlier Apostolic
+preaching (Acts 2<sup>38</sup>). But to what extent one had thereby
+forgiveness of sins,—in that consisted the problem. This,
+however, was historically insoluble, for according to
+Jesus’ secret of the Passion
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page244">[pg 244]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg244"></a>
+the forgiveness of sins applied
+not to those who believe in Jesus-Christ, but to the
+inheritors of the Kingdom. Therefore, however profound
+they may be, and however true to the religious
+consciousness of their time, none of the attempts to explain the
+significance of the Passion, from Paul to Ritschl,
+apprehend the thought of Jesus, because they proceed upon an
+entirely different assumption.</p>
+
+<p>As all of these theories sought nevertheless to
+legitimate themselves historically, we witness the astonishing
+spectacle, that the most diverse interpretations of his
+Passion are put into the mouth of Jesus,—of which,
+however, not one can even remotely explain how out of such
+a conception the primitive Apostolic estimate of the Death
+could have been derived. The same is true of the
+modern-historical solution. If Jesus taught the Disciples to
+understand the ethical significance of his death, why did the
+primitive Christian explanation of the Passion confine
+itself to the notion of conformity with Scripture and the
+“forgiveness of sins”?</p>
+
+<p>To this question the modern-historical solution
+furnishes no answer. The eschatologico-historical, on the
+other hand, is able to take account perspectively of the
+necessary distortion which Jesus’ idea of the Passion
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page245">[pg 245]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg245"></a>
+underwent in the primitive Church. It indicates which
+elements alone of the Passion secret could still subsist
+after his death. Because it grasps the connection between
+the early Christian interpretation and the thought of
+Jesus the eschatologico-historical solution is the right one.</p>
+
+<p>The abolition of the causal connection between the
+death of Jesus and the realisation of the Kingdom was
+fatal to the early Christian eschatology. With the secret
+of the Passion, the secret of the Kingdom likewise
+perished. This, however, meant nothing less than that
+eschatology lost precisely that specific “Christian” character
+which Jesus had imparted to it. The active ethical element
+which served to moralise it dropped out. Thus the
+eschatology of the early Church was “dechristianised” by Jesus’
+death. Therewith it sank back again to the level of
+contemporary Jewish thought. The Kingdom is again an
+object of expectation merely. That moral conversion is
+effective actively to hasten its coming,—this secret was
+buried with Jesus. Now men repented and strove after
+moral renewal <i>as in the days of the Baptist.</i></p>
+
+<p>This dechristianising was manifest especially in the
+matter of the final Affliction.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page246">[pg 246]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg246"></a>
+According to the Passion
+idea of the first period, the believers must suffer along
+with the Messiah; according to that of the second, he
+was resolved to endure the Affliction for them. In the
+early Church the believers expected the Affliction <i>before</i>
+the appearing of the Messiah, as was the case in the
+contemporary Jewish conception; for the Passion secret of
+Jesus was not known to them. Therefore the Jewish
+apocalypses belonged to them just as much as to the other
+Jews, only with the difference that the crucified Jesus was
+to be the coming Messiah. Early Christian eschatology
+was therefore still “Christian” only through the <i>person</i>
+of Jesus, no longer through his <i>spirit,</i> as was the case
+in the secret of the Kingdom of God and in the secret of
+the Passion.</p>
+
+<p>This furnishes a criterion for judging “the Synoptic
+apocalypse” (Mark 13). Even though it may contain single
+eschatological sayings attributable to Jesus, the discourse
+as such is necessarily unhistorical. It betrays the
+perspective of the time after Jesus’ death. During the days at
+Jerusalem Jesus could speak of no general Affliction before
+the coming of the Son of Man. The Synoptic apocalypse
+stands in direct contradiction to the secret of the Passion,
+since this indeed simply
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page247">[pg 247]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg247"></a>
+abolishes the general Affliction of
+the last times. Therefore it is unhistorical. Apocalyptic
+discourses with intimation of the final Affliction belong to
+the Galilean period at the time of the mission of the
+Twelve. The discourse to the Apostles on that occasion
+is the historical Synoptic apocalypse. About a time of
+affliction after his death Jesus never uttered a word to his
+Disciples, for it lay beyond his field of vision.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore with the death of Jesus, and precisely by
+reason of it, eschatology—notwithstanding that the
+primitive Christian community still completely lived in it—was
+virtually done away with. It was destined to be forced out
+of the Christian “Weltanschauung,” for it was
+“dechristianised” by the fact that in parting with the secret of
+the Kingdom of God and the idea of the Passion it had
+forfeited also the inner ethical life which was breathed
+into it by Jesus. A tree in full bloom stricken at the
+root,—such was the fate of eschatology, to wilt and wither,
+although no one at first suspected it was doomed. In the
+fact that subsequent history compulsorily created in the
+Church an uneschatological view of the world, it only
+accomplished what in the nature of things was already
+determined by Jesus’ death.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page248">[pg 248]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg248"></a></p>
+
+<p>The death of Jesus the end of eschatology! The
+Messiah who upon earth was not such—the end of the
+messianic expectation! The view of the world in which Jesus
+lived and preached was eschatological: the “Christian
+view of the world” which he founded by his death carries
+mankind forever beyond eschatology! That is the great
+secret of the Christian “scheme of salvation.”</p>
+
+<p>For Jesus and his Disciples his death was, according
+to the eschatological view, merely a <i>transitional</i> event.
+As soon, however, as the event occurred it became the
+<i>central fact</i> upon which the new, uneschatological view
+was built up. In primitive Christianity the old and new
+were still side by side.</p>
+
+<p>The adherents of Jesus believed in the coming of the
+Kingdom because his imposing personality accredited the
+message. The Church after his death believed in his
+messiahship and expected the coming of the Kingdom. We
+believe that in his ethical-religious personality, as revealed
+in his ministry and suffering, the Messiah and the
+Kingdom are come.</p>
+
+<p>The situation may be likened to the course of the sun.
+Its brightness breaks forth while it is still behind the
+mountains. The dark clouds take colour from its rays, and
+the conflict
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page249">[pg 249]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg249"></a>
+of light and darkness produces a play of
+fantastic imagery. The sun itself is not yet visible: it is there
+only in the sense that the light issues from it. As the sun
+behind the morning glow,—so appeared the personality
+of Jesus of Nazareth to his contemporaries in the
+pre-messianic age.</p>
+
+<p>At the moment when the heaven glows with intensest
+colouring the sun itself rises above the horizon. But with
+this the wealth of colour begins gradually to diminish. The
+fantastic images pale and vanish because the sun itself
+dissolves the clouds upon which they are formed. As the
+rising sun above the horizon,—so appeared Jesus Christ
+to the primitive Church in its eschatological expectation.</p>
+
+<p>As the sun at midday,—so he appears to us. We know
+nothing of morning and evening glow; we see only the
+white brilliance which pervades all. But the fact that the
+sun now shines for us in such a light does not justify us
+in conceiving the sunrise also as if it were a brilliant disk
+of midday brightness emerging above the horizon. Our
+modern view of Jesus’ death is true, true in its inmost
+nature, because it reflects his ethical-religious personality
+in the thoughts of our time. But when we import this into
+the history
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page250">[pg 250]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg250"></a>
+of Jesus and of primitive Christianity we
+commit the same blunder as were we to paint the sunrise
+without the morning glow.</p>
+
+<p>In genuine historical knowledge there is liberating and
+helping power. Our faith is built upon the personality of
+Jesus. But between our world-view and that in which he
+lived and laboured there lies a deep and seemingly
+unbridgeable gulf. Men therefore saw themselves obliged
+to detach as it were his personality from his world-view
+and touch it up with modern colours.</p>
+
+<p>This produced a picture of Jesus which was strangely
+lifeless and vague. One got a hybrid figure, half modern,
+half antique. With much else that is modern, men
+transferred to him our modern psychology, without always
+recognising clearly that it is not applicable to him and
+necessarily belittles him. For it is derived from mediocre
+minds which are a patchwork of opinions and apprehend
+and observe themselves only in a constant flux of
+development. Jesus, however, is a superhuman personality
+moulded in one piece.</p>
+
+<p>Thus modern theology does violence to history and
+psychology, inasmuch as it cannot prove what right we
+have to segregate Jesus from his age, to translate his
+personality into the terms of our modern thought, and to conceive
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page251">[pg 251]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg251"></a>
+of him as “Messiah” and “Son of God” outside
+of the Jewish framework.</p>
+
+<p>Genuine historical knowledge, however, restores to
+theology full freedom of movement! It presents to it the
+personality of Jesus in an eschatological world-view, yet
+one which is modern through and through because <i>His</i>
+mighty spirit pervades it.</p>
+
+<p>This Jesus is far greater than the one conceived in
+modern terms: he is really a superhuman personality.
+With his death he destroyed the form of his
+“Weltanschauung,” rendering his own eschatology impossible.
+Thereby he gives to all peoples and to all times the right
+to apprehend him in terms of their thoughts and
+conceptions, in order that his spirit may pervade their
+“Weltanschauung” as it quickened and transfigured the Jewish
+eschatology.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore may modern theology, just by reason of a
+genuine historical knowledge, claim freedom of
+movement, without being hampered continually by petty
+historical expedients which nowadays are often resorted to
+at the expense of historical veracity. Theology is not
+bound to graze in a paddock. It is free, for its task is to
+found our Christian view of the world solely upon the
+personality of Jesus Christ, irrespective of the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page252">[pg 252]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg252"></a>
+form in which it expressed itself in his time. He himself has
+destroyed this form with his death. History prompts
+theology to this unhistorical step.</p>
+
+<p>As Jesus gave up the ghost, the Roman centurion said,
+“Truly this man was the Son of God” (Mk 15<sup>39</sup>). Thus
+at the moment of his death the lofty dignity of Jesus was
+set free for expression in all tongues, among all nations,
+and for all philosophies.</p>
+
+<p class="chapter"></p>
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page253">[pg 253]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg253"></a>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_10">CHAPTER X</h2>
+
+<h4>SUMMARY OF THE LIFE OF JESUS</h4>
+
+<p class="drop">THE “Life of Jesus” is limited to the last months of
+his existence on earth. At the season of the summer
+seed-sowing he began his ministry and ended it upon the cross
+at Easter of the following year.</p>
+
+<p>His public ministry may be counted in weeks. The
+first period extends from seed time to harvest; the second
+comprises the days of his appearance in Jerusalem.
+Autumn and winter he spent in heathen territory alone with
+his Disciples.</p>
+
+<p>Before him the Baptist had appeared and had borne
+emphatic witness to the nearness of the Kingdom and the
+coming of the mighty pre-messianic Forerunner, with
+whose appearance the pouring out of the Holy Ghost
+should take place. According to Joel, this among other
+miracles was the sign that the Day of Judgment was
+imminent. John himself never imagined that he was this
+Forerunner; nor did such a thought occur to the people,
+for he had not ushered in the age of miracles.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page254">[pg 254]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg254"></a>
+He is a prophet,—that was the universal opinion.</p>
+
+<p>About Jesus’ earlier development we know nothing.
+All lies in the dark. Only this is sure: at his baptism the
+secret of his existence was disclosed to him,—namely, that
+he was the one whom God had destined to be the Messiah.
+With this revelation he was complete, and underwent no
+further development. For now he is assured that, until the
+near coming of the messianic age which was to reveal his
+glorious dignity, he has to labour for the Kingdom as the
+unrecognised and hidden Messiah, and must approve and
+purify himself together with his friends in the final
+Affliction.</p>
+
+<p>The idea of suffering was thus included in his messianic
+consciousness, just as the notion of the pre-messianic
+Affliction was indissolubly connected with the expectation
+of the Kingdom. Earthly events could not influence Jesus’
+course. His secret raised him above the world, even though
+he still walked as a man among men.</p>
+
+<p>His appearing and his proclamation have to do only
+with the near approach of the Kingdom. His preaching
+is that of John, only that he confirms it by signs. Although
+his secret controls all his preaching, yet no
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page255">[pg 255]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg255"></a>
+one may know of it, for he must remain unrecognised till the new æon
+dawns.</p>
+
+<p>Like his secret, so also is his whole ethical outlook
+ruled by the contrast of “Now and Then.” It is a
+question of repentance unto the Kingdom, and the conquest
+of the righteousness which renders one fit for it,—for
+only the righteous inherit the Kingdom. This
+righteousness is higher than that of the Law, for he knows that
+the law and the Prophets prophesied until John,—with
+the Baptist, however, one finds oneself in the ages of the
+Forerunner, immediately before the dawn of the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>Therefore, as the future Messiah, he must preach and
+work that higher morality. The poor in spirit, the meek,
+those that endure suffering, those that hunger and thirst
+after righteousness, the merciful, the pure in heart, the
+peacemakers,—these all are blessed because by this mark
+they are destined for the Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>Behind this ethical preaching looms the secret of the
+Kingdom of God. That which, as performed by the
+individual, constitutes moral renewal in preparation for the
+Kingdom, signifies, as accomplished by the community, a
+fact through which the realisation of the Kingdom in a
+supernatural way will
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page256">[pg 256]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg256"></a>
+be hastened. Thus individual and
+social ethics blend in the great secret. As the plentiful
+harvest, by God’s wonderful working, follows
+mysteriously upon the sowing, so comes also the Kingdom of God,
+by reason of man’s moral renewal, but substantially
+without his assistance.</p>
+
+<p>The parable contains also the suggestion of a
+chronological coincidence. Jesus spoke at the season of
+seed-sowing and expected the Kingdom at the time of the
+harvest. Nature was God’s clock. With the last
+seed-sowing he had set it for the last time.</p>
+
+<p>The secret of the Kingdom of God is the
+transfiguration in celestial light of the ethics of the early prophets,
+according to which also the final state of glory will be
+brought about by God only on condition of the moral
+conversion of Israel. In sovereign style Jesus effects the
+synthesis of the apocalyptic of Daniel and the ethics of the
+Prophets. With him it is not a question of eschatological
+ethics, rather is his world view an ethical eschatology. As
+such it is modern.</p>
+
+<p>The signs and wonders also come under a double point
+of view. For the people they are merely to confirm the
+preaching of the nearness of the Kingdom. Whosoever
+now does not believe that the time is so far advanced,
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page257">[pg 257]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg257"></a>
+he has no excuse. The signs and wonders condemn him, for
+they plainly attest that the power of ungodliness is coming
+to an end.</p>
+
+<p>For Jesus, however, there lay behind this affirmation
+the secret of the Kingdom of God. When the Pharisees
+wished to ascribe these very signs to the power of Satan,
+he alluded to the secret by a parable. By his acts he binds
+the power of ungodliness, as one falls upon a strong man
+and renders him harmless before attempting to rob him
+of his possessions. Wherefore, in sending out his Apostles,
+he gives them, together with the charge to preach,
+authority over unclean spirits. They are to deal the last
+blow.</p>
+
+<p>A third element in the preaching of the Kingdom was
+the intimation of the pre-messianic Affliction. The believers
+must be prepared to pass with him through that time of
+trial, in which they are to prove themselves the elect of
+the Kingdom by stedfast resistance to the last attack of
+the power of the world. This attack will concentrate about
+his person; therefore they must stand by him even unto
+death. Only life in God’s Kingdom is real life. The Son
+of Man will judge them according as they have stood by
+him, Jesus, or no. Thus Jesus at the conclusion of the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page258">[pg 258]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg258"></a>
+Beatitudes turns to his own Disciples with the words
+“Blessed are ye when men persecute you for my sake.”
+The charge to the Apostles turns into a consideration of
+the Affliction. The embassage to the Baptist about the
+imminence of the Kingdom concludes with the word
+“Blessed is he whosoever shall not be offended in me.”
+At Bethsaida, the morning after he had celebrated the
+Supper by the seashore, he adjured the multitude to stand
+by him, even when he shall become an object of shame
+and scorn in this sinful world,—their blessedness depends
+upon this.</p>
+
+<p>This Affliction meant not only a probation but also an
+atonement. It is foreordained in the messianic drama,
+because God requires of the adherents of the Kingdom a
+satisfaction for their transgressions in this æon. But he
+is almighty. In this omnipotence he determines the
+question of membership in the Kingdom and the place each
+shall occupy therein, without himself being bound by any
+determining cause whatsoever. So also in view of his
+omnipotence the necessity of the final Affliction is only relative.
+He can abrogate it. The last three petitions of the Lord’s
+Prayer contemplate this possibility. After beseeching God
+that he would send the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page259">[pg 259]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg259"></a>
+Kingdom, that his name might be
+blessed and his will be done on earth as it is in heaven,
+men beg him to forgive them the transgressions and spare
+them the Temptation, rescuing them directly from the
+power of evil.</p>
+
+<p>This was the content of Jesus’ preaching during the
+first period. He remained throughout this time on the
+northern shore of the lake. Chorazin, Bethsaida, and
+Capernaum were the principal centres of his activity.
+From thence he made an excursion across the lake to the
+region of the Ten Cities and a journey to Nazareth.</p>
+
+<p>Precisely in the towns which were the scenes of his
+chief activity he encountered unbelief. The curse which
+he must utter over them is proof of it. The Pharisees,
+moreover, were hostile and sought to discredit him with
+the people, on account of his very miracles. In Nazareth
+he had experience of the fact that a prophet is without
+honour in his own country.</p>
+
+<p>Thus the Galilean period was anything but a fortunate
+one. Such outward ill[ ]success, however, signified nothing
+for the coming of the Kingdom. The unbelieving cities
+merely brought down judgment upon themselves. Jesus
+had other mysterious indications for measuring the
+approach of the Kingdom. By
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page260">[pg 260]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg260"></a>
+these he recognised that the
+time was come. For this reason he sent forth the Apostles
+just as they were returning from Nazareth, <i>for it was
+harvest time.</i></p>
+
+<p>By means of their preaching and their signs the
+reputation of his mighty personality spread far and wide. Now
+begins the time of success! John in prison hears of it and
+sends his disciples to ask him if he is “he that should
+come,” for from his miracles he concluded that the time
+of the mighty Forerunner whom he had heralded had
+arrived.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus performed signs, his Disciples had power over
+the spirits. When he spoke of the Judgment he laid stress
+upon the fact that the Son of Man stood in such solidarity
+with him that he would recognise only such as had stood
+by him, Jesus. The people therefore opined that he might
+be the one for whom all were looking, and the Baptist
+desired to have assurance on this point.</p>
+
+<p>Jesus cannot tell him who he is. “The time is far
+advanced”—that is the gist of his reply. After the departure
+of the messengers Jesus turned to the people and signified
+in mysterious terms that the time is indeed much further
+advanced than the Baptist dreamed in asking such a
+question. The era of the Forerunner had already begun
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page261">[pg 261]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg261"></a>
+with the appearance of the Baptist himself. From that time
+on the Kingdom of God is with violence compelled to draw
+near. He himself who asks the question is Elijah—if they
+could comprehend it. Men were not able to perceive that
+the man in prison was Elijah. When he began his
+preaching, they knew not the time. That was due not alone to
+the fact that John performed no miracles, but to the
+hardening of their hearts. They are unreasonable children
+that do not know what they want. Now there is one here
+who performs signs,—but even on his testimony they do
+not believe the nearness of the Kingdom. So the curse
+upon Chorazin and Bethsaida concludes the “eulogy upon
+the Baptist.”</p>
+
+<p>The sending of the Twelve was the last effort for
+bringing about the Kingdom. As they then returned,
+announced to him their success, and reported that they had
+power over the evil spirits, it signified to him, <i>all is ready.</i>
+So now he expects the dawn of the Kingdom in the most
+immediate future,—it had seemed to him, indeed, already
+doubtful whether the Twelve would return before this
+event. He had even said to them that the appearing of
+the Son of Man would overtake them before they had
+gone through the cities of Israel.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page262">[pg 262]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg262"></a></p>
+
+<p>His work is done. Now he requires to collect himself
+and to be alone with his Disciples. They enter a boat and
+sail along the coast towards the north. But the multitude
+which had gathered about him at the preaching of the
+Disciples, in order to await the Kingdom with him, now
+follow after them along the shore and surprise them at
+their landing upon a lonely beach.</p>
+
+<p>As it was evening the Disciples desired that he would
+send the people away to find food in the neighbouring
+hamlets. For him, however, the hour is too solemn to be
+profaned by an earthly meal. Before sending them away
+he bids them sit down and celebrates with them an
+anticipation of the messianic feast. To the community that was
+gathered about him to await the Kingdom, he, the
+Messiah to be, distributes hallowed food, mysteriously
+consecrating them thereby to be partakers of the heavenly
+banquet. As they did not know his secret, they understood
+as little as did his Disciples the significance of his act. They
+comprehended only that it meant something wonderfully
+solemn, and they questioned within themselves about it.</p>
+
+<p>Thereupon he sent them away. He ordered the
+Disciples to skirt the coast to Bethsaida.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page263">[pg 263]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg263"></a>
+For his part he betook
+himself to the mountain to pray and then followed along
+the shore on foot. As his figure appeared to them in the
+obscurity of the night they believed—under the impression
+of the Supper where he stood before them in mysterious
+majesty—that his supernatural apparition approached
+them over the turbulent waves through which they were
+toiling to the shore.</p>
+
+<p>The morning after the Supper by the seashore he
+collected the people and the Disciples about him at Bethsaida
+and warned them to stand by him and not to deny him
+in the humiliation.</p>
+
+<p>Six days later he goes with the Three to the mountain
+where he had prayed alone. There he is revealed to them
+as the Messiah. On the way home he forbade them to
+say anything about it until at the Resurrection he should
+be revealed in the glory of the Son of Man. They,
+however, still remark the failure of Elijah to appear, who
+yet must come before the Resurrection of the dead can
+take place. They were not present at the eulogy over the
+Baptist to hear the mysterious intimation he let fall. He
+must therefore make it clear to them now that the
+beheaded prisoner was Elijah. They should take no offence
+at his fate, for it was so ordained. He also who
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page264">[pg 264]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg264"></a>
+is to be Son of Man must suffer many things and be set at naught.
+So the Scripture will have it.</p>
+
+<p>The Kingdom which Jesus expected so very soon failed
+to make its appearance. This first eschatological delay and
+postponement was momentous for the fate of the Gospel
+tradition, inasmuch as now all the events related to the
+mission of the Twelve became unintelligible, because all
+consciousness was lost of the fact that the most intense
+eschatological expectation then inspired Jesus and his
+following. Hence it is that precisely this period is confused
+and obscure in the accounts, and all the more so because
+several incidents remained enigmatical to those even who
+had a part in the experience. Thus the sacramental Supper
+by the seashore became in the tradition a “miraculous
+feeding,” in a sense totally different from that which
+Jesus had in mind.</p>
+
+<p>Therewith, too, the motives of Jesus’ disappearance
+became unintelligible. It seems to be a case of flight, while
+on the other hand the accounts give no hint how matters
+had come to such a pass. The key to the historical
+understanding of the life of Jesus lies in the perception of the
+two corresponding points at which the eschatological
+expectation
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page265">[pg 265]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg265"></a>
+culminated. During the days at Jerusalem there
+was a return of the enthusiasm which had already showed
+itself in the days at Bethsaida. Without this assumption
+we are left with a yawning gap in the Gospel tradition
+between the mission of the Twelve and the journey to
+Jerusalem. Historians find themselves compelled to <i>invent</i>
+a period of Galilean defeat in order to establish some
+connection between the recorded facts,—as if a section
+were missing in our Gospels. <i>That is the weak point of
+all the “lives of Jesus.”</i></p>
+
+<p>By his retreat into the region of the Genesareth Jesus
+withdrew himself from the Pharisees and the people in
+order to be alone with his Disciples, as he had in vain
+tried to do since their return from their mission. He
+urgently needed such a retreat, for he had to come to
+an understanding about two messianic facts.</p>
+
+<p>Why is the Baptist executed by the secular authority
+before the messianic time has dawned?</p>
+
+<p>Why does the Kingdom fail to appear notwithstanding
+that the tokens of its dawning are present?</p>
+
+<p>The secret is made known to him through the
+Scripture: God brings the Kingdom
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page266">[pg 266]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg266"></a>
+about <i>without the general
+Affliction.</i> He whom God has destined to reign in glory
+accomplishes it upon himself by being tried as a malefactor
+and condemned. Wherefore the others go free: he makes
+the atonement for them. What though they believe that
+God punishes him, though they become offended in him
+who preached unto them righteousness,—when after his
+Passion the glory dawns, then shall they see that he has
+suffered for them.</p>
+
+<p>Thus Jesus read in the Prophet Isaiah what God had
+determined for him, the Elect. The end of the Baptist
+showed him in what form he was destined to suffer this
+condemnation: he must be put to death by the secular
+authority as a malefactor in the sight of all the people.
+Therefore he must make his way up to Jerusalem for the
+season when all Israel is gathered there.</p>
+
+<p>As soon therefore as the time came for the Passover
+pilgrimage he set out with his Disciples. Before they left
+the north country he asked them whom the people took
+him to be. For reply they could only say that he was taken
+for Elijah. But Peter, mindful of the revelation on the
+mountain near Bethsaida, said: Thou art the Son of God.
+Whereupon Jesus informed them of his secret.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page267">[pg 267]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg267"></a>
+Yes, he it is who shall be revealed as Son of Man at the
+Resurrection. But before that, it is decreed that he must be
+delivered to the high priests and elders to be condemned and
+put to death. God so wills it. For this cause they are
+going up to Jerusalem.</p>
+
+<p>Peter resents this new disclosure, for in the revelation
+on the mountain there was nothing said to such an effect.
+He takes Jesus apart and appeals to him energetically.
+Whereupon he is sharply rebuked as one who gives ear
+to human considerations when God speaks.</p>
+
+<p>This journey to Jerusalem was the funeral march to
+victory. Within the secret of the Passion lay concealed
+the secret of the Kingdom. They marched after him, and
+knew only that when all this was accomplished he would
+be Messiah. They were sorrowful for what must come
+to pass; they did not understand why it must be so, and
+they durst not ask him. But above all, their thoughts were
+occupied about the conditions that awaited them in the
+approaching Kingdom. When once he was Messiah, what
+would they then be? That occupied their minds, and about
+it they talked with one another. But he reproved them
+and explained why he must
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page268">[pg 268]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg268"></a>
+suffer. Only through
+humiliation and the meek sacrifice of service is one prepared to
+reign in the Kingdom of God. Therefore must he, who
+shall exercise supreme authority as Son of Man, make
+now an atonement for many by giving up his life in meek
+sacrifice.</p>
+
+<p>With the arrival upon the Jewish territory begins the
+second period of Jesus’ public ministry. He is again
+surrounded by the people. In Jericho a multitude gathers to
+see him pass through. By the healing of a blind beggar,
+the son of Timæus, the people are convinced that he is
+the great Forerunner, just as they thought already in
+Galilee. The jubilant multitudes prepare for him a festal
+entry into Jerusalem. As the one who according to
+prophecy precedes the Messiah they acclaim him with <i>Hosanna.
+Hosanna in the highest,</i> however, is their acclaim of the
+Kingdom about to appear. Therewith the same situation
+is reached again as in the great days near Bethsaida:
+Jesus is thronged by the multitudes expectant of the
+Kingdom.</p>
+
+<p>The instruction contained in the parables which were
+uttered at Jerusalem has to do with the nearness of the
+Kingdom. They are cries of warning, with a note of
+menace as well for those that harden their hearts
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page269">[pg 269]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg269"></a>
+against the message. What agitates men’s minds is not the
+question, Is he the Messiah, or no? but, Is the Kingdom so
+near as he says, or no?</p>
+
+<p>The Pharisees and Scribes knew not what hour had
+struck. They showed a complete lack of sensibility for the
+nearness of the Kingdom, for else they could not have
+propounded to him questions which in view of the
+advanced hour had lost all significance. What difference does
+it make now about the Roman tribute? What do the
+farfetched Sadduceean arguments amount to against the
+possibility of the resurrection of the dead? Soon, with
+the advent of the Kingdom, all earthly rule is done away,
+as well as the earthly human nature itself.</p>
+
+<p>If only they understood the signs of the times! He
+proposes to them two questions, which should cause them
+to ponder and hence take note that the time they live
+in is pregnant with a great secret which is not dreamed
+of in the learning of the Scribes.</p>
+
+<p><i>By what authority did the Baptist act?</i> If they but
+knew that he was the Forerunner, as Jesus had
+mysteriously suggested to the people, then they must know too
+that the hour of the Kingdom had struck.</p>
+
+<p><i>How is the Messiah at one time David’s
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page270">[pg 270]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg270"></a>
+Son—that is, subordinate to him; at another, David’s Lord—that is,
+his superior?</i> If they could explain that, then would they
+understand also how he who now labours lowly and
+unknown in behalf of God’s Kingdom shall be revealed as
+Lord and Christ.</p>
+
+<p>But as it is they do not even suspect that the messianic
+indications harbour <i>secrets.</i> With all their learning they
+are blind leaders of the blind, who, instead of making
+the people receptive for the Kingdom, harden their hearts,
+and instead of drawing out from the Law the higher
+morality which renders men meet for the Kingdom, labour
+against it with their petty outward precepts and draw
+the people after them to perdition. Hence: Woe to the
+Pharisees and scribes!</p>
+
+<p>True, even among them are such as have kept an open
+eye. The scribe who put to him the question about the
+great commandment and welcomed his reply is commended
+as “having understanding” and therefore “not far from
+the Kingdom of God,”—for he shall belong to it when
+it appears.</p>
+
+<p>But the mass of the Pharisees and scribes understand
+him so little that they decree his death. They had no
+effective charge to bring against his behaviour. A disrespectful
+word about the Temple—that was all.
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page271">[pg 271]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg271"></a>
+<i>Then Judas betrayed to them the secret.</i> Now he was condemned.</p>
+
+<p>In the neighbourhood of death Jesus draws himself up
+to the same triumphant stature as in the days by the
+seaside,—for with death comes the Kingdom. On that
+occasion he had celebrated with the believers a mystic feast
+as an anticipation of the messianic banquet; so now he
+rises at the end of the last earthly supper and distributes
+to the Disciples hallowed food and drink, intimating to
+them with a solemn voice that this is the last earthly meal,
+for they are soon to be united at the banquet in the
+Father’s Kingdom. Two corresponding parables suggest the
+secret of the Passion. For him, the bread and wine which
+he hands them at the Supper are his body and his blood,
+for by the sacrifice of himself unto death he ushers in the
+messianic feast. The parabolic saying remained obscure
+to the Disciples. It was also not intended for them, its
+purpose was not to explain anything to them,—<i>for it was
+an enigma-parable.</i></p>
+
+<p>Now, as the great hour approaches, he seeks again, as
+after the Supper by the seashore, a lonely spot where he
+may pray. He bears the Affliction for others. Therefore
+he can say to the Disciples beforehand that in the
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page272">[pg 272]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg272"></a>
+night they shall all be offended in him—and he does not need
+to condemn them, for the Scripture had so determined it.
+What endless peace lies in this word! Indeed, he
+comforts <i>them:</i> after the Resurrection he will gather them
+about him and go before them in messianic glory unto
+Galilee, retracing the same road along which they had
+followed him on his way to death.</p>
+
+<p>It still remained, however, within the scope of God’s
+omnipotence to eliminate the Affliction for him also.
+Wherefore, as once he prayed with the believers, “And
+lead us not into the Temptation,” so now he prays for
+himself, that God may permit the cup of suffering to pass
+his lips by. True, if it be God’s will, he feels himself
+strong enough to drink it. He is sorrowful rather for the
+Three. The sons of Zebedee, to gain the seats upon the
+throne, have boasted that they can drink with him the
+cup of suffering and receive with him the baptism of
+suffering. Peter swore that he would stand by him even
+if he must die with him. He knows not what God has
+ordained for them,—whether he will lay upon them what
+they desire to undertake. Therefore he bids them remain
+near him. And while he prays God for himself he thinks
+of them and twice wakes them up, bidding
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page273">[pg 273]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg273"></a>
+them remain awake and beseech God that he may not lead them through
+the Temptation.</p>
+
+<p>The third time he comes to them the betrayer with
+his band is near. The hour is come,—therefore he draws
+himself up to the full stature of his majesty. He is alone,
+his Disciples flee.</p>
+
+<p>The hearing of witnesses is merely a pretence. After
+they have gone the High Priest puts directly the question
+about the messiahship. “I am,” said Jesus, referring them
+at the same time to the hour when he shall appear as
+Son of Man on the clouds of heaven surrounded by the
+angels. Therefore he was found guilty of blasphemy and
+condemned to death.</p>
+
+<p>On the afternoon of the fourteenth of Nisan, as they
+ate the Paschal lamb at even, he uttered a loud cry and
+died.</p>
+
+<p><span class="tei tei-pb" id="page274">[pg 274]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg274"></a></p>
+
+<h2 id="mbp_toc_11">POSTSCRIPT</h2>
+
+<p class="drop">THE judgments passed upon this realistic account of
+the life of Jesus may be very diverse, according to the
+dogmatic, historical, or literary point of view of the critics.
+Only, with the <i>aim</i> of the book may they not find fault:
+<i>to depict the figure of Jesus in its overwhelming heroic
+greatness and to impress it upon the modern age and
+upon the modern theology.</i></p>
+
+<p>The heroic recedes from our modern
+“Weltanschauung,” our Christianity, and our conception of the
+person of Jesus. Wherefore men have humanised and
+humbled him. Renan has stripped off his halo and reduced
+him to a sentimental figure, coward spirits like
+Schopenhauer have dared to appeal to him for their enervating
+philosophy, and our generation has modernised him, with
+the notion that it could comprehend his character and
+development psychologically.</p>
+
+<p>We must go back to the point where we can feel again
+the heroic in Jesus. Before that mysterious Person, who,
+in the form of his time, knew that he was creating
+<span class="tei tei-pb" id="page275">[pg 275]</span><a class="tei" id="Pg275"></a>
+upon the foundation of his life and death a moral world <i>which
+bears his name,</i> we must be forced to lay our faces in the
+dust, without daring even to wish to understand his nature.
+Only then can the heroic in our Christianity and in our
+“Weltanschauung” be again revived.</p>
+
+<h2>TRANSCRIBER'S NOTES</h2>
+
+<p>I have used scans of two copies of the original version of the book:
+one from the New York Public library (scanned by Google) and one from
+the University of Princeton. This was necessary because both books had
+considerable hand-written additions/changes that obscured the original
+text. Both are available from the Internet Archive.</p>
+
+<p>The formatting of both the .htm and .txt files has followed that of a
+similar book, The Quest of the Historic Jesus, already in Project
+Gutenberg. Evidently this was a poor choice since several of the problems
+identified in my first submission were copied from that book.
+</p>
+
+<p>I have made several changes to the printer's text, which are listed below. Each change
+has been surrounded with [] characters, if the change was only an addition of some
+characters. If some characters have been changed, the correct word is placed after
+the incorrect word and surrounded with [] characters. Scripture references
+in the original book are formatted as (chapter)<sup>(verse)</sup>. In the .txt version
+I have used the more common form (chapter):(verse).</p>
+
+<p>Within the printed book both ill success and illsuccess appear. The two-word
+version seemed the better choice. (see 4. below)</p>
+
+<p>Several terms appear in both two-word and hypenated forms: high-priest, morning-glow,
+world-clock, modern-historical, far-reaching, passion-idea, coming-one, jesus christ. I
+left all these as they are in the book. I decided to harmonize fore-ordained (see below).</p>
+
+
+<ul>
+ <li>1. page 5: self-(line break)consciousness becomes selfconsciousness (as on page 138).</li>
+ <li>2. page 64: Mk 2:23-3, 6 becomes Mk 2:23-[3:6]</li>
+ <li>3. page 67 (twice), 152, 157, 167: ff) changed to ff[.])</li>
+ <li>4. page 68, 69, 87, 116, 259, : illsuccess changed to ill[]success</li>
+ <li>5. page 89: comission changed to com[m]ssion</li>
+ <li>6. page 90: Corazin changed to C[h]orazin</li>
+ <li>7. page 117: [not] inserted into Mt 10:5, 6</li>
+ <li>8. page 120: dominination changed to domination</li>
+ <li>9. page 140: scripture reference corrected from Joel 3:28 to 2:28</li>
+ <li>10. page 213: casual changed to causal</li>
+ <li>11. page 236: Isaiah 40:66 changed to Isaiah 40-66</li>
+ <li>12. page 242: changed fore-ordained to foreordained</li>
+
+</ul>
+
+<div style='text-align:center'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK 75886 ***</div>
+</body>
+</html>
+
diff --git a/75886-h/images/cover.jpg b/75886-h/images/cover.jpg
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..36cfa93
--- /dev/null
+++ b/75886-h/images/cover.jpg
Binary files differ
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..b5dba15
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This book, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this book outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d6064a7
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+book #75886 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/75886)